Selected quad for the lemma: sense_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
sense_n church_n infallibility_n infallible_a 2,069 5 10.4830 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A67101 Protestancy without principles, or, Sectaries unhappy fall from infallibility to fancy laid forth in four discourses by E.W. E. W. (Edward Worsley), 1605-1676. 1668 (1668) Wing W3616; ESTC R34759 388,649 615

There are 50 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

religion_n and_o but_o one_o only_a certain_a and_o infallible_a perhaps_o he_o will_v say_v that_o though_o his_o proposition_n be_v fallible_a yet_o it_o be_v high_o probable_a against_o the_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n no_o other_o society_n of_o christian_n lay_v claim_n to_o infallibility_n mark_v by_o the_o way_n what_o this_o adversary_n drive_v at_o it_o be_v to_o tell_v the_o world_n a_o word_n of_o comfort_n viz._n that_o christ_n jesus_n have_v now_o no_o certain_a and_o infallible_a religion_n teach_v or_o learn_v in_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o to_o make_v this_o most_o fallible_a and_o false_a proposition_n good_a he_o back_n be_v it_o by_o another_o of_o his_o own_o as_o false_a and_o fallible_a viz._n it_o be_v at_o least_o high_o probable_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v fallible_a pray_v you_o on_o what_o leg_n do_v this_o high_a suppose_a probability_n stand_v i_o will_v tell_v you_o it_o stand_v only_o on_o mr._n pool_n weak_a thought_n and_o unwarrant_v word_n more_o you_o have_v not_o for_o never_o do_v any_o ancient_a council_n or_o universal_a tradition_n or_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n hold_v it_o a_o thing_n high_o probable_a that_o either_o christian_a religion_n or_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v fallible_a do_v the_o scripture_n favour_n any_o where_o this_o wild_a assertion_n no_o not_o one_o syllable_n be_v find_v to_o that_o purpose_n we_o have_v text_n enough_o to_o the_o contrary_a some_o i_o shall_v quote_v on_o a_o fit_a occasion_n you_o will_v ask_v what_o then_o be_v it_o that_o mr._n pool_n prove_v against_o we_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o his_o nullity_n i_o answer_v just_o nothing_o his_o whole_a strain_n be_v thus_o after_o much_o tamper_n with_o those_o convince_a place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n usual_o allege_v for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o spoil_v all_o with_o his_o fallible_a fancy_n he_o go_v negative_o to_o work_v and_o tell_v we_o we_o such_o and_o such_o text_n turn_v out_o of_o their_o genuine_a sense_n by_o his_o gloss_n come_v not_o home_o nor_o prove_v any_o church_n infallible_a and_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n for_o as_o pervert_v by_o he_o they_o be_v none_o of_o god_n scripture_n but_o his_o own_o scribble_v whimsy_n take_v here_o one_o instance_n for_o many_o that_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n 1._o tim._n 3._o 15._o where_o the_o church_n be_v style_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n seem_v plain_a enough_o open_a and_o significant_a for_o the_o catholic_a sense_n now_o come_v mr._n poole_n with_o his_o gloss_n page_n 86._o and_o say_v perhaps_o here_o may_v be_v a_o ellipsis_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v write_v for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o if_o so_o timothy_n be_v the_o pillar_n not_o the_o church_n again_o the_o church_n here_o speak_v of_o may_v be_v that_o wherein_o timothy_n be_v place_v not_o the_o roman_a 3._o the_o term_n of_o pillar_n note_v the_o solidity_n not_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n 4._o it_o may_v note_v the_o church_n duty_n not_o her_o practice_n with_o a_o long_a etc._n etc._n observe_v well_o upon_o these_o wretched_a fallible_a supposition_n mr._n poole_n seem_v to_o conclude_v that_o those_o word_n be_v unconcluding_a for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o any_o christian_a society_n put_v i_o ask_v by_o what_o authority_n must_v i_o suppose_v his_o ellipsis_n or_o that_o the_o church_n speak_v of_o be_v timothy_n church_n not_o the_o universal_a that_o the_o term_n pillar_n note_v not_o the_o infallibility_n &_o c_o do_v god_n speak_v thus_o in_o scripture_n or_o rather_o do_v not_o mr._n poole_n vent_v these_o wild_a fancy_n without_o scripture_n or_o any_o unquestioned_a authority_n this_o late_a be_v most_o evident_a and_o can_v he_o think_v by_o such_o farfetcht_a gloss_n either_o to_o rob_v the_o apostle_n of_o his_o plain_a obvious_a sense_n or_o to_o make_v i_o believe_v that_o his_o guess_n hit_v right_a on_o god_n true_a meaning_n deliver_v in_o this_o text_n if_o he_o reply_v the_o meaning_n may_v be_v as_o he_o guess_v i_o answer_v and_o it_o may_v not_o be_v as_o he_o guess_v who_o be_v here_o to_o judge_v between_o we_o who_o can_v tell_v i_o that_o mr._n pool_n may_v be_v be_v a_o prop_n sure_a enough_o to_o build_v my_o faith_n upon_o he_o be_v therefore_o to_o show_v positive_o by_o a_o propositio_fw-la quiescens_fw-la that_o be_v by_o some_o cogent_a proof_n and_o undoubted_a authority_n that_o s._n paul_n word_n must_v be_v understand_v as_o he_o gloss_n and_o consequent_o be_v oblige_v to_o make_v good_a some_o one_o of_o these_o desperate_a proposition_n christ_n jesus_n have_v now_o no_o infallible_a religion_n teach_v or_o learn_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n all_o christian_a society_n be_v fallible_a that_o holy_a and_o universal_a church_n mention_v in_o the_o creed_n be_v fallible_a etc._n etc._n but_o to_o wave_v such_o proof_n to_o lay_v hold_n on_o a_o text_n in_o scripture_n and_o torture_v it_o as_o he_o please_v and_o after_o the_o misusage_n to_o tell_v we_o the_o text_n prove_v nothing_o be_v only_o to_o sport_v with_o god_n word_n and_o say_v that_o scripture_n make_v no_o scripture_n by_o whole_a heap_n of_o fallible_a gloss_n be_v proofle_n the_o foundation_n be_v good_a but_o the_o superstructure_n be_v naught_o give_v i_o the_o strong_a place_n in_o scripture_n for_o any_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n i_o can_v by_o piddle_v at_o the_o text_n with_o unevidence_v gloss_n both_o so_o pervert_v and_o poison_v the_o word_n that_o at_o last_o they_o speak_v haeresy_n yet_o on_o such_o unproved_a conjecture_n protestant_a religion_n stand_v and_o can_v never_o have_v better_a foot_n while_o god_n unwritten_a word_n be_v reject_v and_o no_o infallible_a teacher_n be_v allow_v of_o that_o learn_v we_o truth_n one_o word_n more_o and_o i_o end_v have_v those_o two_o gallant_n luther_n and_o calvin_n when_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o reform_v the_o darken_a world_n of_o popery_n thus_o alarm_v their_o hearer_n my_o master_n we_o preach_v indeed_o a_o new_a gospel_n upon_o the_o best_a conjecture_n we_o be_v able_a but_o you_o must_v know_v that_o all_o we_o say_v be_v fallible_a how_o sick_a will_v such_o a_o say_n have_v make_v the_o strong_a stomach_n among_o they_o for_o if_o fallible_a if_o uncertain_a doctrine_n it_o be_v none_o of_o christ_n jesus_n doctrine_n and_o therefore_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o a_o more_o pure_a refine_n and_o how_o know_v our_o protestant_n but_o that_o yet_o a_o new_a sort_n of_o people_n may_v startup_n and_o make_v it_o their_o task_n to_o reform_v all_o the_o fallible_a reformer_n that_o have_v trouble_v the_o world_n since_o luther_n day_n have_v i_o no_o other_o just_a exception_n against_o our_o protestant_n but_o thus_o much_o only_o that_o they_o yet_o know_v not_o where_o about_o they_o be_v in_o their_o reformation_n and_o because_o fallible_a can_v never_o know_v whether_o for_o example_n the_o thing_n they_o have_v in_o hand_n be_v yet_o a_o mere_a embryo_n of_o religion_n or_o of_o a_o more_o perfect_a shape_n a_o new_a lay_v egg_n or_o a_o hatch_a chicken_n whether_o they_o themselves_o be_v yet_o only_a novice_n proficient_n or_o master_n in_o the_o trade_n of_o reformation_n i_o say_v be_v there_o no_o more_o this_o alone_a will_v fright_v i_o from_o ever_o be_v protestant_n believe_v it_o the_o professor_n of_o a_o uncertain_a and_o endless_a reformable_a religion_n shall_v never_o come_v to_o settlement_n till_o they_o renounce_v the_o cheat_n and_o believe_v as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v ad_fw-la gal._n 1._o 8._o licet_fw-la nos_fw-la etc._n etc._n altough_n we_o or_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v otherwise_o to_o you_o then_o we_o have_v preach_v to_o you_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v which_o be_v full_o to_o say_v believe_v he_o not_o and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n observe_v how_o destructive_a these_o word_n be_v of_o a_o uncertain_a and_o fallible_a teach_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n for_o admit_v which_o mr._n poole_n grant_v that_o all_o christian_a community_n all_o council_n all_o father_n all_o tradition_n etc._n etc._n deliver_v only_o fallible_a doctrine_n that_o be_v doctrine_n liable_a to_o error_n i_o only_o may_v not_o but_o be_o oblige_v to_o disbelieve_v this_o truth_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o believe_v he_o or_o a_o angel_n send_v from_o heaven_n if_o either_o of_o they_o preach_v contrary_a to_o this_o fallible_a learning_n why_o doctrine_n that_o be_v fallible_a may_v be_v false_a but_o the_o preach_n of_o a_o angel_n send_v from_o heaven_n can_v be_v false_a and_o therefore_o be_v more_o certain_a than_o christian_a doctrine_n that_o may_v be_v false_a but_o i_o be_o oblige_v to_o quit_v the_o less_o certain_a doctrine_n for_o the_o most_o certain_a preach_v of_o a_o angel_n
not_o so_o evident_o credible_a when_o he_o say_v he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n move_v he_o to_o believe_v it_o the_o infallibility_n of_o it_o therefore_o must_v by_o prove_v by_o some_o good_a principle_n extrinsic_a to_o scripture_n but_o the_o sectary_n have_v not_o one_o sound_a principle_n distinct_a from_o the_o tradition_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o this_o infallibility_n be_v prove_v therefore_o scripture_n in_o order_n to_o he_o be_v not_o so_o infallible_a as_o the_o church_n be_v to_o the_o catholic_n if_o any_o deny_v my_o principle_n and_o make_v the_o scripture_n infallibility_n discernible_a by_o its_o own_o light_n by_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o style_n purity_n of_o its_o doctrine_n or_o efficacy_n it_o work_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o those_o who_o read_v it_o etc._n etc._n i_o think_v there_o be_v evident_a demonstration_n against_o the_o paradox_n for_o as_o i_o note_v disc_n 1._o c._n 2._o 12._o n._n 4._o two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v in_o scripture_n first_o the_o exterior_a syntax_n or_o connexion_n of_o the_o word_n and_o so_o much_o precise_o be_v not_o the_o scripture_n total_a infallibility_n which_o say_v more_o beside_o that_o exterior_a language_n and_o necessary_o imply_v a_o divine_a act_n a_o volition_n or_o decree_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o hagiographer_n that_o write_v the_o word_n be_v infallible_o assist_v and_o determine_v to_o record_v truth_n and_o nothing_o but_o truth_n now_o this_o divine_a volition_n or_o decree_n because_o it_o be_v essential_a to_o god_n and_o therefore_o no_o other_o but_o god_n himself_o can_v be_v no_o object_n of_o our_o sense_n when_o we_o hear_v or_o read_v scripture_n consequent_o it_o be_v to_o be_v discover_v by_o a_o discourse_n ground_v on_o principle_n distinct_a from_o the_o outward_a letter_n of_o scripture_n whereby_o we_o may_v come_v to_o a_o sure_a evidence_n of_o its_o infallibility_n not_o at_o all_o yet_o within_o the_o reach_n of_o our_o sense_n and_o this_o no_o sectary_n can_v do_v as_o i_o shall_v present_o make_v evident_a 17._o i_o say_v therefore_o if_o the_o motive_n now_o allege_v for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n as_o conversion_n miracle_n universality_n etc._n etc._n induce_v not_o immediate_o to_o believe_v that_o church_n they_o demonstrate_v to_o be_v infallible_a much_o less_o can_v the_o exterior_a word_n or_o sintax_n of_o scripture_n be_v a_o fit_a medium_fw-la to_o convince_v any_o of_o its_o infallibility_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o beside_o what_o be_v often_o note_v in_o the_o treatise_n chief_o disc_n 1._o c._n 8._o n._n 7._o ill_o here_o only_o propose_v two_o question_n the_o first_o whether_o if_o st._n john_n who_o be_v infallible_o assist_v have_v not_o record_v that_o short_a sentence_n in_o his_o gospel_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n but_o some_o other_o not_o infallible_o assist_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v write_v the_o very_a same_o verity_n as_o it_o be_v by_o chance_n my_o question_n i_o say_v be_v whether_o the_o sectary_n that_o now_o read_v this_o sentence_n in_o s._n john_n gospel_n can_v more_o discover_v a_o infallibility_n in_o it_o by_o force_n of_o the_o outward_a word_n then_o if_o they_o have_v be_v casual_o write_v by_o one_o without_o infallible_a assistance_n i_o think_v he_o will_v not_o dare_v to_o say_v yes_o or_o if_o he_o do_v i_o will_v urge_v he_o to_o prove_v it_o by_o principle_n when_o the_o outward_a word_n be_v the_o very_o same_o in_o both_o case_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n clear_a to_o all_o that_o read_v they_o my_o second_o demand_n may_v yet_o perhaps_o better_a evidence_n what_o i_o aim_v at_o and_o be_v thus_o suppose_v that_o our_o sectary_n shall_v put_v the_o book_n of_o eclesiastes_n which_o they_o hold_v canonical_a into_o the_o hand_n of_o twelve_o learned_a gentile_a philosopher_n and_o with_o it_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n or_o eclesiasticus_n also_o not_o hold_v canonical_a by_o they_o suppose_v again_o they_o desire_v these_o learned_a and_o disinterress_v man_n serious_o to_o read_v these_o three_o book_n and_o after_o the_o read_v sincere_o to_o tell_v they_o which_o of_o they_o have_v god_n spirit_n in_o it_o or_o contain_v his_o infallible_a verity_n for_o this_o may_v be_v easy_o gather_v by_o the_o very_a natural_a evidence_n of_o what_o they_o read_v by_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o style_n efficacy_n of_o speak_v which_o appear_v clear_o enough_o in_o the_o outward_a letter_n thus_o much_o do_v separate_v these_o philosopher_n by_o four_o and_o four_o into_o three_o company_n put_v they_o into_o three_o different_a cell_n much_o after_o that_o manner_n as_o some_o say_v the_o sevent_o interpreter_n be_v separate_v let_v they_o with_o all_o sincerity_n read_v examine_v and_o peruse_v these_o book_n and_o if_o when_o the_o work_n be_v end_v they_o unanimous_o accord_v that_o a_o great_a divinity_n a_o strong_a infallibility_n appear_v in_o the_o song_n of_o solomon_n then_o in_o the_o other_o two_o book_n we_o will_v say_v something_o be_v prove_v and_o hold_v it_o as_o strange_a a_o miracle_n as_o that_o which_o s._n austin_n recount_v of_o the_o 70._o interpreter_n now_o if_o any_o tell_v we_o this_o light_n of_o scripture_n though_o sufficient_a in_o itself_o be_v not_o evident_a to_o every_o one_o that_o look_v on_o it_o because_o the_o blindness_n or_o perverseness_n of_o man_n mind_n may_v keep_v they_o from_o the_o discovery_n of_o it_o the_o reply_n have_v no_o place_n here_o for_o we_o suppose_v first_o these_o philosopher_n to_o be_v disinterress_v learned_a upright_a and_o sincere_a as_o well_o in_o their_o read_n as_o in_o the_o judgement_n they_o give_v of_o it_o and_o second_o we_o will_v suppose_v that_o all_o those_o be_v not_o blind_a who_o sectary_n make_v blind_a nor_o only_o those_o quick_a sight_v i_o mean_v themselves_o who_o they_o will_v have_v so_o 18._o to_o these_o question_n i_o add_v one_o more_o it_o may_v pass_v for_o a_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la against_o sectary_n who_o hold_v all_o the_o definition_n of_o our_o church_n even_o when_o they_o be_v true_a to_o be_v yet_o fallible_a i_o ask_v whether_o these_o quick_a sight_a man_n be_v able_a to_o discern_v the_o fallibility_n of_o these_o definition_n by_o force_n of_o the_o outward_a word_n thereof_o only_o as_o they_o discover_v the_o infallibility_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o style_n and_o outward_a sintax_n and_o mack_o where_o the_o force_n of_o the_o difficulty_n lie_v as_o infallibility_n necessary_o imply_v divine_a assistance_n in_o order_n to_o the_o truth_n deliver_v in_o holy_a scripture_n so_o the_o suppose_a fallibility_n of_o the_o church_n definition_n imply_v a_o want_n of_o that_o assistance_n in_o order_n to_o those_o definition_n i_o ask_v therefore_o whether_o as_o the_o first_o be_v discernible_a and_o visible_a enough_o to_o their_o eye_n by_o the_o very_a context_n of_o the_o outward_a letter_n they_o will_v consequent_o grant_v that_o the_o other_o also_o be_v as_o clear_o visible_a and_o discernible_a by_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o definition_n if_o they_o answer_v yes_o first_o they_o need_v not_o hereafter_o to_o impugn_v the_o church_n definition_n by_o any_o other_o medium_fw-la but_o this_o that_o they_o be_v without_o further_a proof_n by_o themselves_o evident_o fallible_a so_o much_o be_v say_v by_o they_o and_o it_o proof_n enough_o 2._o they_o may_v as_o well_o say_v they_o know_v when_o a_o man_n tell_v we_o a_o lie_v and_o this_o by_o force_n of_o his_o very_a speak_n as_o that_o they_o know_v the_o suppose_a fallibility_n of_o the_o church_n definition_n by_o her_o speak_n for_o if_o their_o eye_n can_v discern_v the_o want_n of_o divine_a assistance_n in_o the_o one_o case_n which_o real_o be_v not_o want_v they_o may_v more_o easy_o discern_v the_o want_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o other_o which_o real_o be_v want_v and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o paradox_n there_o be_v never_o any_o in_o the_o world_n now_o contrariwise_o if_o they_o can_v discover_v the_o church_n suppose_a fallibility_n in_o her_o definition_n mere_o by_o her_o exterior_a word_n because_o that_o be_v a_o thing_n invisible_a i_o will_v glad_o learn_v how_o they_o come_v to_o know_v the_o infallibility_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o word_n thereof_o for_o that_o be_v as_o much_o if_o not_o more_o invisible_a and_o as_o far_o remove_v from_o our_o eye_n and_o sense_n 19_o some_o who_o pitiful_o suppose_v scripture_n to_o be_v prove_v divine_a and_o infallible_a by_o the_o very_a light_n which_o be_v in_o they_o object_n first_o when_o we_o see_v the_o sun_n and_o the_o vast_a extent_n of_o the_o light_n it_o have_v we_o may_v well_o infer_v it_o come_v from_o that_o luminous_a body_n and_o may_v we_o not_o say_v these_o proportionable_o infer_v from_o the_o
impudent_a he_o must_v say_v no._n all_o therefore_o he_o can_v reply_v be_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o church_n after_o a_o perusal_n of_o scripture_n find_v these_o verity_n contain_v there_o and_o propose_v all_o to_o he_o as_o thing_n certain_o reveal_v therefore_o he_o believe_v they_o here_o we_o come_v to_o the_o trial_n of_o protestant_n faith_n and_o mark_v well_o how_o avoidable_o they_o be_v force_v to_o grant_v that_o when_o a_o pretend_a revelation_n proponent_n sectary_n must_v own_v a_o infallible_a proponent_n be_v not_o manifest_a for_o they_o but_o lie_v if_o at_o all_o very_o dark_o in_o scripture_n it_o must_v be_v bring_v to_o light_v and_o make_v more_o clear_a by_o some_o teacher_n some_o one_o or_o other_o if_o it_o have_v influence_n into_o faith_n must_v apply_v it_o and_o propose_v it_o to_o a_o hearer_n as_o god_n certain_a word_n without_o this_o application_n make_v by_o a_o certain_a teacher_n no_o christian_a can_v but_o most_o temerarious_o admit_v of_o the_o revelation_n as_o divine_a and_o certain_a 10._o demand_v therefore_o in_o the_o last_o place_n whether_o all_o the_o minister_n in_o england_n be_v able_a to_o propound_v certain_o and_o infallible_o the_o above_o mention_v doctrine_n dark_o at_o least_o and_o indeed_o not_o all_o contain_v in_o scripture_n as_o god_n reveal_v truth_n to_o any_o the_o answer_n must_v be_v negative_a they_o can_v for_o if_o they_o propose_v they_o infallible_o minister_n be_v infallible_a ergo_fw-la say_v i_o none_o can_v believe_v these_o doctrine_n for_o god_n certain_a revelation_n because_o the_o proposal_n of_o they_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o apply_v the_o revelation_n be_v defective_a weak_a dubious_a and_o uncertain_a the_o faith_n therefore_o which_o follow_v upon_o so_o unsteedy_a a_o teach_v not_o but_o be_v answerable_o roll_a that_o be_v in_o one_o word_n no_o faith_n at_o all_o and_o protestant_n have_v no_o better_a 11._o some_o perhaps_o may_v say_v though_o protestant_n have_v no_o great_a certainty_n of_o the_o doctrine_n above_o specify_v because_o they_o be_v neither_o express_o in_o scripture_n nor_o assert_v by_o any_o infallible_a teacher_n yet_o their_o faith_n in_o fundamental_o universal_o hold_v by_o all_o christian_n stand_v sure_a enough_o and_o be_v infallible_a such_o truth_n shall_v never_o fail_v and_o so_o far_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n may_v it_o be_v likely_a be_v hold_v infallible_a 12._o hereafter_o we_o shall_v treat_v more_o large_o of_o fundamental_a point_n and_o therefore_o at_o present_a will_v wave_v what_o be_v not_o pertinent_a to_o answer_v this_o reply_n and_o pertinent_a uncertain_a why_o doctrine_n of_o protesta_fw-la as_o protestant_n be_v uncertain_a it_o be_v to_o say_v first_o that_o not_o one_o doctrine_n peculiar_a to_o protestant_n as_o protestant_n because_o neither_o express_o find_v in_o scripture_n nor_o assert_v by_o any_o infallible_a teacher_n can_v certain_o be_v believe_v upon_o divine_a revelation_n that_o these_o sectary_n teach_v not_o their_o own_o protestant_a tenant_n infallible_o be_v grant_v that_o scripture_n do_v not_o in_o express_a term_n without_o intolerable_a gloss_v deliver_v one_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v after_o a_o few_o page_n most_o evident_a and_o thus_o if_o this_o last_o reply_n be_v to_o any_o purpose_n it_o bring_v ruin_n to_o that_o part_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v call_v protestancy_n i_o say_v second_o there_o be_v scarce_o one_o article_n of_o christ_n sacred_a doctrine_n so_o clear_o express_v in_o scripture_n which_o may_v not_o will_v man_n take_v the_o liberty_n as_o sectary_n do_v by_o wilful_a gloss_n to_o alienate_v it_o from_o the_o church_n sense_n be_v pervert_v arian_n have_v teach_v they_o this_o mode_n of_o gloze_a and_o they_o exact_o follow_v it_o separate_a therefore_o the_o word_n faith_n doubful_a word_n of_o scripture_n separate_v from_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n ground_z not_z faith_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n we_o can_v believe_v nothing_o we_o have_v no_o more_o but_o a_o body_n without_o a_o soul_n guess_v without_o certainty_n and_o upon_o such_o uncertainty_n the_o whole_a faith_n of_o protestant_n do_v and_o must_v rely_v which_o be_v deplorable_a and_o here_o ask_v they_o when_o they_o appeal_v as_o they_o ever_o do_v to_o scripture_n what_o they_o mean_v by_o scripture_n which_o needs_o interpretation_n even_o in_o point_n most_o fundamental_a must_v we_o admit_v of_o their_o interpretation_n why_o so_o more_o than_o of_o other_o as_o learned_a as_o they_o why_o not_o as_o well_o on_o the_o present_a church_n interpretation_n this_o be_v as_o good_a to_o say_v no_o more_o as_o their_o fallible_a guess_n be_v but_o of_o this_o subject_a hereafter_o i_o say_v three_o never_o infallible_a the_o church_n in_o all_o her_o doctrine_n equal_o infallible_a any_o catholic_n church_n hitherto_o hold_v itself_o infallible_a in_o a_o few_o fundamental_a doctrine_n and_o not_o in_o other_o therefore_o protestant_n be_v more_o insolent_o bold_a whilst_o they_o attempt_v to_o make_v this_o distinction_n than_o ever_o any_o church_n yet_o be_v what_o that_o mere_a fallible_a man_n shall_v be_v my_o doctor_n and_o ex_fw-la tripod_n define_v so_o far_o the_o church_n hold_v infallible_a doctrine_n but_o no_o further_o it_o will_v be_v well_o nigh_o eight_o degree_n of_o madness_n in_o i_o to_o believe_v they_o admit_v once_o of_o this_o a_o new_a haeretick_n may_v step_v out_o and_o defend_v as_o stout_o yea_o and_o upon_o as_o solid_a ground_n that_o scripture_n itself_o it_o not_o infallible_a but_o only_o in_o a_o few_o fundamental_a matter_n yet_o unknown_a to_o the_o world_n if_o you_o say_v this_o sound_v too_o harsh_o and_o can_v be_v grant_v parallel_v i_o beseech_v you_o your_o own_o wild_a assertion_n with_o it_o school_n the_o church_n be_v christ_n school_n and_o see_v whether_o that_o run_v much_o smooth_a thus_o it_o be_v christ_n have_v erect_v a_o school_n which_o be_v his_o church_n where_o christian_n be_v to_o learn_v his_o sacred_a doctrine_n but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o it_o they_o find_v more_o than_o the_o half_a of_o its_o doctrine_n doubtful_a fallible_a unsound_a uncertain_a alas_o aristotle_n or_o plato_n school_n can_v cfford_v we_o topic_n and_o uncertainty_n enough_o i_o hope_v christ_n school_n can_v learn_v we_o better_o four_o be_v the_o church_n false_o suppose_v fallible_a in_o the_o delivery_n of_o some_o doctrine_n less_o fundamental_a it_o will_v be_v much_o safe_a to_o believe_v it_o than_o protestant_n who_o may_v err_v in_o all_o they_o say_v and_o then_o most_o when_o be_v void_a of_o proof_n they_o stand_v trifle_v with_o a_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_o and_o not_o fundamental_o herein_o as_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n they_o be_v most_o fallible_a and_o must_v i_o think_v you_o credit_n man_n that_o can_v say_v nothing_o certain_o 13._o five_o and_o i_o end_v admit_v once_o of_o a_o church_n with_o this_o half_a infallibility_n in_o fundamental_o our_o sectary_n who_o so_o furious_o oppugn_v that_o whole_a infallibility_n which_o we_o ascribe_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v answer_v their_o own_o argument_n against_o we_o for_o here_o we_o question_v they_o as_o they_o do_v we_o where_o or_o in_o what_o protestant_n rational_a query_n make_v to_o protestant_n subject_n be_v that_o partial_a infallibility_n lodge_v what_o pastor_n designable_a be_v endue_v with_o it_o how_o shall_v we_o make_v our_o address_n to_o they_o in_o doubt_n and_o difficulty_n if_o none_o know_v where_o or_o who_o they_o be_v what_o kind_n of_o infallibility_n be_v this_o by_o who_o assure_a testimony_n can_v we_o learn_v what_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la funaamentali_fw-la what_o not_o what_o if_o these_o pastor_n be_v divide_v among_o themselves_o in_o their_o decision_n of_o fundameetal_n who_o judgement_n be_v final_o to_o be_v stand_v too_o &_o c._n these_o and_o the_o like_a question_n most_o easy_o answer_v by_o catholic_n when_o they_o give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o belief_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v in_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n press_v so_o strong_o upon_o protestant_n that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v ever_o have_v a_o satisfactory_a answer_n perhaps_o to_o spirit_n protestant_n pretence_n to_o a_o private_a spirit_n solve_v they_o some_o will_v recurre_v to_o the_o private_a spirit_n and_o say_v this_o tell_v we_o they_o all_o truth_n in_o these_o doubt_n contra._n ask_v only_o here_o whether_o this_o spirit_n make_v they_o or_o their_o pastor_n infallible_a or_o can_v direct_v other_o to_o find_v out_o such_o infallible_a pastor_n if_o they_o reply_v those_o be_v such_o as_o teach_v god_n word_n pure_o the_o answer_n be_v impertinent_a for_o we_o ask_v whether_o it_o assist_v any_o to_o teach_v god_n pure_a word_n infallible_o and_o who_o they_o be_v it_o may_v be_v other_o will_v say_v that_o christ_n never_o have_v since_o the_o apostle_n
a_o lawful_a syllogism_n whereby_o they_o prove_v that_o their_o reason_n have_v ever_o the_o good_a luck_n the_o singular_a privilege_n to_o fall_v right_a on_o the_o true_a sense_n whilst_o right_a no_o principle_n to_o prove_v that_o protestant_n reason_n hitt'_v right_a other_o as_o learned_a as_o they_o swerve_v from_o it_o if_o here_o they_o talk_v of_o the_o unction_n teach_v truth_n of_o the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n they_o will_v be_v urge_v again_o for_o a_o principle_n to_o prove_v that_o these_o favour_n singular_o belong_v to_o they_o and_o not_o to_o other_o who_o dissent_n from_o they_o but_o we_o will_v wave_v this_o argument_n and_o only_a note_n how_o in_o all_o those_o dispute_n which_o our_o protestant_n hold_v either_o with_o catholic_n or_o sectary_n take_v for_o a_o instance_n the_o arian_n the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v so_o far_o of_o from_o be_v a_o question_n the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n when_o two_o sectary_n dispute_n be_v ever_o the_o thing_n in_o question_n receive_a principle_n by_o both_o these_o litigious_a party_n that_o it_o be_v ever_o the_o thing_n in_o question_n and_o must_v be_v prove_v by_o another_o own_a and_o admit_v principle_n if_o the_o discourse_n stand_v upon_o solid_a ground_n 3._o one_o example_n will_v give_v you_o more_o light_n mr._n poole_n assault_v a_o arian_n a_o far_o weak_a adversary_n than_o a_o instance_n it_o be_v prove_v by_o a_o instance_n catholic_n with_o a_o scriptural_a proof_n for_o that_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o sacred_a trinity_n and_o argue_v thus_o scripture_n say_v john_n 1._o c._n 5._o 7._o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n word_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o but_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o scripture_n say_v mr._n poole_n be_v that_o god_n be_v one_o in_o essenced_a and_o three_o distinct_a person_n the_o father_n vnproduced_a the_o son_n produce_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o both_o ergo_fw-la we_o must_v admit_v a_o trinity_n observe_v well_o the_o arian_n admit_n the_o first_o proposition_n or_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n and_o here_o be_v the_o only_a principle_n agree_v on_o by_o these_o two_o disputant_n but_o utter_o deny_v the_o second_o viz._n the_o sense_n draw_v out_o of_o these_o word_n and_o tell_v we_o sense_n the_o arian_n admit_n of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n but_o deny_v mr._n pool_n sense_n his_o adversary_n that_o this_o sense_n be_v the_o very_a thing_n in_o question_n but_o no_o receive_a principle_n and_o therefore_o must_v be_v prove_v not_o suppose_v against_o he_o prove_v i_o say_v and_o by_o sole_a scripture_n which_o yet_o can_v be_v do_v though_o we_o turn_v to_o all_o the_o text_n in_o the_o bible_n most_o just_o therefore_o may_v the_o arian_n tell_v mr._n poole_n if_o his_o faith_n fall_v upon_o such_o a_o determinate_a sense_n now_o give_v he_o believe_v it_o either_o because_o his_o private_a judgement_n mould_n scripture_n to_o that_o mean_v or_o because_o he_o take_v it_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o church_n which_o he_o profess_o disow_v and_o will_v not_o believe_v 4._o in_o reference_n to_o what_o be_v here_o say_v note_v first_o that_o as_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v suppose_v and_o not_o prove_v against_o a_o arian_n by_o force_n of_o scripture_n in_o this_o particular_a mystery_n so_o much_o more_o it_o be_v ever_o suppose_a and_o not_o prove_v when_o protestant_n dispute_v against_o catholic_n the_o reason_n be_v their_o private_a judgement_n triumph_n protestant_n first_o frame_n to_o themselves_o a_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o then_o triumph_n first_o make_v what_o sense_n they_o please_v which_o be_v no_o receive_a principle_n and_o afterward_o they_o vapour_n like_o conqueror_n as_o if_o sole_a scripture_n do_v the_o deed_n and_o defeat_v we_o upon_o the_o great_a assurance_n i_o have_v of_o this_o my_o assertion_n i_o challenge_v mr._n poole_n or_o any_o protestant_n judgement_n they_o have_v not_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n without_o the_o mixture_n of_o their_o private_a judgement_n to_o produce_v one_o text_n against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n which_o without_o the_o mixture_n of_o their_o private_a judgement_n or_o unadmit_v gloss_n speak_v so_o much_o as_o probably_n against_o it_o the_o more_o plausible_a place_n they_o insist_v on_o be_v that_o of_o st._n john_n cap._n 6._o unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n etc._n etc._n for_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n which_o nevertheless_o must_v have_v twenty_o gloss_n and_o as_o many_o self_n judgement_n upon_o it_o before_o it_o can_v put_v on_o a_o likelihood_n of_o a_o proof_n against_o we_o 5._o note_v 2._o that_o whilst_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n lie_v under_o dispute_n and_o be_v not_o agree_v on_o by_o the_o two_o party_n scripture_n why_o protestant_n lose_v labour_n when_o they_o argue_v by_o scripture_n at_o difference_n for_o example_n a_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n it_o be_v but_o labour_v lose_v in_o the_o protestant_n to_o assault_v his_o adversary_n with_o text_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o catholic_n answer_n olim_fw-la possideo_fw-la prio_fw-la possideo_fw-la i_o have_v ever_o believe_v the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n to_o be_v such_o as_o you_o know_v we_o catholic_n own_v and_o can_v you_o my_o antagonist_n answer_v what_o the_o catholic_n answer_v persuade_v yourself_o to_o drive_v i_o out_o of_o the_o possession_n of_o my_o ancient_a belief_n by_o your_o sole_a private_a judgement_n or_o those_o new_a gloss_n you_o father_n on_o scripture_n if_o so_o a_o worthy_a gentleman_n who_o by_o right_a of_o his_o ancestor_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o upward_o now_o quiet_o possess_v his_o land_n may_v be_v turn_v out_o of_o house_n and_o harbour_n upon_o the_o private_a judgement_n of_o some_o new_a upstart_n fellow_n that_o tell_v we_o he_o he_o very_o think_v the_o ancient_a write_n for_o his_o land_n be_v not_o well_o understand_v therefore_o he_o will_v first_o do_v he_o the_o favour_n to_o explicate_v they_o according_a to_o his_o private_a opinion_n though_o contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n hitherto_o receive_v which_o do_v he_o will_v drive_v he_o out_o a_o door_n and_o make_v he_o a_o beggar_n this_o be_v our_o very_a case_n 6._o contrariwise_o when_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v scripture_n how_o we_o may_v argue_v from_o scripture_n agree_v on_o we_o may_v argue_v as_o schoolman_n do_v and_o draw_v from_o it_o theological_a conclusion_n which_o though_o often_o various_a among_o divine_n yet_o the_o principle_n admit_v i_o mean_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n remain's_n unquestioned_a and_o be_v maintain_v without_o contradiction_n without_o such_o a_o agree_v on_o sense_n which_o either_o scripture_n as_o it_o often_o do_v deliver_n plain_o enough_o or_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o learned_a man_n make_v high_o probable_a or_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n declare_v certain_a it_o be_v to_o no_o more_o purpose_n to_o dispute_v out_o of_o scripture_n then_o to_o speak_v arabic_a to_o a_o illiterate_a peasant_n yet_o the_o loose_a behaviour_n of_o our_o protestant_n be_v such_o that_o it_o lead_v they_o without_o the_o guidance_n of_o these_o light_n first_o to_o fancy_n sectary_n the_o fancy_n of_o sectary_n a_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o and_o then_o draw_v strange_a conclusion_n from_o it_o so_o mr._n poole_n after_o he_o have_v by_o his_o own_o interpretation_n pervert_v that_o text_n of_o st._n paul_n the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n may_v well_o say_v the_o church_n be_v not_o prove_v infallible_a thus_o much_o be_v note_v if_o the_o word_n reason_n signify_v a_o formal_a discourse_n 7._o perhaps_o protestant_n may_v reply_v for_o in_o truth_n it_o refute_v another_o acception_n of_o the_o word_n reason_n refute_v be_v the_o hard_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n where_o to_o have_v they_o in_o their_o answer_n that_o reason_n here_o import_v not_o any_o discourse_n at_o all_o but_o a_o immediate_a clear_a light_n transfuse_v into_o their_o mind_n when_o they_o read_v scripture_n like_o a_o beam_n shoot_v from_o the_o sun_n whereby_o their_o eye_n as_o perspicuous_o discern_v the_o most_o abstruse_a sense_n in_o it_o as_o man_n do_v the_o sun_n by_o its_o light_n or_o the_o first_o know_v principle_n of_o nature_n by_o their_o own_o indisputable_a evidence_n be_v this_o reply_n think_v you_o rational_a that_o draw_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o dram_n of_o reason_n after_o it_o for_o if_o their_o new_a faith_n have_v set_v new_a eye_n in_o their_o head_n it_o have_v not_o sure_o pluck_v out_o their_o neighbour_n eye_n who_o yet_o i_o hope_v may_v see_v what_o be_v discernible_a by_o all._n none_o then_o ever_o question_v the_o suns-shining_a at_o noonday_n or_o write_v commentary_n on_o the_o first_o
infallible_a teacher_n to_o learn_v we_o now_o infallible_o what_o that_o write_a word_n speak_v in_o a_o hundred_o teach_v as_o great_a necessity_n now_o to_o learn_v we_o what_o scripture_n speak_v as_o what_o christ_n teach_v controvert_v point_n as_o then_o be_v necessary_a to_o declare_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n which_o he_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n i_o say_v the_o substance_n for_o without_o all_o doubt_n the_o apostle_n and_o the_o 70._o say_v explicit_o much_o more_o in_o their_o preach_v then_o mere_o what_o christ_n have_v implicit_o and_o in_o few_o word_n command_v they_o to_o preach_v yet_o they_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v swerve_v in_o any_o doctrinal_a point_n therefore_o in_o the_o publish_n his_o doctrine_n they_o have_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n before_o his_o ascension_n though_o it_o be_v then_o more_o ample_o confirm_v and_o promise_v anew_o not_o only_o to_o the_o apostle_n then_o live_v but_o also_o to_o their_o successor_n for_o ever_o 6._o and_o this_o be_v what_o our_o saviour_n dogmatical_o ever_o god_n spirit_n with_o his_o church_n for_o ever_o teach_v john_n 14._o 16._o of_o a_o comforter_n the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o shall_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o which_o word_n imply_v a_o continual_a abode_n can_v bu●_n be_v understand_v in_o a_o absolute_a sense_n yes_o say_v they_o he_o shall_v be_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o but_o how_o mark_v the_o gloss_n in_o regard_n of_o consolation_n and_o grace_n a_o mere_a guest_n grace_n not_o only_o for_o consolation_n and_o grace_n the_o only_a question_n be_v whether_o it_o hitt'_v right_a or_o no_o for_o who_o tell_v we_o you_o sir_n that_o this_o and_o no_o other_o be_v the_o absolute_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n why_o may_v they_o not_o as_o well_o import_v the_o assistance_n of_o infallibility_n as_o that_o of_o consolation_n and_o grace_n prove_v your_o gloss_n and_o by_o scripture_n this_o we_o urge_v for_o we_o catholic_n say_v without_o draw_v further_o proof_n from_o either_o council_n or_o father_n which_o you_o hold_v fallible_a that_o christ_n follow_a word_n john_n 16._o 13._o when_o that_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v come_v he_o will_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n take_v in_o their_o obvious_a sense_n warrant_v this_o infallible_a assistance_n for_o ever_o can_v your_o fallible_a spirit_n assure_v i_o of_o the_o contrary_a you_o say_v yes_o for_o these_o last_o word_n be_v restrain_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o here_o be_v another_o gloss_n or_o guess_n as_o unlucky_a as_o the_o former_a for_o who_o restrain_v here_o christ_n or_o you_o if_o you_o do_v it_o you_o may_v as_o well_o restrain_v the_o consolation_n of_o grace_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n successor_n as_o infallible_a assistance_n 7._o we_o prove_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o blessing_n grant_v to_o the_o church_n by_o our_o saviour_n own_o word_n matt._n 28._o 20._o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o moreover_o affirm_v that_o the_o consolation_n of_o grace_n grant_v the_o church_n who_o duty_n be_v to_o teach_v we_o truth_n benefit's_n little_a in_o order_n to_o that_o infallibility_n consolation_n of_o grace_n nothing_o in_o a_o whole_a church_n without_o infallibility_n end_n unless_o it_o be_v accompany_v with_o the_o further_a privilege_n of_o infallibility_n for_o what_o comfort_n have_v any_o whether_o learned_a or_o illiterate_a to_o hear_v that_o the_o pastor_n of_o christ_n church_n have_v m●●h_o interior_a consolation_n and_o grace_n if_o this_o sorrowful_a thought_n afflict_v his_o hart_n all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o th●se_a pastor_n notwithstanding_o the_o plenty_n of_o their_o grace_n may_v cheat_v he_o into_o damnable_a error_n and_o teach_v there_o be_v neither_o god_n heaven_n nor_o hell_n 8._o i_o may_v further_o show_v how_o utter_o inconsistent_a this_o suppose_a and_o yet_o vnexplicate_v consolation_n of_o grace_n church_n the_o consolation_n of_o grace_n and_o want_v of_o divine_a assistance_n uncompossible_a in_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n which_o may_v deceive_v we_o but_o the_o thing_n need_n be_v not_o proof_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o god_n who_o have_v promise_v to_o direct_v we_o by_o his_o pastor_n can_v comfort_v they_o so_o plentiful_o with_o celestial_a inspiration_n and_o permit_v all_o to_o delude_v and_o cozen_v we_o with_o pernicious_a error_n will_v he_o give_v they_o grace_n think_v you_o to_o talk_v only_o and_o not_o to_o teach_v his_o verity_n certain_o to_o live_v holy_o for_o his_o grace_n serve_v for_o some_o end_n and_o leave_v they_o to_o a_o possibility_n of_o corrupt_v his_o spouse_n his_o own_o sanctify_a truth_n god_n court_v not_o his_o church_n with_o comfort_n and_o permitt'_v it_o to_o betray_v his_o truth_n church_n with_o false_a doctrine_n this_o in_o a_o word_n be_v to_o tell_v god_n that_o he_o court_n be_v the_o watchman_n of_o his_o church_n with_o heavenly_a consolation_n who_o nevertheless_o may_v betray_v his_o cause_n and_o give_v up_o his_o city_n to_o the_o devil_n when_o they_o please_v for_o here_o in_o they_o be_v leave_v to_o their_o own_o will_n and_o fancy_n god_n you_o know_v be_v truth_n and_o he_o love_v truth_n truth_n be_v that_o which_o he_o first_o establish_v in_o his_o church_n and_o it_o answer_v to_o that_o first_o operation_n of_o christian_a which_o be_v divine_a faith_n the_o ground_n of_o all_o sanctity_n to_o tell_v i_o therefore_o that_o he_o comfort_v a_o whole_a church_n by_o sectary_n a_o paradox_n of_o sectary_n grace_n and_o yet_o leave_v it_o so_o totter_v upon_o uncertainty_n that_o none_o can_v with_o absolute_a assurance_n say_v he_o either_o teach_v or_o hear_v truth_n deliver_v in_o any_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v worse_a than_o a_o mere_a chimaera_n and_o make_v our_o bountiful_a lord_n not_o only_o a_o very_a niggard_n of_o his_o grace_n but_o also_o give_v he_o a_o most_o high_a affront_n the_o grace_n therefore_o of_o consolation_n infallibility_n the_o comfort_n of_o grace_n suppose_v the_o favour_n of_o infallibility_n which_o he_o allow_v his_o church_n as_o a_o church_n ever_o imply_v or_o suppose_v that_o arcb-favour_n of_o infallible_a assistance_n rob_v it_o of_o this_o privilege_n and_o other_o grace_n avail_v little_a 9_o and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n i_o must_v needs_o propose_v one_o question_n to_o our_o protestant_n it_o be_v whether_o god_n suppose_v his_o promise_n already_o make_v can_v grace_n a_o question_n propose_v whether_o the_o church_n can_v withstand_v a_o loose_a all_o grace_n according_a to_o their_o principle_n permit_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n vnassi_v by_o his_o infallible_a spirit_n lose_v withstand_v and_o reject_v what_o ever_o grace_n he_o give_v or_o have_v give_v it_o if_o they_o say_v yes_o it_o be_v possible_a then_o i_o infer_v god_n can_v permit_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v turn_v traitor_n and_o become_v impious_a for_o a_o church_n which_o withstand_v lose_v or_o reject_v all_o grace_n be_v traitorous_a and_o impious_a if_o they_o say_v no_o it_o be_v against_o his_o goodness_n to_o permit_v such_o a_o universal_a impiety_n they_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o can_v but_o preserve_v a_o church_n for_o ever_o whether_o consist_v of_o elect_a or_o no_o we_o dispute_v not_o in_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n grace_n truth_n as_o necessary_a to_o the_o church_n as_o grace_n and_o this_o infallible_o ergo_fw-la i_o say_v he_o can_v buth_n infallible_o also_o suppose_v his_o promise_n preserve_v it_o in_o truth_n by_o the_o special_a assistance_n of_o his_o own_o unerring_a spirit_n truth_n be_v as_o all_o know_v as_o necessary_a to_o the_o church_n as_o grace_n be_v and_o thus_o we_o see_v in_o notorious_a great_a sinner_n who_o although_o they_o have_v a_o thousand_o incitement_n of_o grace_n to_o amend_v their_o life_n yea_o better_a themselves_o by_o it_o in_o some_o particular_n yet_o as_o long_o as_o divine_a truth_n necessary_a to_o christian_n be_v want_v their_o state_n be_v deplorable_a to_o conclude_v then_o here_o be_v my_o dilemma_n either_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o be_v all_z the_o teacher_n and_o hearer_n in_o it_o may_v abandon_v all_o god_n reveal_v verity_n and_o neither_o teach_v nor_o hear_v one_o word_n of_o his_o truth_n or_o it_o be_v impossible_a if_o the_o first_o be_v grant_v it_o be_v not_o only_o possible_a that_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v revolt_v from_o god_n and_o truth_n but_o may_v loose_v all_o grace_n likewise_o grant_v this_o and_o say_v next_o what_o will_v become_v of_o our_o protestant_n elect_v people_n who_o because_o predestinate_v to_o eternal_a life_n can_v but_o have_v grace_n observe_v well_o sectary_n a_o paradox_n of_o sectary_n the_o paradox_n they_o can_v lose_v grace_n yet_o it_o be_v possible_a never_a to_o hear_v a_o word_n of_o
truth_n for_o all_o their_o minister_n be_v fallible_a what_o kind_n of_o elect_n be_v these_o who_o have_v certainty_n of_o grace_n but_o no_o certainty_n of_o truth_n with_o it_o now_o if_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o hold_v it_o impossible_a that_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v desert_n god_n truth_n they_o grant_v what_o we_o ask_v and_o must_v say_v it_o have_v the_o infallible_a assistance_n we_o plead_v for_o the_o reason_n hereof_o i_o have_v ample_o deliver_v in_o the_o former_a discourse_n chap._n 3._o because_o all_o the_o human_a science_n wit_n or_o learn_v in_o nature_n alone_o can_v no_o more_o secure_a a_o church_n grace_n god_n preserve_v his_o church_n a●_n sound_v in_o truth_n as_o sanctify_v by_o grace_n from_o error_n then_o give_v it_o grace_n god_n therefore_o do_v and_o will_v ever_o gracious_o prevent_v it_o with_o both_o these_o blessing_n and_o as_o infallible_o keep_v it_o sound_v in_o truth_n as_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a chap._n vii_o more_o of_o this_o subject_a 1._o by_o what_o be_v say_v in_o this_o short_a digression_n you_o see_v how_o pitiful_o our_o new_a man_n mangle_v the_o text_n now_o cite_v i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n hear_v their_o gloss_n yes_o say_v they._n this_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n but_o in_o a_o different_a degree_n for_o it_o be_v of_o continual_a and_o infallible_a assistance_n to_o the_o apostle_n but_o to_o their_o successor_n of_o continual_a and_o fit_a assistance_n but_o not_o infallible_a the_o like_a be_v repeat_v afterward_o assistance_n protestant_n trivial_a distinction_n of_o fit_v and_o infallible_a assistance_n when_o they_o ask_v what_o we_o say_v to_o this_o marry_o sir_n i_o say_v it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o you_o neither_o declare_v what_o this_o fit_a continual_a assistance_n grant_v these_o successor_n as_o distinct_a from_o the_o other_o allow_v the_o apostle_n be_v nor_o can_v you_o declare_v these_o different_a degree_n and_o though_o you_o do_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o general_n they_o still_o run_v on_o in_o general_n church_n sense_n you_o only_o vent_v your_o own_o feeble_a and_o fallible_a sentiment_n without_o proof_n which_o i_o neither_o aught_o nor_o can_v in_o prudence_n believe_v to_o be_v plain_a therefore_o be_v please_v to_o answer_v have_v god_n reveal_v to_o you_o what_o this_o fit_a and_o continual_a assistance_n grant_v the_o apostle_n successor_n be_v no._n do_v any_o ancient_a council_n or_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n mince_v these_o word_n and_o dogmatise_v here_o as_o you_o do_v or_o only_o mention_v a_o presence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o consolation_n and_o grace_n exclude_v infallible_a assistance_n no._n all_o be_v contrary_a as_o i_o can_v demonstrate_v be_v it_o here_o my_o task_n to_o prove_v truth_n against_o you_o but_o this_o be_v do_v by_o other_o as_o it_o be_v to_o force_v you_o to_o prove_v what_o your_o fancy_n only_o vent_v against_o it_o and_o mark_v how_o fancy_n go_v to_o work_v christ_n say_v i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v say_v your_o fancy_n he_o be_v present_a by_o his_o spirit_n by_o a_o fit_a assistance_n but_o not_o by_o a_o assistance_n infallible_a this_o gloss_n not_o by_o infallible_a assistance_n be_v your_o own_o for_o neither_o god_n word_n nor_o universal_a church_n nor_o general_n council_n nor_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n nor_o antiquity_n ever_o utter_v any_o thing_n like_o it_o grant_v therefore_o it_o be_v unreasonable_a as_o you_o say_v to_o put_v your_o party_n to_o prove_v a_o negative_a viz._n that_o any_o of_o the_o father_n deny_v this_o place_n to_o extend_v to_o infallibility_n i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v most_o reasonable_a to_o force_v you_o to_o a_o proof_n of_o your_o own_o affirmative_a for_o you_o doctrinal_o teach_v that_o christ_n in_o this_o place_n allow_v no_o certain_a infallibility_n to_o his_o church_n this_o because_o positive_o assert_v be_v positive_o to_o be_v make_v good_a by_o a_o more_o strenuous_a proof_n than_o fancy_n only_o you_o say_v again_o those_o of_o your_o party_n only_o deliver_v what_o they_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o mean_v of_o this_o and_o other_o place_n of_o father_n which_o do_v no_o more_o then_o prove_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n what_o they_o conceive_v weak_a fallible_a man_n pray_v proof_n sectary_n conceit_n instead_o of_o proof_n what_o be_o i_o the_o better_a for_o their_o conceit_n must_v i_o change_v my_o ancient_a faith_n for_o the_o roll_v and_o never_o agree_v fancy_n of_o a_o few_o minister_n why_o may_v not_o a_o arian_n or_o pelagian_a if_o sole_a conceive_n can_v do_v it_o as_o well_o gain_v i_o to_o his_o party_n as_o a_o protestant_n to_o his_o who_o think_v that_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a to_o that_o of_o the_o father_n i_o answer_v their_o indubitable_a own_v a_o church_n perpetual_a evident_o can_v we_o say_v no_o more_o suppose_v a_o church_n constant_o true_a and_o holy_a and_o the_o constant_a truth_n of_o it_o imply_v infallible_a assistance_n as_o be_v already_o prove_v 2._o protestant_n may_v yet_o reply_v they_o deliver_v what_o objection_n a_o objection_n they_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o christ_n word_n i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o etc._n etc._n catholic_n can_v do_v no_o more_o and_o mark_v well_o as_o the_o word_n do_v not_o explicit_o exclude_v infallible_a assistance_n from_o the_o church_n always_o so_o neither_o do_v they_o explicit_o include_v it_o for_o christ_n say_v not_o explicit_o i_o will_v be_v always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o my_o infallible_a assistance_n this_o then_o the_o case_n stand_v they_o restrain_v christ_n promise_n and_o we_o see_v to_o extend_v it_o too_o far_o they_o we_o say_v come_v to_o short_a of_o the_o sense_n by_o cut_v of_o infallible_a assistance_n we_o catholic_n they_o say_v go_v beyond_o the_o bound_n and_o add_v more_o to_o the_o text_n than_o christ_n speak_v both_o of_o we_o therefore_o be_v glosser_n and_o why_o be_v not_o their_o gloss_n as_o orthodox_n as_o we_o here_o be_v a_o better_a objection_n than_o any_o hitherto_o propose_v controversy_n the_o solution_n of_o it_o end_v all_o controversy_n and_o the_o solution_n may_v easy_o end_v all_o controversy_n will_v sectary_n plea_n to_o wave_v a_o few_o self-conceipt_n and_o prudent_o acquiesce_v to_o reason_n whilst_o truth_n plead_v again_v their_o error_n 3._o first_o then_o though_o i_o press_v not_o much_o this_o point_n interpretation_n sectary_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o prefer_v their_o interpretation_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o we_o catholic_n be_v the_o elder_a brother_n as_o numerous_a at_o least_o as_o they_o and_o to_o speak_v modest_o as_o learned_a why_o therefore_o when_o both_o they_o and_o we_o interpret_v scripture_n and_o stand_v as_o it_o be_v equal_o balance_v because_o it_o be_v yet_o suppose_v uncertain_a who_o guess_v better_o why_o be_v not_o i_o say_v our_o interpretation_n can_v we_o prove_v no_o more_o as_o good_a as_o they_o contrary_a to_o we_o if_o they_o prefer_v their_o gloss_n before_o we_o something_o of_o weight_n beside_o mere_a fancy_n must_v turn_v the_o scale_n and_o balance_n more_o for_o they_o then_o we_o we_o always_o ask_v for_o this_o great_a poise_n in_o controvert_v catholic_n to_o these_o of_o catholic_n matter_n and_o can_v get_v no_o answer_n 4._o second_o i_o must_v necessary_o here_o note_v a_o unworthy_a sectary_n a_o unworthy_a proceed_n of_o sectary_n proceed_n of_o sectary_n with_o we_o when_o we_o produce_v scripture_n father_n or_o council_n for_o catholic_n doctrine_n their_o humour_n and_o it_o be_v a_o a_o strange_a one_o run_v on_o thus_o first_o they_o begin_v with_o their_o gloss_n and_o labour_n to_o pervert_v that_o sense_n which_o the_o catholic_n own_v and_o if_o after_o much_o trifle_a they_o can_v disguise_n this_o sense_n or_o twine_v it_o of_o ●●om_n the_o catholic_n mean_v they_o hold_v the_o work_n do_v and_o cry_v victory_n mark_v in_o our_o present_a matter_n their_o frigid_a way_n of_o argue_v and_o it_o be_v alike_o in_o all_o other_o controversy_n that_o text_n say_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n may_v be_v restrain_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o that_o other_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o faith_n may_v have_v the_o sense_n they_o allow_v of_o and_o no_o more_o this_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o always_o etc._n etc._n may_v exclude_v infallibility_n and_o when_o they_o bring_v the_o close_a of_o a_o point_n debate_v to_o their_o own_o self-seeming_a it_o may_v be_v they_o think_v all_o safe_a whereas_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o nothing_o be_v yet_o so_o much_o as_o probable_o conclude_v for_o as_o they_o say_v the_o sense_n
of_o these_o place_n now_o cite_v may_v be_v as_o protestant_n understand_v proof_n the_o bare_a say_v of_o sectary_n stand_v for_o no_o proof_n so_o i_o say_v the_o contradictory_n proposition_n be_v every_o whit_n as_o good_a the_o sense_n may_v be_v as_o catholic_n understand_v who_o must_v therefore_o whilst_o we_o be_v both_o yet_o suppose_v to_o stand_v as_o it_o be_v on_o equal_a term_n determine_v what_o god_n have_v absolute_o reveal_v in_o these_o scripture_n i_o say_v absolute_o for_o the_o question_n here_o be_v not_o what_o a_o particular_a man_n may_v imagine_v god_n to_o have_v speak_v but_o what_o he_o have_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la speak_v the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v clear_a because_o god_n speak_v not_o in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n as_o this_o be_v to_o try_v man_n wit_n or_o to_o hear_v they_o tell_v he_o lord_n such_o may_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o your_o word_n reveal_v faith_n rely_v not_o on_o what_o private_a man_n think_v god_n have_v reveal_v though_o i_o can_v say_v what_o it_o be_v nor_o can_v our_o faith_n rely_v on_o what_o we_o only_o think_v he_o may_v have_v speak_v but_o on_o what_o he_o have_v actual_o reveal_v and_o we_o have_v mean_n thanks_o be_v to_o god_n to_o know_v this_o absolute_a sense_n as_o i_o shall_v declare_v in_o the_o 9_o chapter_n where_o the_o objection_n be_v full_o solve_v 5._o in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v please_v to_o reflect_v first_o that_o arian_n protestant_n gloss_n as_o injurious_a to_o god_n word_n as_o those_o of_o the_o arian_n when_o mere_a fallible_a man_n peremptory_o put_v upon_o scripture_n a_o sense_n which_o they_o can_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o prove_v but_o by_o their_o own_o err_v guess_n only_o to_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o in_o a_o matter_n which_o high_o concern_v salvation_n they_o plain_o injure_v god_n sacred_a word_n protestant_n be_v these_o fallible_a man_n and_o do_v so_o ergo_fw-la they_o injure_v god_n word_n the_o first_o proposition_n be_v clear_a in_o the_o case_n of_o arian_n who_o because_o they_o peremptory_o give_v a_o sense_n to_o those_o scripture_n which_o relate_v to_o the_o real_a unity_n of_o three_o person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n the_o matter_n be_v of_o high_a importance_n and_o can_v prove_v it_o but_o by_o the_o force_n of_o their_o err_v guess_v only_o they_o wrong_v both_o god_n and_o his_o word_n the_o second_o proposition_n be_v as_o evident_a for_o proof_n the_o proof_n protestant_n absolute_o say_v the_o scripture_n now_o cite_v include_v not_o yea_o positive_o exclude_v a_o perpetual_a infallibility_n allow_v the_o church_n this_o sense_n and_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o high_a importance_n for_o the_o clear_n of_o it_o end_n be_v all_o controversy_n they_o can_v prove_v but_o by_o their_o own_o err_v guess_n only_o and_o therefore_o injure_v scripture_n in_o say_v god_n have_v speak_v that_o which_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o prove_v be_v speak_v 6._o reflect_v 2._o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o sectary_n tell_v we_o upon_o their_o own_o fallible_a parole_n that_o our_o place_n of_o difficulty_n sectary_n come_v not_o home_n to_o the_o difficulty_n scripture_n may_v be_v interpret_v as_o they_o please_v or_o come_v not_o home_n to_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n for_o admit_v thus_o much_o gratis_o they_o yet_o convince_v nothing_o because_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o say_v and_o god_n know_v only_o to_o say_v it_o our_o allege_a scripture_n for_o example_n that_o of_o st._n paul_n the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n prove_v contrary_n to_o say_v we_o prove_v not_o our_o doctrine_n be_v not_o to_o say_v they_o prove_v the_o contrary_n not_o a_o church_n infallible_a and_o a_o quite_o other_o positive_o to_o teach_v and_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v fallible_a the_o most_o they_o can_v infer_v out_o of_o thi●_n negative_a such_o place_n prove_v not_o be_v all_o grant_v they_o desire_v be_v that_o they_o give_v the_o slip_n to_o so_o many_o text_n of_o scripture_n or_o infringe_v so_o much_o force_n of_o our_o proof_n alas_o this_o only_o be_v to_o pull_v as_o it_o doctrine_n their_o weak_a endeavour_n be_v to_o pull_v down_o not_o to_o build_v up_o the_o machine_n of_o their_o new_a doctrine_n be_v so_o much_o of_o a_o house_n down_o but_o it_o do_v not_o therefore_o follow_v that_o they_o positive_o give_v in_o as_o good_a text_n to_o the_o contrary_a sense_n or_o build_v up_o the_o structure_n of_o their_o new_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o church_n fallibility_n to_o pull_v down_o one_o proof_n be_v not_o to_o destroy_v all_o we_o can_v say_v we_o have_v more_o string_n to_o our_o bow_n then_o one_o much_o les_fw-fr be_v it_o to_o build_v up_o a_o opposite_a doctrine_n the_o machine_n these_o sectary_n will_v fain_o build_v lie_v in_o this_o one_o positive_a assertion_n the_o whole_a church_n be_v fallible_a this_o say_v i_o fancy_n only_a erect_n for_o it_o stand_v unprope_v they_o fancy_n do_v all_o with_o they_o that_o be_v it_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v nor_o shall_v ever_o be_v positive_o prove_v and_o hence_o 7._o reflect_v 3._o if_o protestant_n who_o rely_v total_o on_o scripture_n proof_n positive_o assert_v as_o they_o do_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v fallible_a they_o be_v oblige_v both_o in_o conscience_n and_o all_o law_n of_o disputation_n to_o prove_v what_o they_o say_v for_o asserenti_fw-la incumbit_fw-la probatio_fw-la observe_v my_o reason_n when_o luther_n and_o sectary_n come_v among_o we_o and_o trouble_v the_o world_n they_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o whole_a ancient_a church_n against_o they_o own_v the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o god_n direct_v spirit_n for_o which_o we_o now_o argue_v the_o church_n plead_v thus_o olim_fw-la possideo_fw-la prio_fw-la possideo_fw-la this_o spirit_n of_o infallibility_n i_o long_o since_o have_v have_v and_o yet_o upon_o scripture_n proof_n do_v believe_v well_o now_o enter_v these_o sectary_n please_v they_o first_o reject_v church_n authority_n and_o then_o make_v scripture_n speak_v as_o fancy_n please_v and_o first_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o ancient_a church_n next_o they_o fall_v aboard_o with_o our_o scripture_n and_o because_o they_o be_v good_a at_o guess_v they_o tell_v we_o very_o these_o scripture_n seem_v not_o to_o prove_v a_o church_n infallible_a because_o they_o be_v able_a to_o interpret_v all_o to_o a_o contrary_a sense_n to_o this_o we_o have_v answer_v their_o seem_n be_v no_o proof_n withal_o that_o catholic_n as_o many_o and_o learned_a as_o they_o both_o can_v and_o do_v interpret_v they_o otherwise_o hitherto_o therefore_o their_o cause_n be_v nothing_o advance_v more_o than_o be_v necessary_a and_o it_o be_v that_o whilst_o they_o positive_o establish_v a_o new_a coin_a doctrine_n of_o a_o whole_a christian_a church_n fallible_a contrary_a to_o what_o antiquity_n ever_o own_v i_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o bring_v some_o positive_a proof_n and_o make_v good_a their_o unheard_a of_o assertion_n 8._o and_o here_o we_o may_v have_v plain_a deal_n if_o sectary_n church_n protestant_n have_n no_o text_n of_o scripture_n against_o a_o infallible_a church_n please_v turn_v then_o to_o your_o bible_n gentleman_n and_o show_v i_o any_o text_n like_o this_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o ever_o teach_v it_o all_o truth_n god_n have_v place_v pastor_n and_o doctor_n in_o his_o church_n but_o such_o as_o may_v suffer_v we_o to_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o false_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n such_o expression_n we_o read_v in_o our_o bible_n for_o the_o contrary_a verity_n have_v you_o any_o thing_n like_o they_o in_o you_o to_o prove_v your_o opposite_a asserted_a doctrine_n i_o say_v any_o like_o they_o for_o i_o press_v not_o to_o have_v from_o you_o the_o same_o formal_a word_n but_o will_v be_v content_a with_o one_o plain_a significant_a text_n and_o we_o will_v stand_v to_o scripture_n or_o if_o scripture_n please_v you_o not_o we_o will_v accompany_v you_o to_o council_n and_o father_n which_o so_o much_o as_o meanly_n make_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n fallible_a such_o a_o scripture_n i_o tell_v you_o once_o more_o you_o can_v produce_v ergo_fw-la you_o only_o vent_v your_o fancy_n you_o talk_v and_o prove_v not_o you_o believe_v a_o doctrine_n which_o you_o can_v show_v be_v ever_o reveal_v in_o god_n word_n you_o may_v perhaps_o trifle_v it_o out_o and_o tell_v we_o as_o you_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v of_o our_o error_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o sectary_n what_o we_o desire_v of_o sectary_n we_o inquire_v not_o here_o after_o your_o proofle_n assertion_n they_o be_v answer_v a_o hundred_o time_n over_o nor_o ask_v what_o
since_o st._n paul_n write_v these_o word_n can_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o show_v itself_o permanent_o bless_v with_o a_o apostolical_a teacher_n but_o our_o ancient_a roman_a church_n only_o where_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n st._n peter_n yet_o live_v in_o every_o lawful_a succeed_a pope_n no_o society_n of_o christian_n can_v lay_v claim_n to_o such_o continue_a age._n the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n only_a show_v through_o every_o age._n prophet_n as_o this_o church_n have_v have_v in_o it_o age_n after_o age_n whether_o by_o prophet_n we_o understand_v with_o scripture_n 1_o cor._n 14._o 1._o holy_a man_n pray_v and_o prophesy_v or_o such_o as_o foretell_v future_a thing_n our_o church_n have_v have_v abundance_n of_o these_o if_o undoubted_a history_n may_v gain_v credit_n no_o evangelist_n prophet_n laborious_a evangelist_n society_n of_o christian_n can_v show_v so_o many_o laborious_a evangelist_n as_o this_o one_o church_n alone_o and_o st._n paul_n point_v at_o 2._o timot._fw-la 4._o 5._o they_o be_v those_o who_o have_v indefatigable_o through_o every_o age_n without_o cessation_n preach_v and_o carry_v christ_n sacred_a gospel_n to_o vnconvert_v and_o most_o remote_a nation_n thus_o st._n austin_n send_v by_o st._n gregory_n pope_n ancient_o be_v a_o evangelist_n to_o our_o english_a st._n boniface_n to_o the_o german_n bless_v st._n francis_n xavier_n and_o many_o other_o evangelical_n man_n be_v so_o also_o to_o the_o further_a part_n of_o the_o world_n no_o society_n of_o christian_n but_o our_o ancient_a roman_a church_n only_o can_v reckon_v up_o so_o long_a a_o perpetuate_v hierarchy_n of_o lawful_a commission_v doctor_n pastor_n and_o profound_a learned_a doctor_n pastor_n so_o many_o profound_a and_o learned_a doctor_n who_o labour_v unto_o death_n in_o christ_n sacred_a vineyard_n and_o innumerable_a shed_v their_o blood_n in_o defense_n of_o it_o these_o be_v undeniable_a truth_n 13._o i_o argue_v thus_o this_o know_v visible_a and_o never_o interrupt_v society_n of_o evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n this_o ecclesia_fw-la docens_fw-la or_o teach_v church_n constitute_v argument_n the_o argument_n by_o christ_n himself_o be_v ever_o and_o be_v still_o infallible_a and_o because_o direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v and_o interpret_n scripture_n infallible_o or_o it_o can_v err_v and_o cheat_v that_o ample_a flock_n of_o christian_n commit_v to_o its_o charge_n into_o damnable_a falsity_n if_o the_o first_o be_v grant_v we_o have_v all_o we_o wish_v viz._n a_o infallible_a hierarchy_n of_o live_a pastor_n who_o shall_v successive_o instruct_v we_o infallible_o to_o the_o world_n end_n if_o contrariwise_o this_o whole_a hierarchy_n can_v deceive_v and_o lead_v we_o into_o damnable_a error_n these_o two_o woeful_a sequels_fw-fr undeniable_o follow_n doctrine_n fearful_a sequels_fw-fr from_o sectarte_n fall_v doctrine_n the_o first_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n direct_v not_o teach_n not_o that_o live_a hierarchy_n of_o pastor_n which_o christ_n appoint_v to_o teach_v we_o here_o on_o earth_n for_o both_o this_o and_o every_o other_o society_n of_o christian_a teacher_n may_v beguile_v we_o with_o false_a doctrine_n and_o misinterpret_v scripture_n grant_v so_o much_o and_o it_o follow_v 2._o that_o our_o learned_a st._n paul_n mistake_v himself_o and_o utter_v not_o one_o word_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o place_n now_o cite_v for_o if_o these_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n appoint_v by_o christ_n to_o teach_v and_o so_o specifical_o here_o note_v can_v delude_v we_o yea_o and_o have_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la err_v as_o protestant_a assert_v it_o be_v possible_a that_o they_o neither_o comply_v with_o the_o work_n of_o their_o ministry_n nor_o edify_v the_o moral_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o destroy_v it_o nor_o persevere_v in_o teach_v truth_n until_o we_o all_o meet_v together_o in_o a_o unity_n of_o faith_n that_o happy_a day_n be_v not_o yet_o see_v nor_o final_o after_o all_o their_o endeavour_n afford_v mean_n to_o persevere_v steadfast_a in_o christ_n sacred_a doctrine_n they_o find_v yet_o a_o great_a part_n of_o people_n call_v christian_n like_o wilful_a child_n rest_v on_o self-opinion_n only_o they_o see_v they_o toss_v and_o turn_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o new_a learning_n such_o be_v the_o fault_n and_o unlucky_a fate_n of_o novellist_n who_o will_v be_v so_o wanton_o childish_a as_o to_o slight_v a_o oracle_n undeceivable_a here_o then_o be_v the_o conclusion_n the_o apostle_n word_n be_v true_a therefore_o sectary_n vent_v a_o hideous_a conclusion_n the_o conclusion_n untruth_n whilst_o they_o say_v these_o now_o name_v evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n may_v deceive_v and_o lead_v we_o into_o error_n chap._n x._o objection_n be_v answer_v 1._o perhaps_o they_o will_v reply_v we_o mistake_v st._n paul_n meaning_n for_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n prophet_n and_o doctor_n etc._n etc._n whereof_o he_o speak_v be_v long_o since_o dead_a a_o go_v they_o be_v those_o who_o preach_v whilst_o christ_n live_v on_o earth_n or_o soon_o after_o and_o teach_v we_o still_o by_o the_o write_a word_n now_o in_o our_o hand_n since_o those_o day_n we_o have_v have_v no_o other_o evangelist_n and_o pastor_n continue_v in_o any_o christian_a society_n that_o either_o teach_v or_o interpret_v infallible_o round_o speak_v but_o without_o book_n and_o as_o false_o as_o fallible_o principle_n let_v sectary_n prove_v this_o gloss_n contrary_a to_o the_o express_a word_n and_o bring_v their_o proof_n to_o a_o receive_a principle_n for_o who_o see_v we_o not_o the_o obvious_a sense_n of_o st._n paul_n testimony_n plain_o pervert_v whilst_o he_o point_v at_o teacher_n successive_o abide_v in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o consummation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o the_o coagmentation_n of_o saint_n or_o until_o they_o be_v join_v together_o in_o one_o faith_n and_o all_o meet_a in_o a_o unity_n of_o belief_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o decease_a apostle_n now_o in_o heaven_n will_v it_o be_v true_a see_v this_o last_o day_n but_o be_v not_o now_o with_o we_o nor_o teach_v until_o that_o consummation_n be_v therefore_o other_o succeed_v and_o teach_v in_o their_o place_n so_o god_n have_v order_v to_o the_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n i_o have_v answer_v to_o what_o be_v add_v of_o their_o present_a instruction_n by_o the_o write_a word_n the_o bible_n difference_n the_o write_a word_n insufficient_a to_o reconcile_v difference_n i_o say_v can_v because_o it_o interpret_n not_o if_o self_n reconcile_v our_o difference_n and_o no_o decease_a evangelist_n appear_v now_o either_o to_o arian_n or_o protestant_n to_o instruct_v they_o when_o they_o fail_v or_o mistake_v god_n true_a sense_n this_o very_a scripture_n therefore_o require_v a_o interpreter_n in_o who_o all_o must_v acquiesce_v or_o we_o may_v run_v on_o in_o endless_a dissension_n to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n but_o you_o will_v ask_v who_o be_v in_o fault_n see_v no_o man_n blame_v himself_o nor_o the_o bible_n he_o read'_v christ_n answer_n be_v he_o who_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n be_v both_o the_o accuse_v and_o faulty_a person_n and_o upon_o this_o occasion_n i_o answer_v to_o a_o second_o objection_n 2._o our_o adversary_n may_v say_v all_o appellation_n from_o a_o low_a tribunal_n to_o a_o high_a be_v lawful_a and_o they_o do_v so_o for_o they_o appeal_v from_o the_o church_n which_o only_o consist_v of_o man_n to_o god_n and_o his_o word_n the_o high_a scripture_n sectary_n by_o appealign_a from_o the_o church_n to_o scripture_n tribunal_n imaginable_a therefore_o their_o procedure_n be_v blameless_a i_o answer_v it_o be_v most_o blameless_a can_v they_o know_v infallible_o what_o god_n certain_o say_v in_o his_o word_n but_o this_o they_o can_v know_v in_o controvert_v point_n but_o by_o the_o infallible_a oracle_n of_o his_o church_n to_o this_o tribunal_n christ_n send_v we_o for_o satisfaction_n in_o all_o only_o in_o real_a truth_n appeal_v not_o to_o scripture_n but_o to_o fancy_n only_o our_o difficulty_n if_o we_o reject_v or_o forsake_v this_o oracle_n in_o real_a truth_n we_o appeal_v not_o to_o the_o undoubted_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n but_o to_o our_o own_o unsteedy_a sentiment_n which_o be_v fancy_n only_o and_o nothing_o like_o god_n word_n will_v you_o see_v this_o clear_o imagine_v only_o a_o new_a sort_n of_o sectary_n who_o will_v both_o appeal_n from_o church_n and_o scripture_n to_o god_n interior_a and_o eternal_a infallible_a assertion_n this_o instance_n prove_v the_o assertion_n knowledge_n of_o truth_n they_o appeal_v from_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v make_v up_o of_o man_n from_o scripture_n because_o they_o understand_v it_o not_o in_o a_o hundred_o passage_n therefore_o they_o will_v rely_v on_o what_o god_n know_v to_o be_v true_a and_o guess_v at_o it_o as_o well_o as_o they_o can_v will_v you_o not_o esteem_v such_o man_n mad_a and_o upon_o this_o account_n that_o they_o can_v
passage_n more_o of_o scripture_n prove_v infallible_a teacher_n be_v quote_v 203_o chap._n x._o objection_n be_v answer_v 217_o the_o three_o discourse_n of_o sectary_n unreasonable_a proceed_v chap._n i._o protestant_n be_v unreasonable_a whilst_o they_o seem_o hold_v a_o catholic_n church_n distinct_a from_o the_o roman_a neither_o know_v nor_o designable_a by_o any_o 231_o chap._n ii_o of_o a_o late_a writer_n doctrine_n 236_o chap._n iii_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n of_o protestant_n be_v unreasonable_a if_o faith_n in_o christ_n only_o suffice_v for_o salvation_n a_o more_o explicit_fw-la faith_n be_v prove_v necessary_a 244_o chap._n iu_o the_o ambiguous_a discourse_n of_o protestant_n concern_v fundamental_o in_o faith_n be_v prove_v unreasonable_a 250_o chap._n v._o a_o answer_n to_o one_o reply_n more_o of_o this_o subject_n 262_o chap._n vi_o some_o few_o proposition_n of_o a_o late_a writer_n be_v brief_o examine_v his_o discourse_n of_o fundamental_o destroy_n protestant_n religion_n 271_o chap._n vii_o more_o of_o this_o subject_n objection_n be_v answer_v 291_o chap._n viii_o protestant_n be_v unreasonable_a in_o the_o defense_n of_o their_o late_a manifest_a and_o undoubted_a schism_n 315_o chap._n ix_o protestant_n can_v make_v good_a their_o charge_n against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n concern_v causal_a schism_n 323_o chap._n x._o the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n whilst_o evidence_n come_v not_o against_o it_o stand_v firm_a upon_o its_o ancient_n possess_v right_o this_o long_a possession_n prove_v the_o church_n orthodox_n 333_o chap._n xi_o of_o a_o late_a writer_n exception_n against_o our_o plead_v possession_n 339_o chap._n xii_o another_o objection_n and_o whether_o protestant_n can_v acquit_v themselves_o of_o schism_n 357_o chap._n xiii_o a_o second_o argument_n against_o this_o schism_n of_o sectary_n cavil_v concern_v error_n enter_v the_o church_n insensible_o 362_o chap._n fourteen_o a_o word_n to_o a_o few_o suppose_a and_o unproved_a assertion_n whereby_o some_o endeavour_n to_o clear_a protestant_n of_o schism_n 379_o chap._n xv._o more_o of_o these_o author_n confuse_a doctrine_n be_v refute_v 387_o the_o four_o discourse_n of_o the_o church_n evident_a credibility_n of_o the_o improbability_n of_o protestancy_n chap._n i._n christ_n church_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n sectary_n be_v convince_v of_o error_n 405_o chap._n ii_o protestancy_n be_v a_o unevidence_v and_o a_o most_o improbable_a religion_n or_o rather_o no_o religion_n but_o a_o mere_a fancy_v opinion_n 420_o chap._n iii_o a_o word_n more_o of_o sectary_n new_a mode_n of_o argue_v lay_v forth_o by_o touch_v on_o one_o controversy_n concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n 434_o chap._n iu_o a_o parallel_n of_o proof_n for_o and_o against_o t●e_v doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n a_o solution_n to_o a_o late_a adversary_n objection_n 452_o chap._n v._o a_o objection_n propose_v and_o solve_v in_o a_o discourse_n of_o another_o controversy_n which_o be_v the_o real_a presence_n 477_o chap._n vi_o sectary_n without_o either_o proof_n or_o principle_n wrest_v christ_n word_n to_o a_o improper_a sense_n and_o vent_v a_o heresy_n upon_o mere_a fancy_n 489_o chap._n vii_o how_o different_o we_o and_o sectary_n proceed_v in_o this_o controversy_n what_o they_o be_v to_o prove_v 506_o chap._n viii_o the_o conclusion_n the_o church_n evidence_n 517_o some_o few_o of_o the_o more_o chief_z content_n of_o this_o treatise_n the_o first_o discourse_n of_o infallible_a teacher_n and_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n christs_n church_n have_v infallible_a teacher_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n christ_n infallible_a doctrine_n require_v infallible_a teacher_n a_o doctrine_n that_o be_v fallible_a may_v be_v fall_v christ_n send_v none_o to_o teach_v any_o other_o doctrine_n but_o that_o which_o may_v be_v resolve_v into_o god_n certain_a revelation_n but_o such_o a_o doctrine_n can_v neither_o be_v fall_v nor_o fallible_a sectary_n preach_v no_o other_o doctrine_n but_o what_o be_v fallible_a and_o may_v be_v fall_v the_o objective_a infallibility_n of_o god_n word_n in_o scripture_n be_v not_o ex_fw-la terminis_fw-la evident_a and_o no_o church_n as_o they_o say_v ever_o yet_o tell_v they_o or_o can_v tell_v they_o infallible_o that_o it_o be_v infallible_a if_o all_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n may_v err_v in_o their_o delivery_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n god_n will_v as_o indifferent_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v a_o lie_n as_o his_o certain_a verity_n if_o god_n deprive_v all_o pastor_n of_o infallible_a assistance_n christian_a religion_n now_o stand_v on_o no_o more_o firm_a ground_n than_o man_n weak_a mutable_a and_o err_a opinion_n god_n infallible_a revelation_n avail_v nothing_o in_o order_n to_o faith_n unless_o christian_n lay_v hold_v on_o the_o certainty_n thereof_o by_o faith_n which_o can_v be_v do_v unless_o that_o oracle_n which_o propose_v the_o revelation_n to_o all_o be_v infallible_a if_o the_o proponent_n of_o a_o revelation_n only_o say_v doubtful_o i_o think_v god_n speak_v as_o i_o preach_v but_o be_o not_o certain_a the_o assent_n give_v to_o his_o preach_v be_v also_o doubtful_a and_o no_o faith_n faith_n surpass_v in_o its_o strength_n and_o tendency_n all_o moral_a and_o metaphysical_a certainty_n though_o moral_a certainty_n be_v sufficient_a for_o faith_n yet_o sectary_n have_v not_o so_o much_o for_o protestancy_n as_o it_o be_v reform_v how_o sectary_n err_v in_o their_o search_n make_v after_o religion_n and_o both_o weak_o and_o improbable_o oppugn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n roman_n church_n reflection_n upon_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n it_o be_v impossible_a after_o the_o establishment_n of_o true_a faith_n in_o the_o world_n that_o god_n permit_v a_o false_a religion_n to_o be_v more_o clear_o evidence_v to_o reason_n by_o force_n of_o rational_a motive_n then_o true_a religion_n be_v manifest_v a_o fall_v religion_n can_v equalise_v god_n true_a religion_n in_o the_o evidence_n of_o prudent_a motive_n induce_v to_o faith_n no_o religion_n have_v motive_n sound_v moral_a certainty_n prerequire_v to_o faith_n but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n only_a protestant_n have_v nothing_o like_o rational_a motive_n whereby_o protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v so_o much_o as_o probable_a where_o mr._n stillingfleet_n treat_v of_o resolve_v protestant_n faith_n he_o wave_v the_o question_n whole_o and_o speak_v no_o more_o in_o behalf_n of_o protestancy_n than_o arianism_n or_o another_o heresy_n argument_n draw_v from_o reason_n against_o protestant_n upon_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o church_n motive_n sectary_n can_v for_o want_v of_o prudent_a motive_n induce_v to_o faith_n convert_v a_o infidel_n to_o christian_a religion_n their_o religion_n dishonour_v christ_n and_o make_v way_n to_o any_o new_a coin_a heresy_n the_o second_o discourse_n of_o scripture_n scripture_n be_v a_o useless_a book_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o sectary_n if_o none_o as_o they_o confess_v declare_v infallible_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o in_o high_a point_n of_o controversy_n arian_n interpret_v scripture_n as_o probable_o as_o protestant_n when_o they_o oppose_v the_o sense_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n sectary_n make_v scripture_n a_o book_n that_o prove_v all_o religion_n and_o more_o significant_a for_o arianism_n then_o protestancy_n the_o fallacy_n of_o protestant_n concern_v the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v discover_v grant_v no_o infallible_a church_n we_o have_v no_o assurance_n of_o true_a and_o interrupt_a scripture_n scripture_n may_v be_v more_o easy_o corrupt_v then_o a_o whole_a church_n cheat_v into_o false_a doctrine_n no_o man_n can_v prudent_o suppose_v that_o god_n have_v more_o care_n to_o preserve_v scripture_n uncorrupt_a than_o a_o church_n free_a from_o error_n all_o substantial_o of_o faith_n be_v not_o in_o scripture_n a_o learned_a philosopher_n by_o his_o own_o read_v scripture_n can_v judge_v what_o it_o mean_v in_o a_o hundred_o passage_n without_o a_o interpreter_n sectary_n now_o be_v in_o the_o very_a same_o case_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n sectary_n in_o their_o gloss_n on_o scripture_n do_v nothing_o but_o add_v and_o subtract_v from_o god_n word_n when_o they_o oppose_v the_o church_n sense_n of_o scripture_n sole_a scripture_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n can_v be_v no_o rule_n of_o faith_n protestant_n have_v not_o one_o word_n of_o scripture_n for_o their_o religion_n as_o it_o be_v protestancy_n the_o reason_n of_o private_a man_n or_o of_o a_o private_a spirit_n can_v interpret_v scripture_n the_o new_a mode_n of_o protestant_n misinterpret_v scripture_n be_v ample_o refute_v all_o our_o sectary_n endeavour_n be_v to_o turn_v scripture_n off_o from_o the_o catholic_n sense_n by_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o then_o think_v the_o work_n don_fw-mi it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o say_v and_o only_o to_o say_v it_o that_o scripture_n allege_v by_o we_o prove_v not_o what_o we_o intend_v and_o another_o positive_o to_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n contrary_a
nothing_o probable_a for_o a_o objection_n as_o soon_o solve_v as_o see_v be_v far_o off_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sound_a principle_n we_o say_v therefore_o if_o to_o pray_v for_o one_o a_o other_o here_o on_o earth_n lessen_v not_o christ_n honour_n there_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o lessen_v it_o by_o our_o recours_fw-fr have_v to_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n now_o in_o a_o most_o glorious_a and_o happy_a condition_n and_o thus_o no_o less_o a_o doctor_n then_o s._n hierom_n adversus_fw-la vigilantium_fw-la paris_n print_n 1609._o pag._n 590._o solve_v the_o difficulty_n at_o those_o word_n dicis_fw-la in_o libello_fw-la tuo_fw-la etc._n etc._n thou_o vigilantius_n say_v in_o thy_o book_n that_o whilst_o we_o live_v we_o may_v pray_v for_o one_o another_o but_o after_o death_n no_o prayer_n be_v hear_v for_o any_o here_o be_v the_o objection_n mark_v s._n hieroms_n answer_n si_fw-mi apostoli_fw-la &_o martyr_n adhuc_fw-la in_o corpore_fw-la constituti_fw-la possunt_fw-la orare_fw-la pro_fw-la caeteris_fw-la quando_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la debent_fw-la esse_fw-la soliciti_fw-la quanto_fw-la magis_fw-la post_fw-la corona_n victorias_fw-la &_o triumphos_fw-la if_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n yet_o live_v in_o a_o mortal_a body_n can_v pray_v for_o other_o when_o they_o be_v solicitous_a for_o themselves_o much_o more_o can_v they_o do_v that_o charity_n after_o their_o crown_n victory_n and_o triumph_n he_o go_v on_o vnus_fw-la homo_fw-la moses_n etc._n etc._n that_o one_o moses_n obtain_v pardon_n for_o thousand_o exod._n 32._o and_o the_o first_o martyr_n s._n stephen_n live_v pray_v for_o his_o persecutor_n act._n 7._o et_fw-la postquam_fw-la cum_fw-la christo_fw-la esse_fw-la coeperint_fw-la minus_fw-la valebunt_fw-la and_o what_o shall_v they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v less_o now_o when_o they_o be_v glorious_a with_o christ_n in_o heaven_n meliorque_fw-la erit_fw-la vigilantius_fw-la cams_fw-la vivens_fw-la quam_fw-la ille_fw-la lo_o mortuus_fw-la and_o can_v thou_o vigilantius_n a_o live_a dog_n be_v better_o than_o that_o dead_a lion_n he_o allude_v to_o s._n paul_n that_o pray_v for_o other_o whilst_o he_o live_v tu_fw-la vigilans_fw-la dormis_fw-la &_o dormiens_fw-la scribis_fw-la i_o tell_v thou_o vigilantius_n wake_v thou_o sleep_v and_o sleep_v writ_n these_o thing_n against_o prayer_n to_o saint_n thus_o s._n hierom._n and_o not_o only_a s._n austin_n lib._n 22._o de_fw-la civit._fw-la c._n 8._o to_o omit_v innumerable_a other_o approve_v the_o doctrine_n but_o that_o worthy_a bishop_n also_o s._n greg_n nyssen_n in_o his_o oration_n of_o s._n theodore_n martyr_n paris_n print_n 1615._o page_n 1011._o and_o 1017._o confirm_v the_o practice_n of_o it_o pray_v for_o we_o say_v s._n gregory_n address_v himself_o by_o a_o earnest_a petition_n to_o s._n theodore_n when_o the_o scythian_n threaten_v a_o war_n to_o the_o country_n make_v intercession_n to_o he_o who_o be_v our_o common_a king_n and_o lord_n as_o you_o be_v a_o soldier_n fight_v for_o we_o and_o defend_v we_o and_o as_o a_o martyr_n speak_v free_o for_o your_o fellow_n servant_n here_o a_o few_o line_n after_o and_o if_o more_o prayer_n be_v needful_a assemble_v together_o the_o whole_a choir_n of_o your_o brethren_n martyr_n and_o joint_o intercede_v for_o we_o put_v s._n peter_n in_o mind_n move_v s._n paul_n and_o the_o belove_a disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n s._n john_n that_o they_o be_v solicitous_a for_o the_o church_n where_o once_o they_o wear_v chain_n pass_v danger_n and_o final_o dye_v say_v now_o what_o lessen_v be_v here_o of_o christ_n honour_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o this_o ancient_a saint_n and_o most_o learned_a prelate_n or_o what_o answer_n can_v be_v return_v to_o these_o three_o authority_n the_o other_o difficulty_n be_v as_o forceles_a for_o if_o scctary_n can_v explicate_v how_o the_o bless_a soul_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o heaven_n hear_v our_o prayer_n which_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o deny_v i_o speak_v of_o his_o sanctify_a create_a soul_n all_o difficulty_n cease_v in_o the_o present_a controversy_n how_o they_o hear_v be_v opinion_n se_fw-la bell._n cap._n 20._o n._n argumentum_fw-la tertium_fw-la but_o that_o they_o hear_v be_v certain_a doctrine_n 7._o now_o if_o sectary_n tell_v we_o they_o can_v so_o explicate_v these_o father_n as_o to_o make_v their_o word_n insignificant_a to_o our_o purpose_n i_o will_v first_o learn_v what_o can_v be_v say_v to_o s._n hierom_n s._n austin_n and_o s._n gregory_n now_o cite_v but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o for_o i_o be_o to_o assure_v they_o further_o that_o their_o explication_n when_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n as_o also_o to_o the_o obvious_a sense_n of_o either_o scripture_n or_o father_n quote_v by_o we_o be_v so_o far_o off_o from_o be_v principle_n that_o they_o merit_v not_o the_o name_n of_o mean_a probability_n which_o truth_n be_v more_o ample_o declare_v discourse_n 4._o c._n 4._o n._n 8._o 9_o where_o i_o prove_v that_o no_o interpretation_n of_o sectary_n can_v be_v allow_v of_o unless_o it_o rely_v on_o a_o extrinsic_a ground_n much_o sure_a than_o his_o gloss_n be_v that_o interpret_n which_o therefore_o must_v be_v plain_a scripture_n the_o undoubted_a consent_n of_o father_n universal_a tradition_n or_o such_o like_a convince_a principle_n hence_o i_o say_v when_o the_o catholic_n interpret_v a_o dubious_a or_o difficil_n passage_n he_o never_o make_v his_o gloss_n to_o be_v the_o ultimate_a proof_n of_o his_o doctrine_n but_o suppose_v that_o prove_v by_o strong_a principle_n distinct_a from_o his_o interpretation_n all_o be_v contrary_a with_o the_o sectary_n who_o make_v his_o gloss_n to_o do_v all_o to_o be_v the_o last_o and_o sure_a ground_n of_o his_o opinion_n without_o the_o support_n of_o any_o better_a proof_n than_o his_o own_o word_n be_v and_o thus_o much_o be_v evident_a in_o other_o controversy_n now_o debate_v between_o we_o as_o you_o will_v see_v hereafter_o 8._o from_o this_o want_n of_o clear_a principle_n all_o the_o too_o manifest_a and_o most_o discernible_a faint_a proceed_n of_o our_o adversary_n in_o matter_n now_o controvert_v show_v itself_o so_o open_o that_o one_o with_o half_a a_o eye_n may_v discover_v it_o it_o be_v from_o want_n of_o principle_n that_o they_o now_o begin_v to_o be_v weary_a of_o protestancy_n and_o hold_v that_o a_o faith_n common_a to_o all_o sectary_n be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n if_o this_o may_v pass_v they_o need_v not_o hereafter_o to_o stand_v more_o for_o protestancy_n than_o arianism_n or_o for_o any_o other_o condemn_a heresy_n for_o the_o same_o principle_n be_v there_o any_o will_v make_v both_o sect_n equal_o credible_a hence_o it_o also_o be_v that_o you_o have_v they_o ever_o cavil_v at_o our_o religion_n and_o it_o be_v the_o easy_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n to_o find_v fault_n yea_o and_o to_o cavil_v at_o the_o verity_n of_o holy_a scripture_n itself_o you_o see_v arian_n do_v so_o but_o still_o you_o find_v they_o want_v in_o that_o which_o concern_v they_o most_o which_o be_v to_o bring_v their_o novelty_n to_o the_o ground_n of_o either_o scripture_n or_o any_o ancient_a church_n doctrine_n herein_o they_o be_v as_o mute_a as_o fish_n and_o say_v not_o a_o word_n it_o be_v from_o want_n of_o principle_n that_o when_o they_o explicate_v a_o council_n or_o father_n allege_v against_o they_o they_o be_v tedious_o long_a about_o little_a that_o be_v in_o relate_v the_o circumstance_n to_o be_v as_o they_o will_v have_v they_o but_o whether_o they_o hit_v right_o be_v ever_o a_o matter_n of_o dispute_n and_o nothing_o like_o a_o receive_a principle_n from_o hence_o it_o also_o be_v that_o when_o they_o make_v such_o and_o such_o doctrine_n to_o be_v in●o●ations_n pray_v to_o saint_n purgatory_n or_o what_o else_o you_o will_v the_o very_a last_o ground_n they_o standon_v come_v to_o nothing_o but_o negative_a argument_n weak_a conjecture_n blind_a guess_n fancy_n and_o mere_a uncertainty_n it_o be_v from_o the_o want_n of_o principle_n that_o when_o we_o produce_v undeniable_a history_n for_o innumerable_a miracle_n wrought_v in_o our_o church_n a_o odd_a answer_n be_v at_o hand_n they_o can_v believe_v they_o as_o if_o forsooth_o their_o parole_n or_o mere_a unbelief_n have_v force_n enough_o to_o make_v null_a all_o that_o be_v write_v of_o this_o subject_n by_o most_o approve_a author_n from_o want_n of_o principle_n it_o be_v that_o they_o ever_o place_v against_o our_o clear_a authority_n no_o more_o but_o mere_a uncertain_a testimony_n and_o pick_v out_o of_o our_o writer_n all_o they_o can_v pilfer_v for_o their_o advantage_n whereas_o if_o they_o have_v a_o good_a cause_n in_o hand_n and_o sound_a principle_n to_o rely_v on_o they_o shall_v beat_v down_o the_o doctrine_n of_o long_a stand_a church_n 〈◊〉_d by_o undeniable_a proof_n take_v from_o scripture_n council_n and_o consent_n of_o father_n whereof_o more_o present_o from_o hence_o it_o also_o
be_v that_o when_o a_o doctrine_n please_v they_o tradition_n be_v approve_v of_o but_o if_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o their_o fancy_n than_o tradition_n be_v of_o no_o account_n or_o value_n for_o example_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v as_o well_o a_o universal_a tradition_n of_o both_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n as_o to_o hold_v that_o canon_n of_o the_o sectary_n bible_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o the_o one_o be_v admit_v of_o and_o the_o other_o set_v light_n by_o and_o upon_o what_o principle_n distinct_a from_o unproved_a conjecture_n do_v they_o take_v and_o leave_v as_o they_o listen_v final_o it_o be_v for_o want_v of_o principle_n that_o in_o lieu_n of_o solid_a argument_n in_o every_o controversy_n now_o handle_v you_o have_v word_n in_o stead_n of_o substance_n margin_n paint_v with_o greek_a and_o latin_a now_o a_o story_n tell_v of_o a_o pope_n or_o prelate_n now_o a_o jeer_n now_o a_o jest_n in_o handsome_a language_n etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o they_o hold_v on_o in_o their_o merriment_n thoughtless_a as_o it_o seem_v of_o a_o account_v day_n to_o come_v before_o a_o sever_n judge_n and_o a_o long_a eternity_n that_o follow_v and_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v these_o light_a skirmish_n and_o petty_a doing_n in_o a_o serious_a matter_n whereon_o salvation_n depend_v whilst_o god_n be_v dishonour_v soul_n be_v beguile_v christ_n sacred_a truth_n also_o infinite_o suffer_v by_o they_o who_o will_v yet_o be_v name_v christian_n 9_o i_o call_v they_o here_o petty_a do_n for_o when_o on_o the_o one_o side_n i_o set_v before_o my_o eye_n our_o roman_a catholic_n church_n once_o found_v by_o christ_n and_o therefore_o must_v hold_v it_o most_o ancient_a and_o confess_o true_a when_o again_o i_o find_v it_o of_o a_o vast_a extent_n diffuse_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o and_o as_o much_o renown_a as_o large_o extend_v when_o i_o see_v it_o glorious_a evidence_v by_o miracle_n powerful_a in_o the_o conversion_n of_o infidel_n eminent_a in_o sanctity_n and_o most_o profound_a learning_n when_o i_o consider_v how_o it_o have_v stand_v invincible_a in_o the_o heat_n of_o all_o persecution_n and_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o heresy_n vainquish_v by_o it_o age_n after_o age_n to_o say_v no_o more_o now_o of_o other_o signal_n mark_v wherewith_o it_o be_v make_v illustrious_a and_o visible_a to_o all_o when_o i_o say_v i_o consider_v these_o truth_n methinks_v evident_a reason_n tell_v i_o that_o a_o few_o slight_a cavil_n can_v much_o annoy_v or_o hurt_v it_o no._n either_o clear_a demonstration_n or_o be_v it_o possible_a more_o than_o demonstration_n ought_v to_o enter_v here_o and_o shake_v this_o our_o strong_a fortress_n or_o if_o they_o do_v not_o common_a prudence_n oblige_v i_o to_o own_o this_o for_o christ_n true_a spouse_n or_o to_o grant_v which_o be_v hideous_o against_o the_o ground_n of_o christianity_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o orthodox_n church_n in_o the_o world_n 10._o now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n when_o i_o cast_v my_o thought_n on_o a_o few_o late_o rise_v company_n of_o divide_a sectary_n utter_o destitute_a of_o all_o prudent_a motive_n without_o antiquity_n miracle_n conversion_n or_o other_o evidence_n of_o credibility_n when_o again_o i_o serious_o ponder_v how_o slight_o they_o go_v to_o work_v against_o we_o how_o weak_o they_o attempt_v with_o mere_a trifle_n remote_a from_o proof_n and_o principle_n to_o vnroot_v as_o it_o be_v this_o strong_a building_n of_o our_o catholic_n society_n i_o stand_v astonish_v and_o must_v needs_o say_v they_o seem_v to_o be_v man_n not_o too_o thoughtful_a of_o eternity_n and_o never_o can_v wonder_v enough_o at_o their_o boldness_n whilst_o they_o dare_v as_o they_o do_v to_o take_v pen_n in_o hand_n and_o presume_v to_o write_v against_o a_o ancient_a church_n that_o make_v the_o world_n and_o their_o own_o progenitor_n christian_n but_o what_o be_v hitherto_o brief_o hint_v at_o will_v be_v more_o large_o lay_v forth_o in_o the_o ensue_a discourse_n 11._o now_o it_o be_v high_a time_n to_o end_v a_o advertisement_n and_o to_o tell_v our_o adversary_n my_o absolute_a resolution_n it_o be_v thus_o let_v who_o will_v pretend_v to_o answer_v this_o treatis_fw-la either_o in_o part_n or_o whole_a nothing_o shall_v draw_v i_o to_o reply_n unless_o he_o that_o answer_v come_v more_o close_o to_o principle_n than_o i_o ever_o yet_o see_v in_o protestant_a writer_n it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o trifle_v our_o precious_a time_n away_o in_o cavil_n i_o will_v hearty_o thank_v any_o that_o may_v plea_n to_o answer_n upon_o ground_a principle_n but_o if_o he_o fail_v herein_o his_o labour_n will_v be_v lose_v and_o my_o hereafter_o spare_v all_o i_o shall_v do_v if_o i_o do_v so_o much_o will_v be_v to_o tell_v he_o be_v he_o miss_v in_o the_o main_a point_n which_o be_v to_o come_v close_o to_o principle_n the_o introduction_n before_o we_o enter_v upon_o the_o follow_a discourse_n i_o must_v need_n be_v have_v a_o word_n with_o mr._n poole_n who_o nullity_n and_o appendix_n but_o chief_o the_o request_n of_o a_o friend_n induce_v i_o to_o write_v this_o treatise_n it_o be_v very_o true_a after_o one_o serious_a perusal_n of_o this_o nullity_n i_o have_v enough_o of_o it_o and_o therefore_o judge_v it_o unnecessary_a and_o indeed_o not_o worth_a the_o pain_n to_o answer_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o to_o follow_v the_o author_n through_o his_o maze_n and_o long_o wander_a parergon_n i_o return_v he_o undoubted_a ground_n of_o true_a religion_n they_o be_v undeniable_a which_o at_o least_o destroy_v his_o best_a principle_n and_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o this_o be_v full_o as_o much_o as_o a_o nullity_n deserve_v however_o if_o he_o desire_v more_o he_o may_v probable_o have_v it_o in_o another_o treatise_n now_o if_o you_o ask_v why_o i_o take_v this_o way_n of_o answer_v if_o yet_o you_o will_v call_v it_o a_o answer_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o my_o aim_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o meddle_v with_o this_o nullity_n as_o to_o speak_v for_o the_o catholic_a cause_n and_o prove_v something_o which_o shall_v not_o be_v answer_v again_o it_o be_v more_o than_o tedious_a ever_o to_o be_v encounter_v a_o few_o old_a worn-out_a argument_n set_v forth_o in_o new_a dress_n which_o have_v be_v confute_v a_o hundred_o time_n over_o three_o no_o small_a part_n of_o this_o nullity_n seem_v to_o be_v too_o trivial_a while_o late_a catholic_n writer_n be_v introduce_v speak_v as_o mr._n poole_n think_v disadvantagious_o and_o against_o our_o faith_n now_o sixtus_n senensis_n say_v this_o now_o bellarmin_n that_o now_o stapleton_n a_o three_o thing_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v these_o think_v you_o doughty_a do_n for_o such_o a_o antagonist_n that_o offer_v to_o strike_v at_o the_o very_a root_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n alas_o what_o he_o cite_v thus_o be_v all_o he_o cite_v true_a be_v a_o nullity_n indeed_o and_o a_o mere_a nothing_o for_o church_n doctrine_n depend_v on_o no_o man_n private_a opinion_n but_o when_o we_o make_v a_o inspection_n into_o these_o author_n as_o i_o have_v do_v on_o several_a occasion_n and_o find_v they_o quote_v by_o half_n weigh_v out_o of_o their_o circumstance_n mangle_a and_o traduce_v to_o a_o sinister_a sense_n we_o must_v speak_v truth_n that_o cheat_n will_v go_v on_o their_o way_n and_o rather_o play_v at_o small_a game_n then_o sit_v out_o or_o seem_v to_o do_v nothing_o have_v protestant_n any_o thing_n like_o a_o good_a cause_n in_o hand_n or_o truth_n on_o their_o side_n they_o will_v certain_o plead_v more_o manful_o for_o it_o and_o never_o like_v poor_a people_n in_o harvest_n go_v thus_o a_o glean_v up_o and_o down_o our_o author_n know_v for_o profess_a catholik_o who_o little_a god_n know_v intend_v to_o favour_n sectary_n by_o such_o segment_n as_o they_o be_v please_v to_o pick_v up_o much_o less_o to_o furnish_v protestant_n with_o armour_n against_o catholic_a doctrine_n but_o what_o will_v you_o sectary_n can_v do_v no_o better_o yet_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v whilst_o they_o embrace_v a_o novelty_n and_o cast_v of_o the_o old_a religion_n they_o shall_v make_v the_o ancient_a canon_n to_o roar_v against_o our_o doctrine_n they_o shall_v confound_v and_o overwhelm_v we_o with_o undeniable_a proof_n draw_v from_o plain_a scripture_n ancient_a council_n universal_a tradition_n and_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n of_o these_o we_o hear_v no_o great_a noise_n next_o and_o this_o most_o concern_v they_o they_o shall_v also_o positive_o prove_v and_o establish_v every_o article_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o protestancy_n by_o such_o plain_a open_a and_o illustrious_a authority_n than_o a_o bellarmin_n a_o stapleton_n a_o maldonate_fw-it and_z other_o might_n well_o follow_v the_o rear_n but_o to_o
vapour_n with_o a_o few_o break_a fragment_n i_o will_v espy_v in_o these_o modern_a author_n and_o worse_o apply_v without_o attend_v to_o their_o whole_a drift_n antecedent_n and_o consequent_a and_o think_v to_o defeat_v a_o ancient_a church_n with_o such_o trivial_a do_n be_v so_o slight_a a_o way_n of_o schirmish_v that_o it_o deserve_v not_o counterblow_v but_o pity_n and_o compassion_n that_o incomparable_a author_n of_o the_o protestant_n apology_n learn_v they_o anohter_n way_n of_o argue_v whilst_o he_o do_v not_o only_o show_v the_o endless_a clash_n of_o sectary_n among_o themselves_o but_o moreover_o solid_o prove_v our_o catholic_a doctrine_n positive_o and_o this_o by_o the_o most_o satisfactory_a and_o undeniable_a principle_n that_o a_o lover_n of_o truth_n can_v wish_v for_o thus_o these_o new_a man_n shall_v defend_v their_o cause_n and_o it_o be_v no_o fault_n of_o we_o that_o they_o trifle_v it_o out_o and_o do_v no_o better_o we_o charge_v enough_o upon_o they_o and_o can_v they_o well_o acquit_v themselves_o they_o will_v certain_o go_v more_o close_o to_o work_v and_o answer_v direct_o we_o say_v and_o will_v prove_v it_o that_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o believe_v as_o protestant_n contrary_a to_o the_o roman_a catholic_a faith_n be_v evident_o no_o part_n of_o any_o christian_a belief_n but_o a_o mere_a opinion_n ground_v on_o fancy_n only_o we_o say_v and_o will_v prove_v it_o that_o this_o new_a religion_n of_o protestancy_n have_v all_o the_o mark_n and_o character_n of_o heresy_n follow_v it_o which_o can_v be_v think_v on_o not_o one_o be_v want_v for_o if_o arius_n of_o old_a who_o quite_v the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n and_o band_v against_o it_o be_v upon_o that_o account_n both_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n our_o sectary_n be_v in_o eâdem_fw-la nave_n and_o have_v do_v so_o their_o cause_n and_o case_n in_o other_o matter_n be_v the_o very_a same_o 2._o as_o arius_n stand_v all_o alone_a at_o his_o first_o rise_n opposite_a to_o the_o rest_n of_o christian_n and_o be_v oppose_v by_o all_o so_o be_v they_o also_o both_o opposite_a and_o oppose_v by_o all_o 3._o as_o he_o begin_v without_o commission_n to_o broach_v his_o novelty_n against_o the_o ancient_a faith_n so_o be_v they_o as_o whole_o uncommission_v to_o preach_v they_o and_o here_o we_o give_v they_o matter_n enough_o to_o work_v on_o and_o conjure_v they_o to_o produce_v their_o commission_n 4._o as_o arius_n support_v by_o secular_a power_n vent_v what_o ever_o he_o please_v without_o curb_n or_o any_o superior_a law_n to_o check_v he_o and_o therefore_o fall_v into_o desperate_a extravagancy_n so_o be_v our_o new_a man_n lawless_a also_o and_o submit_v to_o none_o but_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o self-judgement_n final_o as_o arius_n without_o warrant_n of_o the_o church_n interpret_v scripture_n as_o his_o own_o weak_a reason_n teach_v he_o just_o so_o do_v our_o sectary_n here_o only_o be_v the_o difference_n that_o he_o have_v a_o plausible_a sound_n of_o scripture-word_n for_o his_o heresy_n protestant_n have_v neither_o sound_n nor_o syllable_n nor_o sense_n through_o the_o whole_a bible_n for_o one_o article_n of_o protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n this_o i_o shall_v make_v good_a hereafter_o here_o be_v charge_n enough_o draw_v up_o against_o they_o but_o by_o what_o satisfactory_a know_v and_o receive_v principle_n which_o force_n reason_n to_o acquiesce_v and_o we_o make_v a_o search_n after_o these_o they_o can_v acquit_v themselves_o or_o rational_o answer_v be_v a_o heavy_a difficulty_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o in_o a_o word_n and_o remember_v it_o they_o shall_v never_o answer_v by_o any_o thing_n that_o have_v the_o look_n of_o a_o rational_a proof_n or_o a_o receive_a principle_n no_o their_o own_o sole_a proofle_n word_n whereon_o the_o whole_a machine_n of_o protestancy_n be_v build_v uphold_v what_o ever_o they_o teach_v they_o have_v no_o more_o they_o say_v it_o be_v true_a they_o leave_v the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n because_o it_o leave_v itself_o but_o yet_o stick_v close_o to_o the_o primitive_a doctrine_n observe_v it_o they_o be_v here_o both_o accuser_n of_o we_o and_o judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n their_o proofle_n word_n do_v all_o without_o reduce_v it_o to_o any_o know_v or_o certain_a own_a principle_n not_o one_o council_n not_o one_o canon_n no_o ancient_a tradition_n no_o consent_n of_o father_n can_v they_o produce_v whereby_o particular_a man_n be_v licence_v to_o rise_v up_o against_o a_o ancient_a mother_n church_n and_o condemn_v it_o of_o false_a doctrine_n they_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o they_o stand_v all_o alone_a when_o luther_n rise_v up_o yet_o teach_v forsooth_o the_o true_a gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o we_o must_v believe_v they_o here_o be_v the_o last_o propositio_fw-la quiescens_fw-la they_o say_v so_o to_o what_o we_o charge_v against_o their_o uncommission_v authority_n to_o preach_v as_o they_o do_v you_o have_v the_o like_v uncommission_v answer_n the_o lord_n send_v they_o abroad_o and_o the_o truth_n they_o teach_v secure_v they_o but_o of_o these_o weak_a wordy_a reply_n i_o have_v say_v to_o much_o in_o this_o short_a digression_n let_v we_o now_o return_v to_o mr._n poole_n and_o i_o must_v say_v all_o he_o have_v vent_v in_o his_o nullity_n or_o appendix_n against_o we_o come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o to_o a_o most_o weak_a assault_n of_o a_o feeble_a adversary_n for_o this_o man_n who_o endeavorus_n to_o prove_v that_o both_o church_n and_o council_n and_o what_o else_o you_o can_v mention_v be_v fallible_a can_v never_o assume_v to_o himself_o or_o tie_v to_o any_o community_n he_o join_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o infallibility_n for_o if_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n must_v down_o down_o say_v i_o also_o with_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o the_o grecian_a church_n and_o of_o all_o other_o society_n of_o christian_n with_o some_o of_o these_o mr._n poole_n be_v list_v and_o therefore_o i_o can_v but_o hold_v he_o and_o his_o adherent_n man_n of_o no_o more_o then_o of_o a_o fallible_a religion_n hence_o i_o argue_v suppose_v which_o be_v utter_o false_a that_o the_o church_n or_o all_o church_n all_o council_n all_o father_n be_v fallible_a and_o that_o christian_a religion_n as_o it_o be_v teach_v by_o these_o be_v likewise_o fallible_a admit_v also_o that_o i_o be_v to_o embrace_v one_o of_o these_o many_o fallible_a religion_n which_o i_o shall_v never_o do_v will_v not_o prudence_n dictate_v if_o i_o have_v no_o other_o certainty_n than_o these_o mere_a uncertainty_n to_o rely_v on_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o hold_v where_o i_o be_o and_o stick_v to_o my_o ancient_a religion_n glorious_a with_o innumerable_a martyr_n doctor_n confessor_n etc._n etc._n then_o to_o give_v up_o my_o faith_n to_o mr._n pool_n post-nate_a fallible_a religion_n and_o false_a discourse_n how_o therefore_o can_v this_o man_n so_o much_o as_o once_o endeavour_v to_o draw_v i_o or_o any_o of_o my_o more_o ancient_a and_o universal_a religion_n though_o suppose_v fallible_a to_o another_o new_a one_o which_o lie_v sick_a of_o the_o same_o disease_n totter_v and_o reel_n as_o much_o as_o i_o if_o not_o more_o and_o in_o a_o word_n be_v fallible_a of_o two_o evil_n the_o less_o be_v to_o be_v choose_v it_o be_v a_o evil_n without_o doubt_n to_o have_v no_o religion_n certain_a yet_o if_o i_o be_v to_o choose_v one_o of_o two_o uncertain_a religion_n and_o can_v by_o no_o certain_a teacher_n learn_v which_o of_o they_o be_v worse_a be_v both_o naught_o i_o will_v either_o pitch_n where_o i_o listen_v and_o as_o my_o fancy_n lead_v i_o or_o rather_o choose_v none_o at_o all_o know_v well_o that_o a_o ruin_n of_o all_o faith_n follow_v the_o renounce_n of_o certainty_n in_o religion_n but_o of_o this_o more_o hereafter_o in_o the_o interim_n i_o will_v know_v of_o mr._n poole_n whether_o this_o strange_a and_o unheard_a of_o proposition_n christian_a religion_n as_o it_o be_v teach_v and_o deliver_v by_o all_o pastor_n doctor_n etc._n etc._n be_v fallible_a be_v subjective_o in_o he_o that_o speak_v it_o a_o infallible_a assertion_n or_o fallible_a if_o the_o first_o we_o have_v a_o english_a pope_n i_o mean_v mr._n poole_n who_o without_o either_o scripture_n church_n or_o council_n can_v speak_v infallible_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n if_o that_o formal_a proposition_n be_v fallible_a it_o fall_v of_o itself_o without_o further_a proof_n to_o nothing_o and_o render_v this_o sense_n i._o m._n p._n say_v by_o a_o fallible_a assertion_n that_o christian_a religion_n be_v fallible_a which_o feeble_a assertion_n and_o the_o weak_a it_o be_v the_o worse_a it_o be_v for_o he_o can_v at_o all_o startle_v i_o or_o any_o who_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o thousand_o more_o learned_a than_o he_o to_o say_v no_o more_o hold_v one_o
oppose_v by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n as_o false_a and_o paradoxal_a can_v be_v moral_o certain_a if_o this_o principle_n hold_v good_a it_o if_o follow_v that_o much_o and_o very_o much_o too_o of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n want_v also_o moral_a certainty_n because_o a_o very_a great_a number_n of_o christian_n oppugn_v it_o as_o fall_v some_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n other_o the_o real_a presence_n other_o purgatory_n other_o prage_v for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n and_o protestant_n after_o their_o long_a study_n deny_v all_o these_o at_o once_o therefore_o such_o doctrine_n can_v be_v moral_o certain_a 7._o i_o answer_v first_o this_o objection_n without_o doubt_n prove_v too_o much_o and_o impugn'_v a_o certain_a truth_n of_o christianity_n for_o tell_v i_o when_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o st._n hierom_n say_v groan_v under_o arianism_n see_v that_o haeresy_n far_o and_o near_o diffuse_v do_v that_o opposition_n weaken_v the_o moral_a certainty_n which_o orthodox_n christian_n have_v then_o of_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o essence_n and_o we_o only_o speak_v now_o of_o moral_a evidence_n antecedent_n force_n ancient_a motive_n never_o loose_v their_o force_n to_o faith_n if_o so_o the_o motive_n moral_o evident_a for_o the_o belief_n of_o that_o mystery_n cease_v or_o at_o least_o lose_v their_o ancient_a vigour_n which_o be_v false_o and_o one_o great_a realon_n be_v because_o that_o true_a doctrine_n of_o a_o trinity_n have_v no_o first_o rise_v nor_o appear_v like_o a_o new_a paradox_n in_o protestancy_n catholic_n doctrine_n have_v no_o first_o rise_v like_o protestancy_n the_o world_n as_o protestancy_n do_v peep_v out_o like_o a_o unknown_a stranger_n when_o luther_n and_o calvin_n first_o broach_v it_o no_o that_o catholic_n doctrine_n be_v universal_o believe_v by_o all_o faithful_a christian_n before_o arian_n be_v bear_v the_o motive_n therefore_o which_o make_v it_o evident_o credible_a before_o arius_n continue_v firm_a notwithstanding_o his_o opposition_n and_o still_o induce_v christian_n to_o believe_v as_o they_o have_v do_v former_o which_o reason_n also_o hold_v good_a to_o our_o present_a purpose_n and_o do_v not_o only_o give_v a_o immense_a disparity_n between_o the_o moral_a evident_a certainty_n of_o catholic_n religion_n and_o what_o ever_o certainty_n haeresy_n can_v pretend_v to_o but_o also_o demonstrative_o make_v both_o protestancy_n and_o all_o haeresy_n improbable_a and_o this_o truth_n i_o shall_v evidence_n have_v first_o clear_v the_o fallacy_n which_o intricate_v the_o reply_n now_o in_o hand_n chap._n vii_o how_o sectary_n err_v in_o the_o search_n make_v after_o religion_n of_o their_o weak_a and_o improbable_a opposition_n the_o objection_n be_v more_o full_o answer_v 1._o our_o sectary_n and_o all_o heretic_n err_v gross_o in_o a_o main_a principle_n which_o breed_v nothing_o but_o confusion_n to_o themselves_o and_o other_o thus_o it_o be_v only_o heretic_n error_n in_o their_o search_n of_o true_a religion_n some_o for_o scripture_n only_o in_o their_o search_n after_o true_a religion_n they_o run_v on_o but_o how_o extra_n viam_fw-la in_o a_o wrong_n and_o mistake_a way_n some_o will_v find_v it_o out_o by_o the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o few_o exact_o read_v and_o none_o can_v understand_v by_o his_o private_a judgement_n these_o err_v not_o know_v scripture_n and_o may_v as_o st._n austin_n note_v epist_n 40._o ad_fw-la deo_fw-la gratias_fw-la end_v their_o life_n before_o they_o end_v difficulty_n this_o doctrine_n other_o fly_v to_o the_o primitive_a church_n doctrine_n way_n other_o fly_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o loose_v themselves_o for_o what_o private_a man_n can_v now_o by_o his_o mere_a read_n moral_o ascertain_v i_o or_o any_o of_o the_o indubitable_a universal_a sense_n of_o that_o doctrine_n whereas_o all_o which_o the_o church_n hold_v then_o be_v not_o write_v of_o what_o be_v write_v part_n be_v lose_v and_o much_o of_o what_o remain_v be_v as_o experience_n teach_v only_o other_o be_v for_o reason_n only_o liable_a to_o cavil_n and_o misinterpretation_n other_o and_z it_z be_v a_o socinian_n jog_v decide_v all_o by_o weak_a humane_a reason_n as_o if_o forsooth_o wit_n alone_o be_v able_a to_o fathom_n god_n incomprehensible_a secret_n other_o final_o without_o faith_n ohers_n stay_n on_o the_o difficil_n mystery_n of_o faith_n further_a inspection_n stand_v poer_v on_o the_o material_a object_n or_o mystery_n of_o faith_n and_o after_o many_o a_o misspend_v hour_n ask_v at_o last_o of_o a_o very_a unskilful_a master_n their_o own_o weak_a reason_n what_o it_o judge_v of_o these_o mystery_n loft_n all_o labour_n loft_n if_o reason_n as_o it_o often_o fall_v out_o find'_v they_o difficil_n it_o cast_n they_o away_o as_o mere_a improbability_n thus_o the_o arian_n reject_n a_o trinity_n the_o pelagian_a original_a sin_n the_o protestant_a christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n because_o they_o run_v into_o dark_a matter_n whick_z only_a puzzle_n reason_n and_o wave_v those_o further_a consideration_n which_o clear_a all_o and_o make_v faith_n if_o not_o evident_o certain_a in_o attestante_fw-la at_o least_o evident_o credible_a 2._o i_o say_v therefore_o the_o most_o easy_a way_n to_o find_v out_o true_a religion_n or_o the_o first_o unquestionable_a evidence_n evident_a the_o way_n to_o find_v out_o true_a religion_n be_v easy_a and_o evident_a which_o point_v it_o out_o lie_v open_a and_o be_v obvious_a to_o all_o before_o we_o either_o examine_v particular_a mystery_n of_o faith_n or_o enter_v upon_o proof_n draw_v from_o scripture_n council_n or_o father_n it_o be_v true_a from_o these_o ground_n we_o have_v irrefragable_a argument_n against_o all_o sectary_n but_o can_v they_o think_v that_o the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n have_v put_v as_o it_o be_v religion_n so_o far_o out_o of_o sight_n or_o set_v it_o at_o so_o great_a a_o distance_n from_o we_o that_o none_o can_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o before_o scripture_n father_n and_o those_o large_a volume_n of_o council_n be_v exact_o examine_v whic_a few_o read_v and_o few_o understand_v no_o certain_o true_a religion_n evidence_v itself_o and_o be_v itself_o true_a religion_n evidence_v itself_o most_o discernible_a from_o error_n by_o a_o other_o clear_a and_o conspicuous_a light_n which_o none_o can_v but_o see_v unless_o he_o wilful_o shut_v his_o eye_n antecedent_o to_o the_o perusal_n of_o scripture_n father_n etc._n etc._n this_o light_n or_o evidence_n we_o may_v right_o call_v god_n own_o persuasive_a language_n whereby_o he_o speak_v to_o reason_n before_o we_o elicit_v faith_n and_o rational_o convince_v all_o of_o this_o general_a truth_n one_o society_n of_o christian_n there_o be_v wherein_o my_o eternal_a truth_n be_v teach_v this_o i_o make_v manifest_a by_o evident_a sign_n by_o the_o light_n of_o clear_a and_o undeniable_a motive_n whereof_o none_o can_v but_o most_o unreasonable_o doubt_n so_o it_o be_v say_v origen_n hom._n 30._o in_o matth._n ecclesia_fw-la plena_fw-la est_fw-la fulgore_fw-la ab_fw-la oriente_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la occidentem_fw-la the_o church_n like_o a_o resplendent_a sun_n cast_v out_o lustre_n from_o east_n to_o west_n and_o they_o be_v blind_a who_o see_v not_o so_o clear_a a_o brightness_n thus_o much_o premise_v 3._o i_o answer_v to_o the_o objection_n above_o and_o say_v doctrine_n sectary_n groundless_a impugning_a catholic_n doctrine_n though_o thousand_o more_o than_o sectary_n impugn_v part_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n yet_o as_o long_o as_o god_n demonstrative_o evidence_v the_o absolute_a credibility_n of_o that_o church_n which_o teach_v it_o by_o such_o rational_a prudent_a and_o press_v motive_n as_o have_v gain_v million_o of_o soul_n to_o believe_v our_o adversary_n in_o band_v against_o church_n doctrine_n only_o bewray_v malice_n ignorance_n or_o both_o and_o do_v no_o more_o but_o cast_a dirt_n at_o a_o sun_n which_o providence_n maugre_o their_o weak_a attempt_n will_v have_v to_o shine_v whilst_o christianity_n last_v so_o urgent_a therefore_o so_o illustrious_a be_v these_o motive_n as_o i_o shall_v present_o declare_v for_o the_o total_a belief_n of_o what_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n teach_v that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o suppress_v and_o silence_v such_o weak_a opponent_n but_o also_o make_v protestancy_n and_o all_o other_o sect_n improbable_a and_o incredible_a the_o reason_n hereof_o most_o ample_o lay_v forth_o in_o the_o three_o next_o follow_v chapter_n stand_v sure_o on_o these_o two_o undeniable_a principle_n first_o that_o church_n which_o christ_n jesus_n found_v and_o church_n christ_n manifest_a to_o all_o and_o so_o be_v his_o church_n his_o bless_a intention_n be_v to_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n to_o it_o be_v so_o eminent_o glorious_a so_o clear_o mark_v with_o unboubted_a sign_n and_o most_o legible_a character_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o simple_a man_n if_o he_o follow_v reason_n may_v find_v
it_o out_o and_o believe_v secure_o no_o other_o but_o the_o credible_a the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n only_a evidence_v credible_a roman_n catholic_n church_n only_a be_v thus_o evidence_v se_fw-la chap._n 8._o 9_o 10._o the_o second_o principle_n this_o holy_a church_n which_o age_n after_o age_n without_o any_o late_a rise_n like_o that_o of_o protestancy_n have_v stand_v constant_o ever_o since_o christ_n and_o draw_v whole_a kingdom_n and_o nation_n to_o its_o belief_n be_v either_o on_o set_v purpose_v raise_v up_o by_o world_n it_o be_v not_o found_v by_o christ_n to_o cheat_v the_o world_n almighty_a god_n and_o conserve_v in_o be_v for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n to_o cheat_v the_o world_n into_o a_o false_a belief_n which_o be_v impious_a to_o think_v or_o must_v be_v own_v as_o it_o deserve_v for_o the_o only_a undoubted_a most_o manifest_a and_o glorious_o evidence_v church_n of_o christ_n se_fw-la chap._n 8._o n._n 5._o 6._o 4._o you_o will_v say_v notwithstanding_o all_o the_o glorious_a mark_n we_o can_v lay_v claim_n to_o and_o grace_v our_o church_n withal_o very_o many_o learned_a man_n do_v oppose_v it_o if_o then_o the_o argument_n above_o have_v force_v this_o very_a opposition_n of_o so_o many_o weaken'_v much_o and_o take_v of_o no_o few_o degree_n of_o that_o moral_a certainty_n we_o stand_v for_o contra._n very_o many_o learned_a man_n oppose_v both_o apostolical_a and_o of_o 'slight_o opposition_n not_o value_v of_o primitive_a doctrine_n atheist_n band_n against_o god_n and_o jew_n against_o christ_n the_o arian_n yet_o impugn_v a_o trinity_n be_v our_o sectary_n affright_v upon_o that_o account_n or_o weaken_v in_o their_o moral_a certainty_n of_o thar_z mystery_n whilst_o they_o believe_v it_o no._n every_o trivial_a and_o slight_a opposition_n therefore_o make_v against_o a_o verity_n which_o strong_o defend'_v and_o powerful_o plead_v forsit_v self_n can_v neither_o daunt_v nor_o discountenance_v it_o the_o opposition_n then_o in_o our_o present_a matter_n if_o to_o the_o purpose_n principle_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v deep_o rational_a and_o bring_v to_o certain_a principle_n ought_v to_o be_v well_o ground_v and_o deep_o rational_a ground_v i_o say_v not_o upon_o what_o this_o or_o that_o private_a person_n by_o his_o sole_a fallible_a bosom_n thought_n hold_v reasonable_a for_o so_o every_o arian_n will_v make_v good_a his_o haeresy_n but_o the_o opposition_n if_o rational_a must_v go_v further_o and_o rest_n at_o last_o upon_o a_o solid_a and_o satisfactory_a principle_n which_o well_o lay_v forth_o gentle_o force_v every_o prudent_a church_n sectary_n destitute_a of_o any_o rational_a proof_n against_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o disinterest_v man_n to_o acquiesce_v and_o yield_v to_o it_o but_o this_o can_v be_v do_v in_o our_o present_a case_n for_o sectary_n be_v so_o utter_o destitute_a of_o what_o ever_o look_n like_o a_o rational_a proof_n or_o any_o receive_a principle_n they_o be_v so_o disenable_v to_o speak_v with_o sense_n against_o the_o know_a evidence_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n that_o and_o i_o do_v assert_v it_o bold_o they_o shall_v as_o soon_o turn_v christianity_n out_o of_o the_o world_n as_o rational_o abate_v or_o lessen_v the_o plain_a and_o undisputable_a evidence_n of_o this_o one_o christian_a society_n 5._o this_o bless_a society_n therefore_o stand_v thus_o upon_o firm_a church_n solid_n principle_n for_o the_o catholic_n church_n ground_n upon_o solid_a and_o undoubted_a principle_n i_o show_v you_o say_v this_o church_n those_o very_a motive_n which_o ancient_o countenance_v the_o preach_v of_o christ_n and_o convert_v the_o world_n and_o these_o plead_v for_o i_o with_o what_o urgent_a contrary_a proof_n can_v you_o my_o good_a protestant_n deface_v such_o glorious_a mark_n of_o truth_n or_o make_v they_o either_o insignificant_a or_o forceles_a argument_n be_v this_o weighty_o do_v by_o draw_v a_o few_o trivial_a gloss_n trifle_n sectary_n trifle_n out_o of_o mistake_a scripture_n by_o tell_v we_o of_o council_n contradict_v council_n by_o quote_v our_o author_n wrongful_o by_o relate_v a_o story_n not_o worth_a the_o hear_n of_o a_o pope_n or_o prelate_n be_v these_o manly_a proof_n think_v you_o or_o sufficient_a to_o eclipse_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n toy_n trifle_n frivolous_a i_o show_v you_o again_o church_n other_o evidence_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n say_v this_o church_n that_o the_o most_o wise_a of_o the_o world_n the_o most_o learned_a the_o most_o holy_a their_o number_n be_v numberless_a notwithstanding_o the_o opposition_n make_v against_o i_o have_v age_n after_o age_n even_o before_o and_o after_o it_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o learned_a of_o the_o world_n notwithstanding_o the_o opposition_n make_v against_o this_o church_n live_v and_o dye_v in_o it_o your_o haeresy_n begin_v constant_o profess_v my_o faith_n live_v and_o dye_v in_o it_o without_o change_n and_o alteration_n tell_v i_o be_v these_o million_o of_o soul_n learned_a and_o unlearned_a for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o all_o mad_a all_o besot_v all_o seduce_v by_o foolery_n it_o be_v worse_a than_o madness_n to_o say_v so_o here_o then_o be_v a_o principle_n in_o moral_a matter_n the_o sure_a imaginable_a for_o our_o church_n this_o nubes_fw-la testium_fw-la alone_a and_o of_o such_o witness_n which_o be_v ever_o to_o be_v reflect_v on_o make_v it_o evident_o credible_a and_o by_o what_o contrary_a rational_a proof_n or_o receive_v principle_n can_v our_o adversary_n enervate_a or_o make_v null_a the_o testimony_n foolery_n all_o these_o wise_a and_o learned_a can_v be_v suppose_v mad_a or_o seduce_v by_o foolery_n of_o these_o innumerable_a giver_n in_o of_o evidence_n who_o lead_v on_o by_o motive_n which_o they_o think_v rational_a and_o what_o pass_v for_o reason_n among_o so_o many_o and_o such_o qualify_a person_n aught_o to_o pass_v for_o reason_n with_o all_o believe_v this_o church_n and_o die_v in_o it_o happy_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o have_v our_o sectary_n salomon_n wisdom_n argument_n protestant_n can_v answer_v this_o one_o argument_n they_o will_v yet_o be_v unable_a to_o satisfy_v this_o one_o argument_n probable_o much_o less_o to_o evidence_n it_o forceles_a upon_o either_o solid_a proof_n or_o any_o receive_a principle_n the_o reason_n be_v no_o proof_n can_v vainquish_v a_o evident_a verity_n but_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a verity_n that_o god_n cheat_v truth_n no_o proof_n against_o evident_a truth_n not_o the_o world_n by_o mean_n of_o so_o numerous_a a_o multitude_n of_o catholic_n professor_n it_o be_v a_o evident_a verity_n that_o all_o those_o wise_a and_o learned_a catholic_n be_v neither_o mad_a nor_o for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n delude_v by_o foolery_n he_o therefore_o who_o when_o rational_a proof_n fail_v can_v more_o if_o sectary_n slight_a such_o witness_n they_o slight_a themselves_o much_o more_o speak_v a_o reasonable_a word_n against_o these_o million_o of_o witness_n but_o slight_n and_o undervalue_v they_o do_v not_o only_o slight_v the_o great_a authority_n on_o earth_n but_o also_o if_o he_o be_v a_o protestant_n must_v slight_a protestancy_n if_o a_o arian_n arianism_n for_o these_o sect_n have_v neither_o authority_n nor_o witness_n comparable_a to_o those_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 6._o for_o conclusion_n of_o this_o matter_n be_v please_v to_o note_v that_o as_o our_o adversary_n be_v destitute_a of_o rational_a proof_n reducible_a to_o receive_v principle_n whilst_o they_o impugn_v the_o clear_a evidence_n of_o our_o church_n so_o they_o also_o want_v they_o in_o all_o other_o particular_a controversy_n for_o whether_o they_o go_v about_o to_o oppose_v our_o doctrine_n principle_n soctary_n never_o come_v to_o principle_n or_o to_o prove_v their_o own_o you_o can_v never_o draw_v from_o they_o proof_n bring_v to_o a_o undoubted_a principle_n as_o i_o shall_v most_o ample_o show_v hereafter_o they_o be_v opponent_n it_o be_v true_a when_o they_o tell_v we_o we_o have_v change_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n bring_v in_o novelty_n and_o i_o know_v not_o what_o we_o hear_v such_o talk_n but_o where_o be_v the_o propositio_fw-la quiescens_fw-la or_o ground_a proof_n to_o make_v this_o charge_n good_a they_o say_v so_o and_o that_o be_v all_o and_o yet_o if_o possible_a they_o be_v worse_o at_o it_o in_o prove_v their_o own_o doctrine_n take_v here_o one_o instance_n you_o shall_v have_v more_o hereafter_o we_o demand_v propose_v a_o question_n propose_v upon_o what_o rational_a proof_n can_v these_o man_n believe_v the_o sacred_a mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o deny_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v they_o force_v to_o admit_v of_o the_o one_o and_o proof_n protestant_n believe_v one_o mystery_n reject_v another_o with_o out_o proof_n reject_v the_o other_o by_o clear_a and_o manifest_a scripture_n evident_o no._n scripture_n be_v without_o controversy_n more_o
demonstrative_o give_v a_o catalogue_n of_o her_o succeed_a pope_n and_o bishop_n from_o blessed_n st._n peter_n to_o this_o present_a pope_n who_o now_o sitt'_v in_o that_o chair_n and_o if_o you_o will_v know_v of_o what_o account_n this_o perpetuate_v succession_n of_o pastor_n be_v read_z st._n austin_n tom._n 6._o contra_fw-la epistolam_fw-la fundam_fw-la cap._n 4._o in_o catholica_fw-la account_n a_o continue_a succession_n of_o great_a account_n ecclesia_fw-la tenet_fw-la i_o say_v the_o saint_n ab_fw-la ipsa_fw-la sede_n petri_n apostoli_fw-la cvi_fw-la pascendas_fw-la oves_fw-la svas_fw-la post_fw-la resurrectionem_fw-la dominus_fw-la commendavit_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la praesentem_fw-la episcopatum_fw-la successio_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la the_o continue_a succession_n of_o priest_n until_o now_o from_o the_o seat_n of_o st._n peter_n the_o apostle_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n after_o his_o resurrection_n commend_v his_o flock_n to_o be_v feed_v hold_v i_o in_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o afterward_o no_o donatist_n can_v show_v such_o a_o succession_n no_o more_o say_v i_o can_v any_o protestant_n see_v more_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la c._n 17._o at_o those_o word_n dubitamus_fw-la nos_fw-la ejus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la gremio_fw-la condere_fw-la etc._n etc._n 12._o sanctity_n and_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n which_o neither_o doctrine_n purity_n of_o doctrine_n infidel_n nor_o sectary_n can_v ever_o yet_o cavil_v at_o but_o upon_o the_o account_n that_o there_o be_v too_o much_o of_o it_o in_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v pitiful_o want_v to_o protestant_n i_o prove_v it_o as_o the_o tree_n be_v know_v by_o its_o fruit_n so_o holy_a doctrine_n be_v best_a know_v by_o the_o holy_a life_n of_o those_o who_o profess_v it_o and_o the_o saintly_o effect_n that_o doctrine_n saintly_o effect_n follow_v holy_a doctrine_n follow_v it_o if_o we_o may_v insist_v on_o the_o first_o tell_v i_o where_o have_v our_o protestant_n their_o holy_a hilarion_n their_o retire_a paul_n and_o antony_n their_o gregory_n their_o bernard_n their_o malachy_n where_o have_v they_o apostle_n like_o st._n austin_n of_o england_n bishop_n of_o such_o austerity_n as_o a_o st._n charles_n boromaeus_fw-la doctor_n so_o profund_o learn_v and_o humble_a as_o st._n thomas_n of_o aquine_n and_o st._n bonaventure_n where_o be_v their_o undefatigable_a missioner_n send_v for_o conversion_n to_o the_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n with_o a_o blessed_n st._n xaverius_n where_o be_v their_o mortify_v religious_a manifest_a sanctity_n manifest_a their_o solitary_a monk_n their_o tender_a virgin_n shut_v up_o in_o cloister_n without_o hope_n of_o enjoy_v the_o world_n or_o friend_n any_o more_o such_o holiness_n manifest'_v itself_o in_o the_o catholic_n church_n protestant_n have_v nothing_o like_o it_o and_o yet_o those_o two_o impure_a founder_n of_o the_o new_a gospel_n luther_n and_o calvin_n have_v far_o les_fw-fr of_o sanctity_n let_v every_o conscience_n speak_v its_o own_o thought_n and_o say_v plain_o whether_o these_o two_o now_o parallel_n a_o parallel_n name_v be_v pattern_n of_o virtue_n like_o a_o renown_a st._n benet_n a_o glorious_a st._n dominick_n a_o humble_a st._n francis_n a_o prudent_a st._n ignatius_n who_o endeavour_v not_o to_o amend_v the_o church_n ever_o sound_a in_o doctrine_n but_o only_a to_o better_v the_o world_n by_o their_o incessant_a labour_n by_o their_o charitable_a work_n and_o bless_a example_n heaven_n now_o crown_v these_o saint_n with_o glory_n and_o earth_n yet_o celebrat'_v their_o memory_n with_o immortal_a praise_n whilst_o luther_n and_o calvin_n lie_v bury_v in_o oblivion_n only_o think_v on_o for_o sound_v a_o gospel_n upon_o liberty_n which_o make_v all_o the_o follower_n of_o it_o libertin_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o christianity_n have_v be_v much_o worse_a alt._n protestancy_n ruin_v alt._n for_o their_o once_o be_v christian_n more_o atheistical_a principle_n have_v be_v settle_v in_o man_n heart_n since_o these_o two_o new_a preacher_n come_v among_o we_o more_o fantastic_a opinion_n vent_v more_o kingdom_n undo_v more_o commonwealth_n ruin_v more_o innocent_a blood_n shed_v after_o this_o tragical_a gospel_n get_v foot_v than_o before_o be_v hear_v of_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o in_o time_n of_o popery_n and_o 13._o here_o we_o may_v brief_o touch_v something_o on_o those_o gospel_n sad_n effect_n of_o this_o new_a gospel_n sad_a effect_n which_o have_v follow_v protestant_n doctrine_n and_o set_v passion_n aside_o friendly_o ask_v of_o any_o impartial_a man_n what_o good_a have_v this_o new_a religion_n do_v in_o the_o world_n what_o amendment_n have_v it_o make_v in_o life_n and_o manner_n what_o conversion_n have_v it_o wrought_v among_o heathen_n and_o infidel_n what_o sanctity_n have_v it_o yet_o show_v we_o in_o the_o professor_n of_o it_o what_o church_n have_v it_o build_v what_o hospital_n have_v it_o erect_v what_o university_n have_v it_o found_v either_o comparable_a to_o our_o ancient_n or_o modern_a catholic_n all_o run_v on_o in_o a_o contrary_a strain_n ruin_n ghastly_a ruin_n follow_v these_o man_n where_o ever_o they_o go_v to_o the_o horror_n of_o those_o who_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v and_o heart_n to_o deplore_v the_o sad_a spectacle_n yet_o leave_v of_o their_o impious_a sacrilege_n sectary_n sacrilege_n sacrilege_n and_o worse_o than_o barbarous_a reformation_n viz._n of_o our_o church_n deface_v of_o our_o cloister_n demolish_v of_o our_o altar_n and_o monument_n pull_v down_o whilst_o yet_o they_o live_v on_o our_o revenue_n as_o if_o the_o very_a memory_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o temple_n where_o once_o he_o be_v worship_v be_v grow_v abominable_a to_o these_o new_a spirit_n and_o why_o all_o this_o confusion_n for_o a_o new_a nothing_o o_o strange_a and_o prodigious_a spirit_n what_o shall_v i_o say_v impiety_n impiety_n of_o thou_o thy_o do_n be_v only_o to_o undo_v thy_o building_n to_o destroy_v thy_o piety_n be_v to_o profane_a sanctify_a place_n thy_o light_n be_v to_o bring_v in_o horror_n and_o darkness_n rebellion_n rebellion_n thy_o turn_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n have_v turn_v king_n out_o of_o their_o throne_n bishop_n out_o of_o their_o see_v religious_a out_o of_o their_o cell_n noble_n out_o confusion_n confusion_n of_o their_o estate_n sense_n out_o of_o scripture_n charity_n out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o man_n out_o of_o their_o wit_n this_o turn_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n have_v turn_v unity_n into_o schism_n peace_n into_o war_n religion_n into_o policy_n virtue_n into_o hypocrisy_n learn_v into_o ignorance_n such_o be_v the_o know_a effect_n of_o this_o late_a doctrine_n all_o upon_o record_n reserve_v to_o the_o final_a sentence_n of_o our_o most_o impartial_a judge_n in_o the_o vale_n of_o josaphat_n where_o it_o will_v appear_v whether_o i_o have_v wrong_v these_o man_n in_o draw_v up_o this_o dreadful_a charge_n against_o they_o or_o they_o themselves_o for_o such_o impiety_n do_v before_o god_n and_o his_o angel_n 14._o our_o sectary_n be_v wont_v to_o object_n against_o the_o objection_n church_n sanctity_n the_o scandal_n pride_n and_o luxury_n of_o wicked_a man_n in_o it_o st._n austin_n long_v since_o answer_v the_o cavil_v among_o good_a corn_n have_v cockle_n with_o wheat_n you_o have_v chaff_n mingle_v in_o a_o slorish_a kingdom_n you_o find_v traitor_n among_o marry_a woman_n it_o be_v st._n augustine_n instance_n some_o you_o may_v have_v les_fw-fr loyal_a be_v therefore_o all_o to_o be_v blame_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o some_o it_o be_v open_a unjustice_n se_fw-la st._n austin_n in_o his_o five_o book_n some_o all_o not_o blamable_a upon_o the_o account_n of_o some_o against_o faustus_n cap._n ultimo_fw-la and_o his_o 137._o epistle_n bless_a be_v almighty_a god_n though_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n lie_v heavy_o on_o many_o yet_o great_a sanctity_n be_v still_o eminent_a in_o the_o church_n among_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n whether_o prince_n prelaet_n pastor_n religious_a secular_o rich_a or_o poor_a great_a conversion_n we_o see_v daily_o not_o only_o make_v from_o haeresy_n to_o faith_n but_o also_o from_o vice_n to_o virtue_n from_o a_o loose_a sensual_a life_n to_o great_a austerity_n the_o rich_a often_o voluntary_o become_v poor_a the_o proud_a humble_a the_o avaricious_a liberal_n the_o riotous_a frugal_n the_o impatient_a meek_n the_o secular_a religious_a and_o quit_v all_o they_o have_v in_o this_o tumultuous_a world_n to_o serve_v god_n in_o a_o quiet_a cell_n such_o change_n from_o worse_a to_o better_o be_v better_o evident_a change_n from_o worse_a to_o better_o undeniable_o evident_a in_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o yet_o erasmus_n his_o acute_a eye_n can_v never_o see_v among_o our_o new_a man_n proffer_n mihi_fw-la say_v he_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o vulturius_fw-la neocomus_n quem_fw-la istud_fw-la euangelium_fw-la ex_fw-la commessatore_fw-la sobrium_fw-la etc._n etc._n give_v i_o the_o man_n who_o this_o gospel_n of_o a_o gurmandizer_n have_v make_v sober_a
they_o preach_v and_o teach_v they_o only_o can_v show_v to_o all_o the_o world_n their_o pope_n their_o bishop_n their_o pastor_n their_o doctor_n who_o successive_o have_v teach_v and_o govern_v christ_n flock_n since_o the_o beginning_n of_o christianity_n they_o and_o only_o church_n and_o glorious_a mark_n of_o a_o long_a stand_a church_n they_o show_v you_o a_o church_n mark_v and_o make_v glorious_a by_o innumerable_a know_v and_o undoubted_a miracle_n a_o faith_n seal_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o innumerable_a bless_a martyr_n beautify_v with_o such_o eminent_a sanctity_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n in_o thousand_o as_o have_v cause_v admiration_n to_o very_a infidel_n and_o draw_v in_o no_o few_o to_o follow_v the_o like_a austerity_n such_o be_v the_o inducement_n which_o plead_v strong_o for_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n and_o no_o other_o they_o full_o convince_v reason_n and_o prove_v that_o if_o god_n as_o i_o note_v above_o can_v conquer_v infidelity_n and_o haeresy_n by_o the_o force_n of_o prudential_a motive_n here_o they_o be_v see_v if_o ever_o he_o speak_v by_o church_n as_o god_n speak_v ancient_o by_o his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n he_o speak_v now_o by_o the_o church_n the_o mouth_n of_o his_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n he_o speak_v now_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o this_o one_o and_o only_a society_n of_o christian_n yea_o and_o he_o yet_o use_v as_o i_o may_v say_v the_o same_o powerful_a language_n for_o if_o the_o miracle_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n if_o their_o efficacious_a doctrine_n their_o sanctity_n of_o life_n their_o blood_n shed_v be_v conviction_n enough_o to_o infidel_n in_o those_o day_n they_o be_v now_o as_o forceable_a in_o the_o church_n and_o as_o manifest_v to_o our_o sense_n which_o cause_v that_o bless_a man_n richard_n de_fw-fr s._n victore_fw-la lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr trin._n c._n 2._o to_o exclaim_v si_fw-mi error_n est_fw-la quem_fw-la credidimus_fw-la à_fw-la te_fw-la decepti_fw-la sumus_fw-la if_o it_o be_v error_n we_o believe_v it_o be_v you_o who_o have_v deceive_v we_o jis_fw-la enim_fw-la signis_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o with_o such_o sign_n this_o doctrine_n be_v confirm_v which_o can_v proceed_v from_o none_o but_o you_o only_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o unquestioned_a miracle_n as_o be_v the_o resuscitation_n of_o dead_a man_n more_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n then_o in_o the_o primitive_a age._n to_o deny_v these_o miracle_n be_v be_v to_o deny_v all_o history_n which_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o sense_n in_o those_o who_o see_v they_o not_o to_o owm_n they_o to_o disow_v protestancy_n and_o profess_v plain_a popery_n our_o new_a man_n therefore_o speak_v at_o random_n when_o they_o talk_v of_o i_o know_v not_o what_o abstract_a evidence_n for_o christian_a religion_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o motive_n for_o scripture_n be_v agree_v on_o by_o all_o i_o answer_v above_o church_n no_o evidence_n for_o christian_a religion_n in_o general_n nor_o for_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o church_n there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v motive_n for_o christian_a religion_n in_o general_n if_o the_o word_n christian_n comprise_v all_o profess_a heretic_n for_o be_v it_o so_o god_n will_v deceive_v we_o and_o make_v falsehood_n as_o credible_a as_o truth_n no_o motive_n can_v evidence_n scripture_n unless_o they_o first_o evidence_n a_o church_n that_o indubitable_o give_v we_o certain_a scripture_n which_o be_v to_o say_v in_o other_o term_n all_o motive_n as_o well_o for_o the_o verity_n of_o christian_a faith_n as_o scripture_n be_v only_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o in_o no_o other_o society_n of_o christian_n if_o protestant_n can_v prove_v their_o faith_n or_o scripture_n by_o so_o much_o as_o a_o likelihood_n of_o either_o these_o now_o name_v know_v sectary_n be_v oblige_v in_o conscience_n to_o make_v their_o motive_n know_v or_o any_o better_a inducement_n they_o be_v oblige_v in_o conscience_n to_o make_v they_o know_v that_o man_n at_o last_o may_v see_v that_o clear_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n whereof_o they_o endless_o talk_v in_o their_o pulpit_n true_a candour_n and_o sincerity_n can_v but_o speak_v plain_o to_o this_o point_n without_o intricate_a tergiversation_n if_o so_o much_o as_o a_o spark_n of_o zeal_n live_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o rational_a motive_n do_v not_o fail_v they_o we_o expect_v a_o candid_a answer_n chap._n xiii_o protestancy_n for_o want_n of_o rational_a motive_n dishonor_n christ_n and_o make_v way_n for_o any_o new_a coin_a haeresy_n 1._o i_o prove_v the_o assertion_n that_o religion_n high_o christ_n protestancy_n dishonor_n christ_n dishonour_v christ_n which_o must_v of_o necessity_n confess_v that_o a_o false_a erroneous_a church_n be_v more_o eminent_o glorious_a and_o better_o mark_v with_o all_o evident_a sign_n of_o truth_n than_o that_o pure_a orthodox_n religion_n be_v which_o christ_n have_v now_o establish_v in_o the_o world_n but_o protestant_n must_v confess_v thus_o much_o and_o to_o prove_v my_o minor_a ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la i_o need_v no_o more_o but_o two_o principle_n prove_v by_o their_o own_o principle_n certain_a principle_n of_o their_o own_o one_o be_v the_o roman_a catholic_n religion_n have_v be_v at_o least_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n erroneous_a yea_o some_o say_v antichristian_a it_o still_o contradict'_v the_o primitive_a doctrine_n hold_v a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n etc._n etc._n contrary_a to_o scripture_n such_o doctrine_n give_v sectary_n just_a cause_n as_o they_o say_v to_o leave_v this_o church_n and_o lash_v we_o so_o severe_o as_o they_o have_v do_v to_o pull_v down_o our_o monastery_n to_o banish_v the_o ancient_a clergy_n to_o ruin_v those_o who_o profess_v our_o religion_n they_o be_v not_o mere_a trifle_n nor_o petty_a mistake_n which_o make_v our_o kind_a heart_a countryman_n to_o use_v we_o so_o unkind_o here_o be_v my_o first_o principle_n grant_v by_o protestant_n the_o second_o be_v as_o clear_v viz._n that_o their_o new_a religion_n of_o protestancy_n as_o it_o stand_v now_o reform_v be_v the_o pure_a true_a and_o most_o orthodox_n christian_a religion_n for_o set_v this_o and_o the_o primitive_a church_n aside_o of_o three_o or_o four_o hundred_o year_n continuance_n you_o never_o yet_o have_v say_v they_o any_o society_n of_o man_n that_o teach_v pure_o christ_n doctrine_n no_o god_n wot_v a_o deluge_n of_o popish_a error_n overrun_v christianity_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o until_o these_o late_a man_n bring_v unto_o we_o the_o joyful_a tiding_n of_o their_o refine_a gospel_n 2._o upon_o these_o two_o undeniable_a supposition_n you_o shall_v plain_o see_v what_o a_o eternal_a disgrace_n what_o affront_v protestant_n will_v needs_o put_v upon_o our_o dear_a saviour_n do_v what_o we_o can_v to_o hinder_v they_o he_o bless_a lord_n found_v a_o church_n it_o cost_v he_o dear_a the_o effusion_n of_o his_o sacred_a blood_n and_o promise_v we_o a_o indeficient_a glorious_a church_n to_o be_v raise_v out_o of_o all_o nation_n yet_o after_o all_o these_o ample_a promise_n he_o have_v protestancy_n a_o glorious_a church_n promise_v and_o a_o obscure_a one_o show_v we_o of_o protestancy_n give_v we_o a_o pitiful_a one_o indeed_o no_o better_o a_o thing_n then_o protestancy_n which_o be_v utrer_o disgrace_v obscure_v dishonour_v and_o quite_o put_v down_o by_o the_o majesty_n the_o miracle_n the_o antiquity_n the_o unity_n the_o sanctity_n of_o that_o church_n which_o must_v now_o forsooth_o be_v style_v false_a erroneous_a and_o antichristian_a if_o this_o pass_n for_o current_a doctrine_n you_o have_v with_o it_o sport_n enough_o for_o the_o dishonour_v how_o christ_n be_v dishonour_v devil_n and_o protestant_n only_o make_v it_o who_o upon_o their_o warrant_n may_v most_o just_o reproach_v both_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n and_o thus_o powerful_o plead_v at_o the_o bar_n of_o reason_n saviour_n of_o the_o world_n my_o false_a popish_a antichristian_a church_n have_v stand_v a_o thousand_o year_n in_o error_n truth_n how_o the_o devil_n may_v plead_v and_o most_o rational_o if_o protestant_n speak_v truth_n you_o of_o protestancy_n only_o a_o hundred_o in_o truth_n i_o both_o be_v and_o have_v be_v universal_o spread_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o you_o yet_o see_v we_o little_a out_o of_o some_o few_o corner_n in_o europe_n my_o church_n have_v have_v most_o learned_a general_n council_n you_o never_o any_o i_o produce_v a_o long_a continue_a succession_n of_o pope_n of_o bishop_n of_o pastor_n you_o not_o a_o man_n before_o luther_n i_o be_v glorious_a with_o those_o very_a note_n and_o mark_n of_o truth_n which_o you_o manifest_v in_o your_o own_o sacred_a person_n and_o induce_v infidel_n to_o believe_v you_o your_o late_a congregation_n show_v nothing_o like_o they_o my_o false_a church_n fa_v pray_v contemplat_n convert_v more_o than_o
you_o it_o have_v more_o unity_n in_o faith_n you_o be_v rend_v and_o tear_v apiece_o with_o division_n and_o loe_o great_a god_n here_o be_v that_o glorious_a edifice_n which_o you_o after_o all_o your_o perfect_a idea_n of_o a_o church_n have_v erect_v for_o this_o you_o die_v and_o never_o shed_v your_o blood_n to_o establish_v my_o false_a erroneous_a synagogue_n of_o popery_n permit_v reason_n to_o judge_v in_o this_o case_n and_o say_v whether_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o ill_a advocate_n if_o protestant_n avouch_v truth_n and_o stand_v to_o their_o profess_a doctrine_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n drown_v in_o a_o deluge_n of_o error_n abandon_v the_o first_o verity_n of_o christian_a religion_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o and_o that_o their_o church_n as_o it_o be_v now_o in_o be_v be_v the_o most_o choice_n goodly_a and_o only_o refine_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n 3._o my_o last_o argument_n hint_v at_o in_o the_o title_n be_v heresy_n foundation_n lay_v of_o new_a heresy_n thus_o a_o new_a coin_a haeresy_n without_o motive_n of_o credibility_n may_v be_v as_o well_o or_o better_o defend_v by_o plain_a speak_a scripture_n than_o protestancy_n it_o be_v believe_v i_o the_o easy_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n to_o draw_v haeresy_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v good_a my_o assertion_n read_v first_o st._n hierom_n in_o his_o dialogue_n reflection_n s._n hieroms_n reflection_n adversus_fw-la luciferianos_fw-la paris_n print_n anno_fw-la 1509._o at_o the_o very_a end_n of_o the_o dialogue_n this_o great_a doctor_n then_o to_o reduce_v some_o beguile_v by_o the_o luciferian_o who_o hold_v that_o a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n once_o desert_v their_o faith_n can_v never_o again_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o church_n which_o they_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v by_o that_o text_n of_o st._n matthew_n cap._n 5._o v._n 13._o you_o be_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o if_o the_o salt_n have_v lose_v its_o savour_n wherewith_o shall_v it_o be_v salt_v ad_fw-la nihilum_fw-la valet_fw-la ultra_fw-la it_o be_v good_a for_o nothing_o hereafter_o &c._n &c._n st._n hierom_n i_o say_v to_o refute_v these_o have_v a_o excellent_a reflection_n nec_fw-la sibi_fw-la blandiantur_fw-la si_fw-la de_fw-la scripturae_fw-la capitulis_fw-la videntur_fw-la sibi_fw-la assumere_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v they_o not_o flatter_v themselves_o if_o they_o seem_v to_o assume_v out_o of_o scripture_n scripture_n of_o error_n draw_v from_o scripture_n what_o they_o say_v for_o the_o devil_n have_v speak_v thing_n out_o of_o scripture_n scripture_n god_n know_v do_v not_o consist_v in_o what_o we_o read_v but_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o otherwise_o say_v the_o saint_n possumus_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la &c._n &c._n i_o be_o able_a to_o coin_v a_o new_a opinion_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o say_v that_o none_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n that_o be_v shoe_n or_o have_v two_o coat_n for_o that_o be_v scripture_n 4._o it_o be_v most_o easy_a to_o go_v on_o with_o this_o true_a reflection_n of_o st._n hierom_n and_o draw_v new_a heresy_n every_o particular_n particular_n hour_n from_o scripture_n one_o will_v say_v the_o sabbath-day_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v sacred_a in_o place_n of_o sunday_n and_o bring_v scripture_n for_o it_o exod._n 20._o 8._o another_o that_o we_o be_v as_o well_o to_o abstain_v from_o eat_v of_o blood_n or_o thing_n strangle_v as_o from_o fornication_n it_o be_v a_o decree_n of_o the_o apostolical_a council_n and_o scripture_n actor_n 15._o 29._o a_o three_o that_o infant_n aae_v not_o to_o be_v baptise_a there_o be_v ground_n for_o it_o matth._n 28._o a_o four_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o contend_v in_o law_n but_o quit_v our_o coat_n if_o any_o man_n will_v take_v it_o and_o cloak_n also_o matt._n 5._o a_o five_o that_o no_o euangelical_n preacher_n be_v to_o carry_v gold_n or_o silver_n with_o he_o or_o have_v two_o coat_n matt._n 10._o 7._o 5._o suppose_v that_o a_o new_a sect_n of_o man_n shall_v rise_v up_o up_o a_o new_a sect_n of_o man_n rise_v up_o this_o year_n in_o whole_a multitude_n and_o rigid_o adhere_v to_o the_o exact_a letter_n of_o scripture_n in_o these_o particular_n be_v it_o possible_a to_o convince_v they_o by_o scripture_n it_o be_v impossible_a and_o have_v they_o not_o think_v you_o more_o plain_a text_n of_o god_n word_n for_o these_o tenant_n than_o protestant_n have_v for_o pure_a protestancy_n yea_o most_o evident_o for_o they_o produce_v nothing_o but_o express_v scripture_n without_o gloss_n and_o do_v they_o not_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o admit_v of_o every_o jota_fw-la in_o scripture_n yea_o and_o therefore_o be_v sound_a in_o fundamental_o moreover_n do_v they_o not_o acknowledge_v both_o christ_n and_o scripture_n upon_o the_o same_o tradition_n or_o other_o evidence_n as_o protestant_n do_v yea_o and_o be_v ready_a perhaps_o to_o join_v in_o belief_n with_o they_o when_o they_o see_v scripture_n as_o plain_a for_o any_o protestant_a doctrine_n they_o only_o add_v a_o superstructure_n have_v have_v as_o good_a a_o church_n as_o luther_n have_v of_o these_o article_n and_o have_v they_o not_o as_o good_a a_o church_n as_o luther_n and_o calvin_n have_v a_o year_n after_o their_o new_a preach_v yes_o they_o swarm_v with_o multitude_n of_o follower_n and_o multitude_n make_v a_o church_n why_o then_o be_v not_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o man_n all_o ground_a in_o scripture_n as_o good_a as_o that_o of_o protestant_n i_o think_v it_o be_v of_o two_o evil_n the_o better_a if_o more_o word_n of_o scripture_n can_v more_o advance_v the_o worth_n of_o either_o religion_n but_o i_o tell_v you_o and_o true_o that_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v good_a because_o unreasonable_a and_o they_o be_v therefore_o unreasonable_a because_o no_o man_n reason_n can_v in_o this_o present_a state_n of_o christianity_n whilst_o god_fw-we govern_n u_fw-mi by_o the_o light_n of_o prudence_n fall_v upon_o a_o religion_n or_o believe_v a_o church_n which_o evident_o appear_v religion_n a_o religion_n without_o prudent_a motive_n be_v no_o religion_n naked_a and_o destitute_a of_o all_o rational_a motive_n inductive_a to_o true_a belief_n now_o scripture_n alone_o without_o the_o interpretation_n of_o a_o church_n evidence_v by_o forcible_a motive_n be_v what_o you_o please_v to_o make_v of_o it_o and_o a_o church_n not_o at_o all_o manifest_v by_o rational_a motive_n be_v no_o church_n and_o therefore_o can_v interpret_v scripture_n if_o you_o ask_v why_o we_o say_v that_o protestancy_n be_v so_o bare_a of_o motive_n and_o consequent_o no_o church_n i_o have_v answer_v above_o because_o this_o religion_n never_o have_v nor_o shall_v have_v any_o such_o persuasive_a inducement_n or_o the_o like_a sign_n of_o truth_n for_o it_o as_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o bless_a apostle_n manifest_v when_o they_o first_o teach_v the_o world_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o those_o motive_n gain_v innumerable_a soul_n to_o christianity_n look_v then_o about_o you_o and_o find_v i_o out_o a_o society_n of_o christian_n that_o be_v evidence_v by_o such_o sign_n as_o hold_v a_o strict_a analogy_n with_o those_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o you_o have_v the_o true_a church_n but_o this_o be_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n church_n what_o prove_v christianity_n ancient_o prove_v now_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n only_a and_o no_o other_o as_o i_o have_v large_o prove_v dare_v you_o therefore_o own_o the_o true_a christ_n and_o his_o bless_a apostle_n who_o wrought_v miracle_n live_v holy_o preach_v efficacious_o upon_o such_o motive_n you_o must_v also_o own_o this_o true_a church_n upon_o the_o like_a ground_a proof_n be_v miracle_n sanctity_n efficacious_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n rational_a inducement_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n they_o be_v now_o both_o powerful_a and_o persuasive_a to_o believe_v this_o church_n to_o deny_v as_o i_o say_v above_o all_o miracle_n to_o this_o church_n even_o the_o great_a as_o be_v the_o raise_v of_o dead_a man_n to_o life_n be_v to_o deny_v sense_n reason_n history_n church_n the_o forceable_a motive_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v take_v from_o our_o church_n and_o all_o authority_n and_o to_o appropriate_v these_o and_o other_o motive_n to_o protestant_n be_v only_o a_o attempt_v plagiary_n which_o can_v be_v do_v it_o be_v true_a these_o man_n glory_v in_o a_o steal_a bible_n and_o it_o be_v all_o they_o can_v pretend_v to_o beside_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o a_o fruitless_a and_o unevidence_v church_n but_o the_o mark_n and_o character_n of_o a_o true_a church_n they_o shall_v never_o have_v nor_o take_v from_o we_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o infallible_a teacher_n and_o the_o motive_n of_o true_a faith_n the_o second_o discourse_n of_o scripture_n the_o first_o chapter_n scripture_n be_v useless_a if_o none_o declare_v infallible_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o 1._o when_o on_o the_o one_o side_n i_o consider_v
how_o useless_a a_o book_n abuse_v these_o impious_a gloss_n be_v lay_v forth_o only_o to_o show_v sectary_n how_o scripture_n may_v be_v abuse_v sole_a scripture_n be_v with_o these_o man_n to_o end_v their_o difference_n yea_o and_o what_o monster_n be_v produce_v out_o of_o it_o by_o those_o that_o pretend_v most_o to_o god_n write_v word_n and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n think_v you_o that_o these_o sole-scripturists_a these_o arian_n these_o protestant_n these_o anabaptist_n etc._n etc._n be_v so_o various_a so_o opposite_a in_o their_o tenant_n beget_v as_o they_o think_v out_o of_o the_o true_a write_a word_n proceed_v from_o whence_o the_o abuse_n proceed_v of_o god_n be_v it_o for_o want_v of_o wit_n learning_n or_o language_n they_o thus_o differ_v no._n be_v it_o for_o the_o want_n of_o study_n and_o confer_v one_o place_n of_o scripture_n clear_a as_o they_o think_v with_o other_o obscure_a no_o both_o arian_n and_o protestant_n have_v do_v this_o long_a ago_o be_v it_o that_o all_o these_o sectary_n go_v against_o their_o conscience_n or_o wilful_o draw_v god_n word_n to_o a_o perverse_n sense_n he_o never_o speak_v let_v the_o innocent_a cast_v the_o first_o stone_n at_o the_o guilty_a true_o i_o suspect_v it_o in_o some_o yet_o can_v judge_v that_o all_o be_v conscious_a of_o so_o hideous_a a_o impiety_n 6._o the_o true_a reason_n therefore_o be_v these_o sectary_n give_v the_o true_a reason_n be_v give_v after_o the_o reject_v of_o god_n infallible_a church_n the_o oracle_n of_o truth_n will_n by_o no_o more_o than_o half_a a_o ey_fw-mi of_o human_a reason_n dive_v into_o the_o deep_a secret_n of_o god_n eternal_a wisdom_n obscure_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o herein_o they_o neither_o show_v judgement_n nor_o learning_n with_o this_o purblind_a eye_n of_o weak_a reason_n they_o go_v to_o work_v they_o steer_v on_o their_o course_n they_o judge_v they_o determine_v they_o define_v they_o pronounce_v their_o fallible_a sentiment_n on_o these_o high_a mystery_n which_o never_o the_o less_o reason_n alone_o be_v uncapable_a to_o comprehend_v or_o master_n hence_o do_v why_o sectary_n vary_v as_o they_o do_v they_o vary_v as_o they_o do_v hence_o it_o be_v they_o weary_a themselves_o out_o with_o opposite_a frivolous_a interpretation_n of_o god_n word_n which_o be_v but_o one_o whilst_o they_o be_v so_o divide_v in_o their_o tenant_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o almost_o every_o year_n we_o have_v a_o new_a religion_n broach_v in_o england_n such_o a_o jumble_v we_o must_v expect_v such_o endless_a dissension_n among_o they_o and_o it_o be_v a_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n for_o their_o pride_n who_o true_o be_v not_o more_o but_o poor_a scholar_n yet_o disdain_v to_o learn_v of_o a_o good_a master_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o teach_v they_o all_o truth_n 7._o i_o call_v it_o a_o jumble_a for_o from_o scripture_n by_o reason_n of_o its_o les_fw-fr clear_a speak_v arise_v these_o dissension_n and_o though_o it_o be_v quote_v a_o thousand_o time_n say_v no_o scripture_n endless_a confusion_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n more_o now_o then_o it_o do_v sixteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o therefore_o can_v end_v they_o they_o next_o fall_v upon_o a_o doubtful_a confer_v one_o passage_n of_o the_o bible_n with_o another_o several_a version_n and_o language_n be_v examine_v much_o ado_n they_o make_v and_o all_o be_v to_o know_v what_o god_n speak_v in_o such_o text_n but_o without_o fruit_n for_o their_o difference_n be_v as_o high_a as_o ever_o and_o neither_o party_n gain_n or_o lose_v the_o victory_n since_o scripture_n alone_o nor_o the_o compare_v of_o text_n together_o be_v able_a to_o draw_v either_o side_n from_o their_o preconceive_a opinion_n after_o the_o confer_v of_o place_n they_o be_v hard_a at_o it_o with_o fallible_a explication_n when_o behold_v express_v scripture_n be_v cast_v away_o by_o these_o two_o combatant_n and_o now_o either_o the_o one_o must_v learn_v of_o the_o other_o what_o god_n speak_v in_o scripture_n by_o a_o human_a fallible_a explication_n which_o be_v no_o scripture_n or_o nothing_o be_v conclude_v uncertain_a arian_n and_o protestant_n equal_o uncertain_a who_o be_v then_o to_o be_v hold_v the_o master_n interpreter_n the_o arian_n or_o protestant_n neither_o and_o they_o have_v both_o reason_n for_o it_o for_o neither_o aught_o to_o yield_v in_o their_o own_o principle_n the_o quarrel_n therefore_o go_v on_o and_o be_v endless_a if_o after_o their_o fallible_a explication_n of_o scripture_n they_o proceed_v to_o inference_n this_o follow_v that_o follow_v etc._n etc._n all_o be_v plain_a sophistry_n for_o stand_v upon_o what_o unsteedy_a foundation_n haresy_n stand_v scripture_n vitiate_v with_o a_o fall_v explication_n can_v never_o support_v a_o true_a illation_n and_o upon_o such_o unsteedy_a foundation_n all_o haeresy_n stand_v scripture_n not_o understand_v be_v the_o ground_n doubtful_a collation_n of_o place_n fallible_a explication_n fall_v illation_n be_v the_o superstructure_n they_o have_v no_o more_o and_o thus_o you_o see_v how_o useless_a a_o book_n answer_v why_o scripture_n be_v useless_a in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o haeretick_n a_o question_n propose_v and_o answer_v of_o scripture_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o haeretick_n who_o neither_o can_v tell_v i_o so_o much_o as_o true_o much_o les_fw-fr infallible_o what_o god_n speak_v in_o these_o high_a controvert_v point_n of_o our_o christian_n faith_n 8._o but_o you_o will_v ask_v how_o then_o happen_v it_o that_o mr._n poole_n and_o protestant_n hit_v right_a in_o yield_v a_o assent_n to_o some_o catholic_n verity_n for_o example_n to_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n and_o contrary_a to_o arianism_n oversight_n protestant_n acknowledge_v a_o trinity_n by_o oversight_n profess_v the_o son_n to_o be_v consubstantial_a with_o his_o eternal_a father_n in_o one_o divine_a nature_n i_o answer_v they_o light_n upon_o these_o verity_n by_o a_o oversight_n or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v mere_o by_o chance_n by_o oversight_n for_o believe_v it_o have_v luter_n think_v well_o on_o it_o he_o may_v with_o more_o ease_n have_v deny_v these_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n than_o the_o real_a change_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n by_o chance_n for_o as_o by_o chance_n they_o steal_v chance_n or_o by_o chance_n a_o bible_n from_o the_o old_a catholic_n church_n so_o casual_o they_o take_v from_o she_o here_o and_o there_o as_o it_o please_v fancy_n somewhat_o of_o her_o ancient_a tradition_n also_o and_o upon_o this_o ground_n of_o tradition_n or_o the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n they_o believe_v as_o it_o unaware_o engage_v in_o a_o belief_n they_o labour_v in_o vain_a to_o find_v scripture_n for_o it_o well_o as_o they_o can_v these_o sublime_a mystery_n be_v thus_o unaware_o engage_v in_o a_o belief_n they_o weary_a their_o head_n and_o wear_v out_o their_o bible_n to_o find_v express_v scripture_n for_o it_o which_o can_v be_v find_v because_o forsooth_o they_o will_v believe_v nothing_o upon_o tradition_n or_o the_o church_n infallible_a doctrine_n i_o say_v express_v scripture_n can_v be_v find_v that_o assert_n three_o distinct_a person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n or_o the_o word_n to_o be_v consubstantial_a with_o his_o eternal_a father_n therefore_o if_o they_o believe_v these_o verity_n they_o must_v ground_n their_o faith_n not_o upon_o sole_a scripture_n but_o on_o scripture_n explicate_v by_o that_o never_o err_a oracle_n of_o truth_n the_o catholic_n church_n or_o on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v which_o we_o call_v tradition_n you_o see_v arian_n sectary_n must_v own_v the_o church_n interpretation_n or_o become_v arian_n therefore_o how_o our_o protestant_n though_o in_o actu_fw-la signato_fw-la they_o seem_o reject_v tradition_n and_o the_o church_n interpretation_n upon_o scripture_n yet_o in_o actu_fw-la exercito_fw-la they_o own_o both_o and_o must_v necessary_o do_v so_o or_o become_v plain_a arian_n yet_o here_o they_o be_v pinch_v again_o for_o if_o they_o believe_v these_o mystery_n upon_o tradition_n or_o on_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o the_o church_n they_o be_v neither_o papist_n protestant_n in_o do_v so_o they_o be_v neither_o papist_n nor_o protestant_n nor_o protestant_n no_o papist_n for_o papist_n hold_v tradition_n and_o the_o church_n interpretation_n infallible_a no_o protestant_n for_o they_o profess_v to_o believe_v no_o more_o than_o god_n have_v express_v in_o his_o write_a word_n though_o now_o they_o must_v leave_v that_o hold_v and_o believe_v upon_o the_o catholic_n motive_n or_o renounce_v the_o faith_n of_o these_o article_n 9_o if_o mr._n poole_n pretend_v express_v scripture_n for_o these_o high_a verity_n of_o christian_a faith_n the_o sure_a way_n will_v be_v to_o produce_v it_o without_o remit_v i_o to_o other_o author_n or_o add_v his_o fallible_a gloss_n to_o god_n word_n for_o every_o arian_n know_v
just_o fear_v the_o second_o god_n say_v they_o permit_v the_o church_n to_o err_v and_o he_o may_v say_v i_o as_o well_o have_v permit_v it_o to_o vitiat_fw-la scripture_n they_o say_v error_n insensible_o grow_v up_o in_o the_o church_n and_o i_o say_v they_o may_v as_o insensible_o have_v creep_v into_o scripture_n be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v from_o this_o old_a err_a church_n our_o new_a man_n suppose_v they_o receive_v pure_a sincere_a and_o uncorrupted_a scripture_n just_a as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n write_v it_o a_o mere_a impossibility_n for_o never_o great_a chimaera_n be_v fancy_v then_o to_o couple_v a_o fall_v church_n and_o true_a scripture_n together_o ●●_o true_a scripture_n and_o a_o universal_a fall_v err_a church_n 8._o some_o perhaps_o may_v say_v the_o arian_n donatist_n and_o other_o heretic_n have_v and_o have_v still_o true_a scripture_n though_o they_o err_v in_o doctrine_n i_o answer_v no_o god_n a_o mercy_n to_o they_o for_o if_o they_o have_v true_a scripture_n they_o may_v thank_v a_o unerring_a church_n that_o preserve_v it_o uncorrupt_a before_o heresy_n begin_v and_o after_o but_o grant_v i_o universal_o no_o assurance_n of_o true_a scripture_n if_o all_o err_v universal_o once_o as_o our_o protestant_n do_v that_o both_o heretic_n and_o catholic_n likewise_o universal_o err_v in_o doctrine_n most_o fundamental_a no_o man_n can_v now_o have_v assurance_n of_o true_a scripture_n o_o but_o the_o unanimous_a voice_n of_o all_o christian_n affirm_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o pure_a without_o corruption_n be_v a_o weighty_a moral_a proof_n for_o its_o integrity_n i_o answer_v none_o at_o all_o for_o if_o no_o society_n of_o christian_n unerrable_a and_o sound_a in_o doctrine_n have_v that_o book_n in_o custody_n the_o old_a papist_n may_v for_o aught_o protestant_n know_v have_v either_o by_o chance_n or_o fraud_n change_v word_n in_o scripture_n for_o example_n those_o word_n matt._n 26._o this_o be_v my_o body_n from_o what_o they_o once_o be_v this_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n and_o the_o cheat_n be_v to_o maintain_v their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n but_o you_o will_v ask_v how_o can_v this_o be_v do_v i_o have_v tell_v you_o by_o malice_n or_o inadvertency_n but_o when_o can_v it_o be_v do_v i_o answer_v in_o that_o corruption_n can_v sectary_n say_v when_o papist_n first_o become_v idolater_n they_o may_v be_v inform_v concern_v these_o corruption_n very_a age_n year_n or_o month_n when_o these_o papist_n first_o begin_v to_o be_v idolater_n and_o worship_v a_o piece_n of_o bread_n for_o god_n then_o it_o may_v well_o be_v do_v name_v that_o age_n exact_o and_o you_o have_v all_o our_o new_a man_n answer_v this_o idolatry_n be_v bring_v in_o among_o we_o but_o they_o know_v not_o when_o it_o begin_v with_o such_o secrecy_n and_o silence_n this_o text_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o i_o say_v may_v have_v be_v corrupt_v with_o like_a secrecy_n though_o no_o man_n know_v when_o and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n observe_v a_o strange_a paradox_n of_o our_o protestant_n so_o notorious_a a_o know_a protestant_n a_o strange_a paradox_n of_o protestant_n novelty_n as_o this_o suppose_a idolatry_n be_v which_o may_v most_o just_o have_v strike_v terror_n into_o all_o man_n heart_n visible_o enter_v a_o church_n diffuse_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o yet_o none_o neither_o friend_n nor_o foe_n see_v it_o cry_v out_o against_o it_o or_o have_v leave_v it_o upon_o record_n and_o one_o single_a particle_n of_o scripture_n can_v be_v change_v but_o all_o must_v know_v it_o how_o can_v these_o two_o consist_v together_o you_o will_v say_v the_o primitive_a church_n be_v pure_a and_o so_o preserve_v true_a scripture_n how_o do_v our_o protestant_n know_v so_o much_o if_o it_o be_v fallible_a thus_o much_o of_o a_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la which_o i_o desire_v mr._n poole_n to_o answer_n not_o to_o mistake_v as_o he_o may_v do_v if_o he_o think_v my_o endeavour_n be_v to_o prove_v scripture_n corrupt_v in_o any_o substantial_a point_n no_o it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o say_v it_o the_o argument_n therefore_o proceed_v from_o the_o protestant_n false_a supposition_n yet_o true_a with_o they_o that_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a and_o have_v err_v then_o i_o say_v none_o of_o they_o can_v have_v assurance_n of_o their_o bible_n or_o of_o true_a incorrupt_a scripture_n chap._n iii_o all_o substantial_o of_o faith_n be_v not_o plain_a in_o scripture_n without_o a_o infallible_a teacher_n 1._o here_o be_v my_o second_o proposition_n and_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o evident_a may_v he_o evidence_n of_o a_o know_a truth_n prevail_v with_o wilful_a man_n arian_n we_o see_v be_v against_o protestant_n in_o the_o essential_o of_o faith_n protestant_n against_o catholic_n and_o they_o against_o both_o all_o of_o they_o acknowledge_v scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n scripture_n sectary_n deny_v the_o plainess_n of_o scripture_n yet_o every_o one_o in_o practice_n deny_v the_o perspecuity_n and_o plainess_n of_o it_o for_o if_o plain_a why_o stand_v they_o at_o variance_n with_o one_o another_o about_o this_o plainess_n protestant_n doctrine_n be_v plain_o deliver_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n the_o arian_n doctrine_n be_v plain_o in_o their_o write_n the_o catholic_n doctrine_n most_o plain_o in_o every_o catechism_n no_o advers._fw-la party_n impugn'_v these_o doctrine_n for_o want_n of_o a_o plain_a expression_n but_o for_o want_v of_o truth_n it_o be_v quite_o contrary_a in_o scripture_n for_o he_o be_v a_o devil_n that_o shall_v mention_v the_o want_n of_o truth_n in_o god_n word_n yet_o you_o see_v most_o learned_a man_n vary_v about_o this_o clearness_n seek_v for_o it_o and_o can_v find_v it_o though_o i_o have_v partly_o give_v the_o reason_n hereof_o yet_o because_o the_o matter_n require_v it_o i_o shall_v now_o add_v a_o word_n more_o for_o a_o further_a explication_n 2._o all_o know_v that_o the_o objective_a verity_n write_v in_o holy_a different_a objective_a verity_n and_o the_o belief_n of_o they_o different_a scripture_n and_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o verity_n in_o a_o christian_n hart_n be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o the_o first_o god_n speak_v to_o we_o by_o the_o second_o we_o yield_v belief_n to_o his_o word_n all_o know_v likewise_o that_o if_o my_o belief_n be_v true_a faith_n it_o must_v say_v exact_o and_o express_v that_o in_o ment_fw-la which_o god_n speak_v in_o scripture_n neither_o more_o nor_o les_fw-fr and_o this_o be_v save_v faith_n not_o the_o faith_n objective_a verity_n not_o save_v faith_n objective_a verity_n as_o it_o lie_v in_o scripture_n for_o if_o that_o can_v save_v we_o it_o will_v be_v enough_o to_o put_v a_o bible_n in_o one_o pocket_n and_o say_v here_o be_v the_o faith_n that_o save_v i_o though_o i_o know_v not_o what_o be_v in_o it_o or_o believe_v amiss_o thus_o much_o be_v clear_a without_o dispute_n in_o a_o orthodox_n and_o a_o arian_n whilst_o they_o turn_v to_o that_o passage_n of_o scripture_n and_o read_v i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o both_o of_o they_o have_v the_o same_o objective_a verity_n before_o their_o eye_n but_o the_o one_o only_o have_v the_o true_a belief_n of_o it_o in_o his_o hart._n observe_v now_o how_o dark_o scripture_n speak_v in_o this_o one_o great_a fundamental_a article_n and_o how_o easy_o we_o may_v swerve_v from_o obscurity_n one_o instance_n of_o scripture_n obscurity_n this_o reveal_v truth_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n for_o the_o word_n precise_o consider_v may_v either_o signify_v unity_n in_o affection_n as_o appear_v john_n 17._o v._o 21._o 22._o or_o a_o consubstantial_a unity_n and_o in_o this_o indifferency_n to_o several_a interpret_n sectary_n gloss_n the_o church_n interpret_n sense_n lie_v their_o obscurity_n to_o clear_a all_o and_o make_v they_o speak_v a_o full_a sense_n the_o arian_n superadd_v his_o gloss_n and_o draw_v out_o of_o the_o text_n as_o also_o from_o that_o other_o john_n 1._o 5._o 7._o no_o more_o but_o a_o unity_n in_o affection_n only_o which_o be_v haeresy_n the_o catholic_n interpretation_n teach_v a_o consubstantial_a unity_n or_o onenes_a in_o essence_n and_o it_o be_v true_a faith_n yet_o be_v no_o more_o formal_a express_v scripture_n then_o that_o of_o the_o arian_n for_o consubstantiality_n be_v not_o where_o formal_o read_v in_o scripture_n however_o it_o be_v believe_v and_o ground_n be_v our_o faith_n whilst_o the_o arian_n gloss_n be_v reject_v and_o why_o have_v it_o this_o preference_n think_v you_o why_o be_v it_o better_o than_o the_o arian_n no_o other_o reason_n can_v be_v render_v but_o a_o most_o true_a one_o viz._n that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o only_o full_o express_v the_o objective_a verity_n dark_o couch_v in_o scripture_n but_o also_o deliver_v this_o full_a and_o clear_a sense_n infallible_o for_o i_o say_v if_o the_o church_n interpretation_n
please_v if_o the_o church_n interpretation_n be_v as_o fallible_a as_o the_o arian_n christian_n may_v follow_v either_o as_o they_o please_v be_v as_o fallible_a as_o the_o arian_n christian_n may_v indifferent_o adhere_v to_o either_o yea_o and_o changeable_o now_o take_v one_o than_o the_o other_o as_o they_o please_v a_o great_a probability_n can_v balance_v nothing_o in_o this_o or_o the_o like_a particular_n as_o i_o shall_v large_o prove_v hereafter_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n by_o what_o be_v now_o say_v we_o may_v learn_v first_o though_o scripture_n in_o this_o and_o other_o mystery_n have_v its_o darkness_n yet_o by_o the_o good_a providence_n of_o almighty_n god_n we_o be_v provide_v of_o a_o sure_a interpreter_n which_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o if_o every_o one_o interpret_v according_a to_o fancy_n haeresy_n be_v easy_o draw_v out_o of_o god_n word_n and_o if_o none_o interpret_v faithful_o the_o scripture_n still_o lie_v hide_v in_o obscurity_n which_o make_v it_o for_o that_o part_n a_o useless_a book_n to_o christian_n interpreter_n the_o necssity_n of_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n learn_v far_o that_o none_o can_v ever_o know_v exact_o by_o human_a industry_n or_o his_o sole_a ponder_v the_o bible_n let_v he_o be_v another_o solomon_n for_o wisdom_n what_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o these_o difficil_n mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n to_o prove_v my_o assertion_n i_o will_v give_v you_o one_o instance_n 3._o suppose_v that_o two_o or_o three_o most_o learned_a heathen_a philosopher_n well_o verse_v in_o language_n and_o all_o human_a literature_n have_v this_o book_n of_o scripture_n put_v into_o their_o hand_n and_o be_v persuade_v by_o the_o extrinsical_a bible_n a_o instance_n of_o philosooher_n read_v the_o bible_n authority_n of_o all_o christian_n that_o god_n here_o speak_v his_o eternal_a verity_n withal_o that_o if_o they_o read_v the_o book_n and_o by_o their_o sole_a read_n without_o recours_fw-fr to_o any_o interpreter_n possess_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o they_o have_v true_a saving_n faith_n well_o they_o read_v it_o and_o with_o as_o much_o humility_n as_o any_o protestant_n can_v do_v yet_o follow_v if_o they_o ask_v of_o none_o but_o their_o own_o judgement_n error_n follow_v ask_v of_o none_o but_o their_o own_o judgement_n what_o it_o mean_v in_o the_o more_o difficil_n passage_n tell_v i_o i_o beseech_v you_o and_o here_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o moderate_a judgement_n of_o every_o christian_a whether_o catholic_n arian_n or_o protestant_n what_o faith_n or_o religion_n will_v these_o philosopher_n produce_v out_o of_o sole_a scripture_n solely_n read_v and_o ponder_v by_o they_o my_o thought_n be_v it_o be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o thought_n that_o the_o result_n of_o their_o read_n will_v end_v in_o coin_v a_o religion_n different_a from_o all_o other_o now_o in_o christendom_n i_o be_o very_o confident_a they_o will_v never_o pitch_v upon_o protestancy_n no_o nor_o endless_a their_o doubt_n will_v be_v endless_a upon_o any_o sect_n now_o extant_a alas_o they_o will_v doubt_v and_o stagger_v at_o every_o hard_a passage_n in_o scripture_n yea_o and_o by_o the_o very_a instinct_n of_o nature_n if_o they_o own_a scripture_n for_o god_n book_n will_v humble_o supplicate_v those_o who_o give_v they_o the_o book_n to_o lay_v open_a the_o mystery_n therein_o and_o assure_v they_o of_o its_o meaning_n in_o a_o hundred_o place_n yet_o none_o can_v do_v this_o good_a office_n for_o they_o but_o one_o only_a society_n of_o christian_n that_o lay_v claim_v to_o infallibility_n and_o prove_v it_o demonstrative_o if_o faith_n be_v in_o the_o world_n 4._o be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v thus_o much_o i_o conclude_v our_o protestant_n be_v in_o the_o very_a same_o case_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n as_o the_o philosopher_n be_v with_o interpreter_n sectary_n be_v in_o the_o very_a same_o case_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n no_o interpreter_n these_o make_v scripture_n speak_v what_o they_o think_v it_o speak_v right_a or_o wrong_v and_o protestant_n do_v the_o like_a whilst_o they_o give_v their_o sentiment_n on_o mystery_n above_o their_o reach_n without_o a_o infallible_a teacher_n pray_v you_o reflect_v have_v christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o apostle_n never_o teach_v any_o thing_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n but_o only_o throw_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n among_o christian_n interpreter_n strange_a confusion_n have_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n give_v to_o christian_n a_o bible_n without_o a_o interpreter_n when_o they_o leave_v the_o world_n and_o command_v they_o to_o make_v that_o use_n of_o it_o which_o every_o private_a judgement_n think_v best_a what_o a_o religion_n think_v you_o shall_v we_o have_v have_v at_o this_o day_n in_o christianity_n any_o or_o none_o or_o a_o thousand_o different_a one_o as_o good_a as_o none_o god_n only_o know_v i_o do_v not_o yet_o will_v say_v this_o be_v out_o very_o present_a condition_n if_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n be_v reject_v we_o may_v wrangle_v to_o the_o union_n dissension_n will_v have_v follow_v without_o hope_n of_o union_n world_n end_n but_o agree_v in_o nothing_o dispute_v but_o conclude_v nothing_o we_o may_v raise_v difficulty_n one_o against_o another_o but_o allay_v none_o and_o thus_o the_o contest_v must_v run_v on_o without_o redress_n or_o remedy_n all_o appellation_n here_o to_o antiquity_n to_o council_n father_n protestant_n appellation_n to_o antiquity_n remedy_n nothing_o be_v fallible_a with_o protestant_n and_o tradition_n help_n be_v nothing_o because_o they_o be_v fallible_a and_o be_v they_o otherwise_o we_o vary_v as_o high_o about_o the_o sentiment_n of_o father_n in_o every_o debate_v point_n of_o controversy_n as_o we_o do_v about_o scripture_n itself_o 5._o we_o see_v three_o how_o utter_o impossible_a it_o be_v for_o a_o protestant_n to_o draw_v from_o the_o objective_a verity_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o god_n word_n in_o any_o controvert_v point_n of_o religion_n the_o reason_n be_v scripture_n never_o speak_v plain_o and_o express_o the_o protestant_n sense_n in_o these_o debate_v controversy_n observe_v it_o in_o all_o and_o you_o will_v find_v it_o so_o what_o do_v they_o therefore_o to_o help_v themselves_o they_o first_o reject_v a_o infallible_a interpreter_n and_o next_o as_o the_o arian_n do_v superadd_a their_o own_o fallible_a gloss_n to_o make_v speak_v sectary_n make_v scripture_n to_o speak_v what_o they_o will_v have_v it_o say_v not_o what_o god_n speak_v scripture_n speak_v not_o what_o it_o true_o say_v but_o what_o they_o will_v have_v it_o say_v and_o thus_o they_o think_v scripture_n clear_v and_o their_o work_n do_v take_v here_o one_o instance_n for_o many_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n have_v be_v at_o variance_n a_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o about_o these_o sacred_a word_n matt._n 26._o this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o different_a sense_n draw_v from_o they_o be_v contradictory_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v true_a this_o be_v my_o body_n really_n say_v the_o catholic_n and_o here_o be_v my_o internal_a faith_n no_o say_v the_o protestant_n this_o be_v my_o body_n figurative_o or_o a_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o belief_n manner_n arian_n and_o protestant_n vitiate_v scripture_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n mark_v i_o beseech_v just_o as_o the_o arian_n say_v i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o and_o superadd_v his_o gloss_n of_o one_o in_o affection_n so_o the_o protestant_n here_o vitiate_v the_o text_n by_o his_o gloss_n and_o add_v to_o scripture_n what_o god_n never_o speak_v a_o trope_n a_o figure_n a_o sign_n and_o i_o know_v not_o what_o and_o after_o this_o injury_n do_v to_o the_o word_n he_o believe_v not_o for_o god_n express_v word_n but_o for_o his_o own_o far-fetched_a and_o dear_a buy_v interpretation_n which_o be_v no_o more_o scripture_n then_o if_o he_o shall_v tell_v i_o that_o example_n a_o example_n that_o text_n of_o st._n matthew_n cap._n 3._o verse_n 17._o this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n be_v to_o be_v forcible_o strip_v of_o its_o verity_n and_o misinterpret_v thus_o this_o be_v only_o a_o sign_n or_o figure_n of_o my_o beloved_n son_n no_o more_o do_v scripture_n through_o the_o whole_a gospel_n warrant_v in_o the_o least_o a_o improperty_n of_o speech_n in_o the_o one_o text_n now_o cite_v then_o in_o the_o other_o i_o little_o regard_v the_o protestant_a dscourse_n and_o gloss_n contrary_a to_o this_o mystery_n of_o faith_n let_v we_o have_v plain_a scripture_n much_o les_fw-fr their_o inference_n which_o be_v all_o human_a and_o fallible_a o_o but_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v real_o present_a under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n yea_o and_o in_o a_o thousand_o place_n at_o once_o be_v a_o vnintelligible_a mystery_n why_o more_o unintelligible_a than_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o essence_n
or_o the_o unchangeable_a divine_a word_n seem_o change_v when_o he_o take_v flesh_n upon_o he_o and_o become_v a_o infant_n these_o be_v high_a mystery_n and_o great_a difficulty_n if_o human_a reason_n may_v be_v judge_n and_o give_v a_o final_a sentence_n but_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o once_o for_o all_o that_o man_n shall_v never_o be_v a_o proficient_a in_o christ_n school_n that_o will_v undertake_v to_o conquer_v discourse_n high_a mystery_n not_o to_o be_v pry_v into_o by_o our_o weak_a discourse_n as_o i_o may_v say_v the_o great_a difficulty_n of_o faith_n by_o examine_v the_o high_a mystery_n of_o it_o if_o he_o go_v so_o to_o work_v he_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o labyrinth_n and_o can_v find_v no_o exit_fw-la all_o therefore_o he_o be_v to_o do_v be_v to_o learn_v and_o examine_v whether_o god_n the_o infallible_a truth_n have_v reveal_v and_o teach_v we_o these_o mystery_n by_o any_o unerring_a oracle_n next_o faith_n how_o we_o be_v to_o submit_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n he_o be_v to_o captivate_v his_o understanding_n and_o humble_o submit_v to_o he_o without_o further_a search_n who_o neither_o can_v be_v deceive_v nor_o will_v deceive_v we_o but_o enough_o of_o this_o digression_n 6._o we_o see_v three_o though_o protestant_n anathematise_v it_o the_o whole_a religion_n of_o protestant_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o addition_n to_o scripture_n or_o subtraction_n from_o it_o all_o that_o add_v to_o god_n word_n or_o take_v from_o it_o yet_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o their_o whole_a religion_n as_o protestancy_n be_v either_o make_v up_o of_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o or_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o mere_a addition_n of_o their_o own_o gloss_n to_o scripture_n or_o final_o a_o wilful_a subtraction_n from_o it_o to_o the_o word_n now_o cite_v they_o add_v a_o sign_n a_o figure_n and_o god_n know_v what_o more_o be_v this_o scripture_n when_o st._n james_n 2._o cap._n 24._o dogmatical_o teach_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o our_o new_a man_n tell_v we_o the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o of_o justification_n before_o god_n but_o before_o men._n be_v this_o scripture_n when_o st._n paul_n rom._n 2._o 6._o plain_o affirm's_n that_o god_n will_v render_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n calvin_n and_o beza_n assure_v we_o he_o will_v do_v so_o indeed_o if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o but_o the_o mischief_n be_v none_o can_v do_v a_o good_a work_n before_o god_n be_v this_o scripture_n no._n these_o and_o such_o like_a interpretation_n our_o adversary_n do_v not_o own_o for_o scripture_n yet_o they_o must_v own_v they_o as_o tenant_n essential_a to_o their_o religion_n ergo_fw-la i_o say_v mere_a fallible_a gloss_n which_o be_v no_o scripture_n make_v up_o protestant_n religion_n as_o protestancy_n and_o hence_o scripture_n doctrine_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n as_o protestancy_n not_o scripture_n it_o be_v that_o their_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n stand_v there_o with_o all_o clearness_n that_o be_v you_o know_v what_o they_o say_v but_o when_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o test_n and_o be_v examine_v by_o scripture_n you_o may_v seek_v long_o before_o you_o find_v a_o word_n like_o it_o as_o it_o be_v protestancy_n 7._o you_o see_v last_o that_o the_o interpretation_n which_o protestant_n give_v to_o those_o text_n of_o scripture_n cite_v by_o doctrine_n how_o sectary_n abuse_v scripture_n cite_v for_o catholic_n doctrine_n catholic_n for_o their_o doctrine_n be_v mere_a human_a extrascriptural_a and_o anti-scriptural_a gloss_n of_o their_o own_o fancy_n we_o cite_v the_o apostle_n 2._o thess_n 2._o 15._o for_o tradition_n beside_o the_o write_a word_n for_o the_o real_a presence_n this_o be_v my_o body_n matt._n 26._o for_o justification_n by_o good_a work_n that_o of_o st._n james_n 2._o 14._o for_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v continue_v to_o the_o world_n end_n malac._n 1._o 11._o for_o extream-vnction_n james_n the_o 5._o 14._o for_o the_o verity_n and_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n that_o of_o st._n paul_n 1_o timot._fw-la 3._o 15._o and_o what_o for_o god_n sake_n have_v we_o from_o our_o new_a man_n to_o these_o plain_a passage_n speak_v popery_n but_o a_o return_n of_o mere_a mock-fool_n gloss_n hatch_v in_o their_o own_o head_n which_o have_v so_o little_a shadow_n of_o scripture_n in_o they_o that_o with_o force_n they_o drive_v the_o very_a life_n and_o sense_n out_o of_o god_n word_n and_o they_o proceed_v so_o unlucky_o clear_a sectary_n make_v scripture_n clear_v where_o it_o be_v obscure_a and_o obscure_v where_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o where_o scripture_n be_v clear_a they_o make_v it_o obscure_a and_o where_o it_o be_v obscure_a they_o will_v seem_v to_o make_v it_o clear_v by_o superaded_a gloss_n what_o can_v be_v more_o clear_a for_o our_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n than_o those_o word_n of_o st._n luke_n 22._o v._o 19_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la quod_fw-la pro_fw-la vobis_fw-la datur_fw-la this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o yet_o with_o their_o gloss_n they_o so_o torture_v the_o text_n that_o every_o particle_n in_o it_o suffer_v violence_n in_o so_o much_o that_o jacobus_n sectary_n scripture_n torture_v by_o sectary_n gordonus_n observe_v in_o his_o first_o tome_n of_o controversy_n print_a anno_o 1612._o controversia_fw-la prima_fw-la de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 26._o n._n 11._o pag._n 121._o no_o few_o than_o two_o hundred_o different_a gloss_n have_v be_v add_v by_o protestant_n to_o obscure_a the_o plain_a sense_n of_o christ_n own_o word_n some_o as_o this_o author_n note_n abuse_n and_o misinterpret_v the_o pronoun_n hoc_fw-la other_o the_o verb_n est_fw-fr other_o corpus_n other_o meum_fw-la other_o the_o relative_n quod_fw-la other_o the_o proposition_n pro_fw-la other_o the_o pronoune_n vobis_fw-la other_o final_o the_o verb_n datur_fw-la yet_o after_o all_o this_o pervert_n and_o woeful_a mangle_n of_o god_n word_n we_o must_v believe_v that_o our_o protestant_n speak_v forsooth_o scripture_n and_o nothing_o but_o clear_a scripture_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n we_o have_v see_v more_o than_o enough_o in_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o chapter_n how_o vain_o they_o cry_v up_o the_o clarity_n of_o scripture_n in_o mystery_n most_o difficil_n not_o full_o express_v in_o god_n word_n what_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n can_v say_v that_o any_o scripture_n through_o the_o whole_a testament_n speak_v half_a so_o clear_o of_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o eternal_a son_n with_o his_o eternal_a father_n as_o the_o text_n now_o quote_v be_v for_o the_o real_a presence_n yet_o those_o scripture_n must_v be_v clear_a for_o that_o christian_a verity_n and_o this_o obscure_a for_o the_o real_a presence_n 8._o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n methinks_v it_o high_o import_v when_o we_o deal_v with_o our_o adversary_n concern_v scripture_n how_o to_o proceed_v with_o sectary_n when_o they_o explicate_v scripture_n their_o explication_n of_o scripture_n that_o we_o do_v not_o so_o much_o at_o least_o in_o the_o first_o place_n make_v it_o our_o work_n positive_o to_o disprove_v they_o by_o other_o text_n and_o authority_n which_o our_o writer_n usual_o do_v and_o laudable_o as_o to_o put_v they_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o their_o wild_a gloss_n which_o seem_v most_o reasonable_a for_o asserenti_fw-la incumbit_fw-la probatio_fw-la when_o therefore_o they_o go_v about_o to_o obscure_a scripture_n where_o it_o be_v plain_a with_o new_a interpretation_n the_o world_n never_o hear_v of_o bid_v they_o not_o only_o interpret_v but_o prove_v their_o interpretation_n for_o example_n that_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n now_o cite_v must_v be_v alienate_v from_o their_o genuine_a sense_n and_o torture_v as_o they_o be_v by_o protestant_n proceed_v thus_o with_o they_o put_v they_o to_o the_o proof_n and_o you_o will_v soon_o see_v they_o at_o a_o nonplus_n chap._n iu._n sole_a scripture_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n can_v be_v no_o rule_n of_o faith_n protestant_n have_v no_o scripture_n for_o their_o religion_n as_o it_o be_v protestancy_n 1._o my_o first_o proposition_n draw_n proof_n enough_o from_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n for_o if_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a and_o speak_v not_o clear_o all_o verity_n reveal_v in_o the_o book_n it_o can_v regulate_v faith_n without_o a_o interpreter_n but_o it_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a that_o it_o speak_v not_o clear_o many_o verity_n concern_v the_o high_a mystery_n of_o religion_n therefore_o it_o can_v regulate_v faith_n relate_v to_o these_o mystery_n without_o a_o interpreter_n i_o prove_v the_o minor_n scripture_n which_o sole_o consider_v according_a to_o the_o exterior_a letter_n both_o may_v error_n the_o bare_a letter_n of_o scripture_n may_v and_o do_v easy_o beget_v error_n and_o do_v as_o easy_o beget_v error_n as_o truth_n in_o the_o intellectual_a power_n of_o man_n speak_v
not_o clear_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o st._n austin_n tom._n 10._o serm._n 70._o de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la style_n heretic_n infaelice_n unhappy_a who_o only_o look_v on_o the_o sound_n of_o word_n in_o scripture_n which_o be_v say_v he_o like_o a_o body_n without_o a_o soul_n but_o it_o be_v as_o clear_v that_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o scripture_n without_o a_o sure_a interpreter_n beget_n error_n and_o therefore_o a_o arian_n because_o he_o regulate_v his_o belief_n by_o the_o mere_a sound_n of_o that_o text_n john_n 14._o my_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o err_v damnable_o and_o the_o like_o all_o other_o condemn_v heretic_n have_v do_v in_o their_o respective_a error_n draw_v as_o they_o think_v from_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n speak_v not_o clear_o in_o this_o one_o most_o high_a mystery_n and_o therefore_o can_v regulate_v faith_n without_o a_o interpreter_n now_o further_o if_o this_o interpreter_n faith_n a_o fallible_a interpreter_n as_o useless_a as_o no_o interpreter_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v fallible_a he_o be_v as_o useless_a to_o christian_n for_o the_o regulate_v of_o faith_n as_o if_o he_o be_v no_o interpreter_n for_o he_o may_v deceive_v they_o and_o if_o we_o be_v deceive_v it_o much_o import_v not_o whether_o the_o error_n proceed_v from_o obscure_a scripture_n misunderstand_v or_o misinterpret_v by_o a_o other_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n therefore_o be_v necessary_a in_o this_o weighty_a matter_n that_o assure_v we_o of_o what_o god_n have_v speak_v of_o such_o and_o such_o particular_a mystery_n and_o here_o we_o rest_v secure_o and_o have_v a_o most_o certain_a rule_n which_o sectary_n want_v 2._o again_o i_o argue_v if_o sole_a scripture_n be_v a_o clear_a rule_n of_o faith_n it_o can_v regulate_v without_o gloss_n yea_o and_o without_o a_o preacher_n too_o why_o therefore_o do_v our_o protestant_n charge_v that_o one_o text_n above_o cite_v this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o many_o other_o with_o so_o unnecessary_a a_o burden_n of_o their_o interpretation_n be_v plain_o be_v sectary_n afraid_a that_o christ_n speak_v too_o plain_o they_o afraid_a that_o christ_n speak_v too_o plain_o and_o therefore_o add_v their_o gloss_n to_o obscure_a his_o word_n none_o will_v own_v such_o a_o impiety_n then_o i_o say_v they_o be_v add_v to_o clear_a a_o obscure_a passage_n consequent_o they_o clear_a they_o gloss_n to_o make_v scripture_n clear_a must_v acknowledge_v a_o obscurity_n in_o this_o scripture_n before_o their_o tamper_n with_o the_o text_n and_o gloss_v it_o well_o but_o when_o they_o have_v gloss_v all_o they_o can_v i_o ask_v what_o be_v it_o that_o regulate_v their_o faith_n in_o this_o particular_a christ_n their_o gloss_n regulate_v their_o faith_n not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v christ_n word_n as_o he_o speak_v they_o or_o as_o they_o interpret_v regulate_v here_o not_o the_o first_o for_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o christ_n own_o word_n without_o the_o protestant_a gloss_n can_v never_o beget_v in_o any_o understanding_n that_o determinate_a belief_n which_o these_o man_n have_v of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n for_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n say_v plain_o this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v give_v for_o you_o which_o ponder_v to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n can_v never_o yield_v this_o force_v repugnant_a and_o farfetched_a sense_n this_o be_v a_o sign_n or_o a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n yet_o such_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o protestant_n draw_v from_o this_o sentence_n by_o their_o interpretation_n wherefore_o we_o must_v conclude_v that_o they_o believe_v not_o for_o christ_n sole_a word_n but_o for_o their_o additional_a gloss_n which_o be_v to_o say_v in_o plain_a english_a their_o overplus_n of_o gloss_n regulate_v faith_n not_o god_n express_v and_o most_o significant_a word_n some_o will_v say_v this_o passage_n now_o cite_v must_v be_v interpret_v as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o because_o scripture_n in_o other_o place_n seem_v to_o favour_v their_o interpretation_n i_o answer_v candid_o let_v they_o gloss_n they_o can_v cite_v one_o text_n out_o of_o scripture_n in_o favour_n of_o their_o gloss_n but_o produce_v so_o much_o as_o one_o plain_a text_n out_o of_o the_o whole_a bible_n for_o the_o alienate_n of_o this_o sentence_n from_o its_o proper_a sense_n without_o gloss_n which_o be_v no_o scripture_n and_o i_o will_v proclaim_v they_o conqueror_n here_o be_v plain_a deal_n but_o remember_v well_o i_o call_v for_o scripture_n only_o 3._o i_o tell_v you_o just_a now_o that_o as_o these_o gloss_n be_v useless_a if_o sole_a scripture_n be_v a_o clear_a rule_n of_o faith_n so_o be_v preacher_n also_o yea_o and_o all_o the_o large_a commentary_n which_o luther_n and_o calvin_n have_v write_v on_o scripture_n why_o god_n word_n speak_v clear_o without_o a_o preacher_n teacher_n if_o scripture_n be_v clear_a there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o teacher_n away_o therefore_o with_o preach_v and_o commentary_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o thrust_v a_o bible_n into_o man_n hand_n and_o bid_v they_o read_v it_o for_o there_o be_v true_a doctrine_n and_o plain_a doctrine_n but_o more_o be_v not_o require_v to_o regulate_v faith_n than_o reason_n the_o reason_n truth_n and_o clarity_n ergo_fw-la minister_n may_v hereafter_o well_o spare_v their_o labour_n of_o preach_v and_o it_o be_v better_a they_o do_v so_o then_o to_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o pervert_v god_n true_a word_n by_o their_o fallible_a talk_v 4._o to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n we_o have_v already_o ample_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o scripture_n which_o regulate_v faith_n buth_n the_o exact_a and_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o ne_fw-la putemus_fw-la say_v st._n hierom_n in_o cap._n 1._o ad_fw-la galat._n v._n 11._o let_v we_o not_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n lie_v in_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n but_o in_o their_o sense_n non_fw-fr in_o superficie_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o medullâ_fw-la not_o in_o the_o outside_n but_o in_o the_o inward_a pith_n and_o marrow_n of_o it_o none_o in_o sermonum_fw-la foliis_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o no_o protestant_n with_o so_o much_o as_o any_o colour_n of_o reason_n can_v lay_v a_o more_o just_a claim_n to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n when_o he_o and_o the_o church_n stand_v at_o variance_n be_v protestant_n as_o uncertain_a of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o arian_n be_v then_o a_o arian_n a_o pelagian_a or_o a_o donatist_n can_v do_v when_o they_o draw_v scripture_n to_o their_o sense_n all_o of_o they_o be_v alike_o guide_v by_o mere_a guess_n and_o first_o read_v next_o think_v than_o judge_n and_o last_o believe_v believe_v what_o what_o their_o private_a judgement_n tell_v we_o they_o and_o here_o be_v the_o last_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n religion_n all_o of_o they_o guide_v by_o guess_n three_o part_n of_o protestant_a religion_n whereof_o more_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n in_o the_o interim_n you_o may_v resolve_v a_o protestant_n belief_n into_o these_o three_o break_a shred_n or_o fragment_n the_o first_o part_n be_v that_o wherein_o they_o hold_v with_o catholic_n and_o here_o they_o have_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n interpret_v yet_o no_o true_a faith_n for_o want_v of_o submission_n in_o other_o point_n the_o other_o part_n be_v that_o wherein_o they_o agree_v with_o ancient_a condemn_a heretic_n and_o herein_o they_o have_v neither_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n nor_o true_a faith_n the_o last_o part_n be_v proper_a to_o themselves_o as_o protestant_a and_o here_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o letter_n or_o a_o word_n of_o scripture_n for_o they_o much_o les_fw-fr any_o true_a sense_n or_o faith_n ground_v on_o scripture_n and_o 5._o upon_o this_o occasion_n i_o come_v to_o mind_n mr._n poole_n proposition_n the_o want_n of_o mr._n pool_n four_o proposition_n of_o the_o want_n of_o his_o four_o proposition_n viz._n that_o scripture_n speak_v plain_o the_o particular_a tenant_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o protestanism_n and_o must_v tell_v he_o he_o shall_v never_o find_v in_o the_o whole_a bible_n so_o much_o as_o one_o article_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o it_o stand_v in_o opposition_n to_o catholic_n doctrine_n ground_v on_o scripture_n and_o because_o the_o man_n may_v not_o perhaps_o like_a of_o too_o great_a a_o burden_n i_o will_v only_o urge_v he_o to_o prove_v these_o three_o protestant_a assertion_n 1._o that_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n prove_v three_o protestant_a assertion_n for_o mr._n poole_n to_o prove_v and_o no_o more_o but_o let_v he_o not_o think_v to_o turn_v i_o of_o as_o he_o do_v the_o captain_n with_o mere_a empty_a and_o insignificant_a word_n appendix_n page_n 34._o scripture_n be_v plain_a enough_o in_o describe_v the_o nature_n of_o two_o sacrament_n he_o shall_v have_v add_v and_o it_o be_v plain_a in_o
describe_v the_o number_n also_o and_o give_v good_a scripture_n for_o both_o which_o can_v be_v do_v 2._o that_o faith_n only_o justify_v 3._o that_o after_o he_o have_v better_a ponder_v the_o text_n of_o st._n peter_n 2._o 3._o 16._o he_o prove_v by_o scripture_n the_o plainess_n of_o it_o in_o all_o necessary_a point_n to_o salvation_n a_o four_o proof_n concern_v the_o canon_n and_o certainty_n of_o scripture_n will_v choke_v mr._n poole_n but_o i_o will_v not_o give_v he_o so_o undigestible_a a_o pill_n may_v he_o plea_n to_o satisfy_v the_o three_o former_a demand_n by_o scripture_n only_o without_o gloss_n and_o ungrounded_a inference_n draw_v from_o what_o he_o think_v to_o be_v god_n word_n but_o be_v not_o 6._o some_o perhaps_o may_v ask_v why_o all_o this_o time_n whilst_o we_o have_v discourse_v of_o scripture_n of_o its_o certainty_n of_o its_o sense_n and_o regulate_a faith_n etc._n etc._n none_o of_o mr._n pool_n argument_n against_o we_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o have_v he_o none_o or_o do_v i_o dissemble_v they_o i_o answer_v the_o man_n have_v nothing_o like_o a_o objection_n to_o prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o rely_v on_o the_o confession_n and_o testimony_n of_o catholic_n this_o argument_n mr._n poole_n have_v nothing_o like_a argument_n we_o have_v refute_v above_o to_o prove_v it_o uncorrupt_a in_o the_o essential_o of_o faith_n he_o tell_v we_o we_o that_o by_o look_v into_o the_o nature_n and_o quality_n of_o those_o various_a lection_n which_o be_v plead_v as_o evidence_n of_o corruption_n we_o shall_v quick_o find_v they_o to_o be_v in_o matter_n of_o les_fw-fr moment_n it_o seem_v they_o be_v little_a because_o mr._n poole_n without_o proof_n will_v have_v they_o so_o i_o can_v show_v he_o great_a one_o in_o the_o protestant_a bible_n but_o let_v they_o pass_v and_o be_v please_v to_o note_v how_o poor_o he_o shift_v of_o the_o difficulty_n that_o press_v the_o difficulty_n be_v concern_v the_o best_a original_n which_o protestant_n have_v hitherto_o meet_v with_o none_o of_o they_o i_o believe_v ever_o yet_o see_v the_o autograph_n or_o handwriting_n of_o either_o a_o evangelist_n or_o apostle_n these_o original_n i_o say_v can_v be_v prove_v uncorrupt_a if_o that_o church_n which_o have_v they_o in_o custody_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n bring_v in_o a_o deluge_n of_o error_n into_o the_o christian_a world_n final_o to_o prove_v that_o a_o protestant_n have_v a_o sufficient_a assurance_n of_o understanding_n the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n he_o allege_v god_n promise_n john_n 7._o if_o any_o man_n will_v do_v his_o will_n he_o shall_v know_v of_o the_o doctrine_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o god_n but_o protestant_n do_v god_n will_v thus_o much_o must_v be_v add_v or_o the_o proof_n stand_v on_o one_o leg_n and_o papist_n do_v not_o god_n will_v ergo_fw-la those_o have_v assurance_n of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o these_o have_v not_o here_o be_v the_o doughty_a argument_n and_o that_o which_o follow_v be_v as_o weightles_a protestant_n say_v he_o have_v the_o assurance_n of_o reason_n papist_n have_v no_o more_o and_o if_o that_o will_v not_o do_v they_o have_v the_o assurance_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o god_n promise_v luk_n 11._o here_o be_v work_n enough_o for_o another_o chapter_n yet_o in_o pass_v i_o can_v but_o reflect_v on_o a_o mistake_a quotation_n senensis_n mr._n poole_n misquote_v sixtus_n senensis_n in_o mr._n poole_n page_n 230._o where_o he_o cite_v sixtus_n senensis_n and_o both_o err_v in_o the_o annotation_n and_o doctrine_n of_o sixtus_n concern_v the_o clarity_n of_o scripture_n sixtus_n therefore_o libre_fw-la 6._o annotat._n 152._o not_o 151._o as_o mr._n poole_n quote_v §_o quod_fw-la autem_fw-la answer_v a_o objection_n of_o st._n chrysostom_n plain_o afferts_n that_o when_o scripture_n be_v say_v to_o be_v clear_a it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o whole_a bible_n but_o to_o a_o part_n of_o it_o only_o wherefore_o say_v he_o st._n chrysostom_n divide_v scripture_n into_o two_o class_n the_o one_o contain_v the_o hide_a and_o abstruse_a mystery_n of_o god_n deep_a wisdom_n and_o this_o part_n be_v not_o clear_a at_o all_o thus_o much_o mr._n poole_n conceil_n altera_fw-la sectio_fw-la the_o other_o section_n or_o part_n of_o it_o comprise_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a principle_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v and_o chief_a precept_n of_o live_v and_o so_o much_o be_v clear_a observe_v well_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a principle_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v infer_v no_o clarity_n in_o every_o particular_a reveal_v mystery_n for_o he_o that_o believe_v this_o one_o principle_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o church_n be_v holy_a and_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n have_v a_o first_o great_a principle_n and_o may_v learn_v by_o it_o all_o truth_n if_o you_o please_v to_o see_v how_o mr._n poole_n abuse_v sixtus_n read_v he_o in_o the_o page_n now_o cite_v it_o be_v most_o easy_a to_o take_v he_o trip_v in_o other_o citation_n but_o that_o be_v not_o my_o task_n at_o present_a this_o only_o come_v in_o by_o chance_n chap._n v._n the_o reason_n of_o private_a man_n and_o their_o private_a spirit_n can_v interpret_v scripture_n 1._o mr._n poole_n tell_v we_o above_o that_o protestant_n have_v the_o assurance_n of_o reason_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n happy_a they_o if_o they_o be_v the_o only_a reasonable_a man_n in_o the_o world_n but_o why_o be_v not_o papist_n as_o reasonable_a why_o shall_v the_o pelagian_o the_o arian_n or_o honest_a quaker_n be_v leave_v out_o of_o the_o list_n of_o rational_a man_n or_o if_o these_o will_v monopolise_v the_o assurance_n of_o reason_n to_o themselves_o for_o their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n why_o be_v they_o not_o to_o be_v credit_v upon_o their_o parole_n as_o well_o as_o protestant_n for_o their_o proof_n be_v to_o say_v they_o have_v it_o crede_fw-la quod_fw-la habes_fw-la &_o habes_fw-la and_o so_o will_v a_o arian_n or_o quaker_n say_v too_o admit_v right_a be_v reason_n allow_v of_o to_o sentence_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n we_o must_v know_v who_o reason_n hitt'_v right_a therefore_o which_o be_v fall_v that_o reason_n be_v allow_v of_o as_o judge_n or_o a_o justrument_n to_o sentence_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n where_o it_o speak_v obscure_o we_o be_v nothing_o advance_v nor_o one_o whit_n the_o wise_a unless_o we_o know_v who_o reason_n it_o be_v that_o hitt'_v right_a on_o the_o sense_n now_o all_o of_o they_o most_o evident_o do_v not_o so_o unless_o we_o impious_o say_v that_o god_n have_v reveal_v contradiction_n in_o scripture_n because_o these_o man_n reason_n draw_v contradictory_n sense_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o in_o true_o all_o do_v not_o interpret_v scripture_n true_o high_a point_n of_o faith_n also_o say_v then_o good_a mr._n poole_n who_o reason_n must_v yield_v and_o to_o who_o must_v a_o arian_n submit_v to_o you_o or_o you_o to_o a_o arian_n sense_n who_o reason_n must_v yield_v and_o to_o who_o whilst_o we_o vary_v about_o the_o sense_n must_v my_o bend_n to_o you_o or_o you_o to_o i_o or_o may_v we_o all_o hold_v on_o to_o the_o day_n of_o doom_n as_o divide_v in_o faith_n as_o we_o be_v in_o judgement_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n allow_v once_o of_o these_o endless_a and_o eternal_a jar_n in_o religion_n here_o on_o earth_n which_o this_o one_o principle_n of_o follow_v private_a reason_n establish_v and_o you_o may_v seek_v for_o another_o heaven_n than_o christ_n have_v promise_v to_o the_o child_n of_o peace_n hereafter_o that_o be_v for_o none_o at_o all_o god_n forgive_v these_o late_a tumultuous_a spirit_n the_o true_a cause_n of_o our_o woeful_a dissension_n but_o let_v we_o go_v on_o and_o 2._o pray_v you_o tell_v i_o when_o protestant_n say_v they_o have_v the_o assurance_n of_o reason_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o controvert_v point_n of_o faith_n e._n g._n the_o trinity_n what_o signify_v this_o word_n reason_n with_o they_o do_v it_o import_v a_o formal_a discourse_n much_o of_o that_o nature_n as_o schoolman_n use_v when_o they_o establish_v their_o tenant_n in_o divinity_n signify_v sectary_n be_v to_o say_v what_o this_o word_n reason_n signify_v if_o so_o the_o principle_n of_o this_o discourse_n must_v be_v admit_v of_o and_o own_a by_o the_o two_o advers._fw-la party_n when_o by_o reason_n only_o they_o plead_v for_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o discourse_n must_v principle_n if_o a_o formal_a discourse_n two_o advers._fw-la party_n must_v agree_v on_o a_o principle_n be_v draw_v from_o premise_n found_v on_o this_o receive_a principle_n thus_o much_o suppose_v i_o may_v here_o ask_v first_o upon_o what_o know_v and_o admit_v principle_n do_v our_o protestant_n ground_v
move_v and_z draws_z man_n to_o believe_v be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v inheritance_n protestant_n can_v prove_v that_o the_o operation_n of_o grace_n be_v their_o peculiar_a inheritance_n though_o indeed_o our_o protestant_n have_v a_o odd_a spirit_n they_o can_v show_v probable_o that_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n divine_a grace_n be_v more_o their_o peculiar_a inheritance_n than_o other_o who_o believe_v contrary_a to_o they_o but_o of_o this_o hereafter_o in_o the_o interim_n note_n that_o in_o the_o discourse_n hitherto_o we_o inquire_v not_o so_o much_o after_o the_o reason_n of_o protestant_n for_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n as_o for_o its_o sense_n in_o point_n of_o controversy_n whereof_o you_o will_v see_v more_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n chap._n vi_o the_o new_a mode_n of_o protestant_n misinterpret_v scripture_n which_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n be_v more_o ample_o refute_v 1._o we_o note_v above_o that_o it_o much_o avail_n when_o sectary_n take_v a_o liberty_n of_o gloss_v scripture_n as_o they_o please_v to_o urge_v they_o to_o a_o proof_n of_o their_o interpretation_n by_o this_o close_a deal_v we_o shall_v learn_v much_o of_o their_o fallacious_a spirit_n and_o see_v how_o they_o both_o abuse_v their_o reader_n and_o which_o be_v worse_o the_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n 2._o in_o the_o former_a discourse_n we_o handle_v that_o controversy_n teacher_n scripture_n most_o significant_a for_o infallible_a teacher_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n of_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o prove_v the_o verity_n we_o allege_v such_o express_a scripture_n that_o i_o dare_v affirm_v the_o whole_a bible_n speak_v no_o where_o any_o truth_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n then_o this_o in_o more_o plain_n catagorical_a and_o significant_a term_n may_v the_o word_n without_o patch_n of_o vain_a gloss_n have_v their_o open_a and_o obvious_a sense_n 3._o for_o the_o infallibility_n then_o of_o live_v teacher_n we_o cite_v what_o christ_n say_v luk._n 10._o 16._o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o etc._n etc._n or_o as_o the_o greek_a read'_v and_o perhaps_o more_o significant_o hear_v you_o he_o hear_v i_o and_o argue_v thus_o he_o who_o hear_v christ_n speak_v here_o be_v a_o teacher_n teacher_n argument_n for_o infallible_a teacher_n subjective_o infallible_a in_o doctrine_n and_o teach_v but_o he_o who_o here_o be_v those_o who_o be_v point_v at_o by_o that_o particle_n you_o here_o be_v christ_n speak_v for_o hear_v you_o he_o hear_v i_o ergo_fw-la he_o here_o be_v teacher_n subjective_o infallible_a in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o teach_v 4._o to_o this_o a_o grandy_n among_o our_o sectary_n answer_n be_v sectary_n the_o gloss_n of_o sectary_n that_o say_v of_o christ_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o etc._n etc._n be_v absolute_o true_a in_o the_o apostle_n who_o keep_v themselves_o to_o that_o which_o be_v reveal_v by_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v only_o conditional_o true_a mark_v the_o gloss_n in_o their_o successor_n id_fw-la est_fw-la so_o long_o and_o so_o far_o as_o you_o speak_v my_o word_n and_o not_o your_o own_o observe_v i_o say_v the_o injury_n do_v the_o text_n by_o a_o self-conceited_a glosser_n and_o he_o speak_v peremptory_o it_o be_v but_o conditional_o true_a in_o their_o successor_n who_o say_v so_o good_a sir_n christ_n or_o you_o prove_v your_o gloss_n which_o overreach_v the_o text_n and_o all_o the_o word_n which_o god_n ever_o speak_v must_v i_o therefore_o be_v fool_v into_o a_o fallible_a how_o desperate_o fallible_a man_n go_v about_o to_o persuade_v that_o all_o pastor_n be_v fallible_a false_a belief_n and_o hold_v all_o the_o pastor_n in_o christ_n church_n fallible_a because_o you_o a_o mere_a fallible_a man_n be_v please_v to_o tell_v i_o they_o be_v fallible_a or_o that_o all_o they_o have_v be_v only_o the_o small_a allowance_n of_o a_o conditional_a but_o of_o no_o absolute_a infallibility_n evangelical_n sincerity_n require_v a_o proof_n of_o a_o assertion_n so_o new_o coin_a produce_v it_o infallible_a a_o new_a sectary_n may_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v only_o conditional_o infallible_a but_o their_o suecessor_n absolute_o infallible_a then_o and_o let_v it_o be_v plain_a scripture_n unless_o this_o be_v do_v any_o new_a haeretick_n may_v give_v the_o quite_o contrary_a gloss_n to_o christ_n word_n and_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v only_o conditional_o infallible_a whilst_o live_v with_o christ_n they_o may_v be_v right_o instruct_v in_o case_n they_o err_v but_o that_o the_o follow_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v make_v absolute_o infallible_a because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o personal_a presence_n of_o so_o good_a a_o master_n to_o reclaim_v they_o in_o case_n they_o swerve_v from_o his_o doctrine_n thus_o much_o be_v say_v and_o only_o say_v without_o proof_n and_o your_o gloss_n good_a sir_n have_v no_o better_a proof_n to_o enhaunse_v it_o but_o your_o own_o say_v which_o be_v not_o worth_a a_o rush_n o_o but_o they_o be_v strange_a kind_n of_o sectary_n say_v you_o who_o deny_v the_o apostle_n infallibility_n they_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o as_o strange_a they_o be_v who_o deny_v to_o the_o true_a church_n infallible_a teacher_n but_o this_o be_v not_o what_o i_o aim_n at_o all_o i_o now_o say_v be_v that_o if_o such_o sectary_n appear_v perhaps_o among_o you_o in_o england_n they_o prove_v their_o assertion_n as_o well_o by_o vent_v their_o sectary_n fancy_n vent_v without_o proof_n by_o both_o these_o sectary_n gloss_n upon_o christ_n word_n as_o you_o do_v you_o you_o say_v those_o word_n be_v only_o conditional_o true_a in_o the_o apostle_n successor_n but_o prove_v nothing_o they_o say_v the_o word_n be_v conditional_a in_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o but_o absolute_a in_o their_o successor_n and_o prove_v nothing_o you_o be_v here_o both_o alike_o unless_o luther_n proof_n help_v you_o out_o doctor_n martinus_n lutherus_n vult_fw-la sic_fw-la habere_fw-la sic_fw-la volo_fw-la sic_fw-la jubeo_fw-la you_o have_v not_o more_o you_o reply_v where_o the_o command_n be_v for_o preach_v matth._n 28._o the_o restraint_n be_v add_v what_o restraint_n none_o at_o all_o when_o send_v as_o lawful_a missioner_n to_o preach_v christ_n doctrine_n than_o they_o can_v deliver_v no_o other_o doctrine_n send_v by_o he_o and_o as_o member_n of_o the_o church_n then_o found_v herein_o they_o can_v neither_o go_v beyond_o infallible_a how_o far_o the_o apostle_n and_o true_a pastor_n be_v infallible_a nor_o fall_v short_a of_o their_o commission_n i_o say_v as_o send_v for_o no_o man_n god_n know_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n or_o 70._o disciple_n or_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v or_o be_v infallible_a in_o every_o ordinary_a matter_n whereof_o they_o casual_o discourse_v 5._o well_o but_o the_o message_n these_o 70._o disciple_n be_v send_v upon_o require_v no_o infallible_a assistance_n for_o they_o be_v not_o to_o deliver_v full_o christ_n doctrine_n but_o only_o to_o prepare_v for_o it_o by_o tell_v their_o hearer_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v at_o hand_n here_o be_v also_o more_o than_o be_v probable_a or_o can_v be_v prove_v for_o be_v it_o probable_a think_v you_o that_o these_o 70._o send_v to_o preach_v reiterated_a nothing_o but_o these_o few_o word_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v at_o hand_n be_v it_o probable_a that_o they_o be_v so_o toung-tyed_n as_o to_o say_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n sacred_a virtue_n or_o of_o his_o miracle_n whereby_o he_o found_v this_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v they_o be_v infallible_a at_o least_o in_o the_o delivery_n of_o that_o message_n for_o have_v christ_n send_v by_o his_o eternal_a father_n personal_o deliver_v the_o message_n he_o have_v speak_v infallible_o but_o say_v the_o text_n he_o who_o here_o be_v you_o hear_v i_o ergo_fw-la these_o 70._o be_v infallible_a in_o the_o message_n they_o deliver_v you_o reply_v again_o though_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o 70._o disciple_n be_v suppose_v infallible_a before_o a_o obje_fw-fr ∣_o ction_n christ_n ascension_n yet_o nothing_o can_v be_v draw_v from_o hence_o for_o the_o church_n continual_a infallibility_n first_o because_o be_v send_v abroad_o by_o christ_n when_o there_o be_v no_o infallible_a write_n contain_v christ_n doctrine_n 2._o they_o have_v sufficient_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n in_o cure_v disease_n and_o cast_v out_o devil_n to_o attest_v that_o infallibility_n to_o this_o second_o answer_v i_o answer_v above_o that_o the_o church_n have_v the_o like_a evidence_n of_o infallibility_n by_o miracle_n cast_v of_o devil_n etc._n etc._n the_o first_o objection_n be_v proofle_n because_o infallible_a writing_n alone_o make_v no_o man_n infallible_a as_o be_v evident_a in_o all_o know_a heretic_n who_o have_v god_n infallible_a word_n yet_o most_o certain_o pervert_v it_o there_o be_v therefore_o as_o much_o need_n of_o a_o
and_o all_o sectary_n will_v as_o well_o agree_v in_o one_o harmony_n of_o doctrine_n by_o force_n of_o that_o clear_a interpretation_n none_o of_o they_o deny_v the_o clear_a sense_n of_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o scripture_n itself_o dissent_v if_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n there_o will_v be_v no_o dissent_v as_o they_o now_o agree_v in_o own_v scripture_n to_o be_v divine_a they_o accord_n not_o in_o the_o first_o therefore_o scripture_n be_v not_o its_o own_o interpreter_n or_o if_o any_o yet_o without_o proof_n strong_o assert_v so_o much_o most_o evident_o in_o order_n to_o these_o dissent_v man_n it_o be_v as_o useless_a a_o interpreter_n as_o if_o it_o be_v none_o at_o all_o for_o it_o compose_v no_o difference_n take_v here_o one_o instance_n sectary_n to_o prove_v scripture_n conspicuous_a and_o clear_a without_o a_o interpreter_n quote_v these_o and_o the_o like_a place_n thy_o word_n be_v a_o lantern_n to_o my_o foot_n a_o lante●_n shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n etc._n etc._n we_o answer_v scripture_n be_v true_o a_o light_n when_o that_o outward_a cover_n of_o ambiguous_a word_n wherein_o the_o sense_n often_o lie_v enclose_v be_v break_v open_a by_o a_o faithful_a interpreter_n and_o withal_o we_o add_v it_o be_v vain_o frivolous_a to_o make_v they_o such_o shine_a lamp_n as_o to_o silence_v all_o preach_a and_o interpretation_n yet_o this_o follow_v if_o sectary_n gloss_n right_a for_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o interpret_v or_o teach_v that_o a_o lantern_n shine_v which_o i_o see_v bright_a before_o my_o eye_n observe_v well_o the_o protestant_n make_v scripture_n clear_a without_o a_o teacher_n the_o catholic_n scripture_n interpretation_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o scripture_n say_v interpretation_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a scripture_n itself_o deliver_v not_o in_o formal_a word_n either_o the_o one_o or_o other_o gloss_n therefore_o it_o do_v not_o ever_o interpret_v itself_o home_o or_o declare_v its_o own_o mean_v nay_o it_o can_v do_v so_o for_o all_o interpretation_n proper_o take_v be_v a_o new_a more_o clear_a and_o distinct_a light_n superad_v to_o the_o formal_a word_n of_o scripture_n but_o no_o hagiographer_n say_v this_o sacred_a book_n make_v any_o such_o new_a addition_n of_o gloss_n therefore_o it_o can_v interpret_v itself_o and_o this_o be_v what_o the_o apostle_n 2._o petri_n 1._o 20._o seem_v to_o teach_v scripture_n be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o its_o own_o explication_n 4._o i_o say_v 2._o no_o private_a man_n whether_o catholic_n arian_n protestant_n or_o other_o can_v upon_o his_o own_o discourse_n or_o judgement_n only_o so_o interpret_v a_o difficil_n scripture_n with_o certainty_n as_o to_o assure_v any_o that_o god_n speak_v as_o he_o interpret_n the_o reason_n be_v every_o private_a judgement_n be_v fallible_a and_o liable_a to_o error_n which_o truth_n that_o of_o the_o apostle_n roman_n 3_o omnis_fw-la homo_fw-la mendax_fw-la teach_v but_o a_o judgement_n sense_n a_o judgement_n liable_a to_o error_n can_v give_v certainty_n of_o the_o scripture_n sense_n fallible_a and_o liable_a to_o error_n can_v with_o no_o certainty_n give_v i_o that_o sense_n which_o god_n reveal_v in_o a_o difficil_n place_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o i_o can_v trust_v to_o it_o nor_o assure_o ground_n my_o faith_n on_o such_o a_o interpretation_n and_o thus_o much_o protestant_n acknowledge_v for_o they_o say_v neither_o church_n nor_o ancient_a father_n be_v to_o be_v rely_v on_o as_o infallible_a in_o their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o much_o less_o can_v a_o minister_n or_o lay_v man_n assume_v to_o himself_o the_o infallible_a spirit_n of_o interpret_n or_o resolve_v what_o a_o whole_a universal_a church_n be_v to_o believe_v alas_o such_o a_o man_n want_v certitude_n in_o what_o he_o say_v he_o want_v a_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o both_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n never_o perhaps_o exact_o peruse_v he_o want_v a_o constant_a stability_n for_o what_o he_o judge_v this_o hour_n he_o may_v upon_o after_o thought_n change_v the_o next_o for_o as_o he_o be_v fallible_a so_o be_v he_o also_o changeable_a in_o his_o judgement_n 5._o yet_o more_o what_o private_a man_n dare_v when_o he_o be_fw-mi the_o learned_a of_o contrary_a religion_n at_o debate_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n step_v in_o among_o they_o and_o say_v my_o master_n you_o be_v to_o believe_v i_o and_o acquiesce_v to_o what_o i_o judge_v of_o the_o sense_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v i_o and_o not_o you_o that_o know_v god_n mean_v will_v not_o such_o a_o thing_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o all_o company_n yet_o this_o be_v our_o very_a case_n when_o a_o new_a upstart_n puff_v up_o with_o his_o own_o sentiment_n tell_v we_o either_o catholic_n or_o protestant_n what_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v in_o controvert_v point_n of_o faith_n and_o hence_o i_o say_v the_o catholic_n can_v assure_v a_o protestant_n without_o a_o better_a proof_n than_o his_o own_o opinion_n that_o the_o sectary_n err_v in_o his_o interpretation_n nor_o can_v the_o protestant_n upon_o his_o own_o assertion_n remove_v the_o catholic_n from_o the_o judgement_n he_o make_v of_o the_o scripture_n sense_n both_o fallible_a as_o private_a man_n catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v both_o fallible_a of_o they_o be_v alike_o fallible_a if_o no_o other_o certain_a principle_n be_v lay_v hold_v on_o here_o then_o be_v the_o difference_n the_o catholic_n for_o his_o interpretation_n of_o such_o place_n prudent_o rely_v on_o a_o firm_a ground_n than_o his_o variable_a judgement_n the_o protestant_n have_v nothing_o to_o uphold_v the_o sense_n he_o defend_v but_o his_o own_o waver_v and_o unsteedy_a thought_n which_o be_v as_o changeable_a as_o catholic_n be_v moral_a certainty_n sufficient_a why_o be_v it_o to_o be_v more_o grant_v the_o sectary_n than_o the_o catholic_n the_o man_n be_v fallible_a here_o be_v the_o best_a support_n for_o his_o interpretation_n and_o faith_n also_o if_o he_o tell_v you_o he_o have_v moral_a assurance_n or_o interpret_n as_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v i_o answer_v above_o he_o only_o think_v so_o but_o prove_v nothing_o let_v he_o show_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n ever_o interpr_v those_o word_n the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n as_o he_o now_o interpret_v they_o if_o he_o say_v he_o believe_v as_o his_o own_o judgement_n interpret_n i_o grant_v this_o be_v too_o pitiful_o true_a but_o what_o be_o i_o the_o better_a on_o that_o account_n can_v we_o rely_v on_o a_o protestant_n easy_a fallible_a and_o erroneous_a judgement_n in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n at_o last_o sure_o he_o will_v hit_v on_o it_o and_o say_v he_o interpret_v as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n sugge_v happy_a man_n do_v he_o so_o but_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o otherwise_o present_o however_o because_o the_o word_n be_v of_o comfort_n let_v he_o hear_v it_o on_o god_n name_n for_o it_o be_v the_o resolution_n of_o our_o whole_a question_n certain_o the_o holy_a ghost_n only_o interpret_v scripture_n certain_o 6._o i_o say_v therefore_o 3._o no_o other_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n the_o holy_a ghost_n interpret_n scripture_n certain_o john_n 16._o 23._o when_o that_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v come_v he_o will_v teach_v all_o truth_n but_o one_o and_o a_o most_o necessary_a truth_n be_v to_o have_v scripture_n faithful_o interpret_v therefore_o this_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v if_o he_o teach_v all_o truth_n again_o john_n 14._o 16._o he_o be_v call_v a_o paraclete_n or_o comforter_n abide_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o but_o he_o be_v not_o a_o permanent_a comforter_n unless_o he_o solace_n as_o well_o by_o his_o spirit_n of_o truth_n mention_v john_n 17._o 19_o as_o with_o other_o interior_a consolation_n to_o allege_v more_o text_n obvious_a to_o all_o be_v needle_n the_o assertion_n deliver_v in_o these_o general_a term_n be_v undoubted_o true_a and_o protestaent_n i_o think_v who_o endless_o talk_v of_o their_o interior_a spirit_n will_v not_o deny_v it_o interpret_n the_o difficulty_n by_o who_o the_o spirit_n interpret_n 7._o the_o only_a difficulty_n which_o will_v trouble_v they_o be_v see_v this_o al-teaching_a spirit_n usual_o interpret_n not_o by_o private_a illustration_n nor_o assume_v every_o private_a man_n to_o be_v the_o oracle_n whereby_o he_o speak_v and_o interpret_n see_v also_o he_o leave_v scripture_n still_o as_o speechless_a in_o order_n to_o its_o own_o further_a explication_n as_o it_o be_v 16._o hundred_o year_n ago_o the_o difficulty_n i_o say_v be_v to_o find_v out_o that_o oracle_n and_o a_o christian_a society_n it_o must_v be_v for_o angel_n be_v not_o interpreter_n wherein_o he_o presides_n as_o master_n and_o by_o it_o interpret_n scripture_n find_v this_o speak_a oracle_n out_o and_o we_o have_v enough_o hear_v it_o and_o we_o hear_v truth_n to_o our_o purpose_n then_o 8._o do_v this_o spirit_n
certain_o know_v without_o a_o teacher_n what_o this_o infinite_a wisdom_n judge_v of_o the_o truth_n they_o seek_v proof_n observe_v the_o proof_n after_o this_o be_v the_o very_a case_n of_o sectary_n no_o more_o do_v they_o certain_o know_v in_o their_o principle_n what_o god_n have_v already_o reveal_v in_o that_o one_o text_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o the_o like_a be_v of_o innumerable_a other_o then_o if_o he_o have_v never_o register_v those_o word_n in_o scripture_n they_o may_v guess_v at_o the_o sense_n and_o miss_n more_o they_o can_v do_v now_o if_o they_o tell_v i_o of_o no_o man_n know_v what_o moral_a certainty_n or_o of_o fundamental_o clear_o enough_o make_v know_v in_o scripture_n we_o answer_v full_o to_o both_o in_o the_o next_o discourse_n 3._o they_o may_v three_o object_n if_o a_o protestant_n can_v depose_v his_o judgement_n nor_o think_v that_o the_o church_n and_o scripture_n say_v one_o thing_n because_o his_o reason_n find_v they_o opposite_a to_o one_o another_o he_o may_v stand_v for_o god_n word_n against_o the_o church_n to_o confirm_v this_o he_o may_v tell_v we_o also_o that_o the_o church_n which_o haresy_n a_o objection_n contain_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o haresy_n seem_v to_o engross_v all_o judicature_n and_o right_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o party_n and_o a_o party_n can_v in_o reason_n be_v judge_n for_o itself_o when_o the_o protestant_n stand_v out_o and_o be_v in_o controversy_n with_o the_o church_n here_o brief_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o haeresy_n and_o the_o old_a plea_n of_o all_o condemn_a sectary_n 4._o to_o answer_v the_o first_o i_o ask_v what_o be_v this_o protestant_n answer_v be_v answer_v that_o can_v submit_v his_o judgement_n be_v he_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n or_o one_o immediate_o teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n no._n he_o be_v a_o poor_a simple_a fallible_a and_o err_a man._n why_o then_o may_v not_o he_o yield_v to_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o his_o ancestor_n have_v do_v before_o he_o and_o the_o wise_a part_n of_o christianity_n do_v now_o the_o true_a reason_n be_v because_o he_o perverse_o will_v not_o submit_v and_o though_o he_o palliat'_v his_o pertinacy_n with_o a_o specious_a pretence_n of_o god_n word_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o one_o syllable_n in_o scripture_n for_o he_o the_o most_o he_o can_v know_v if_o yet_o so_o much_o be_v that_o what_o he_o read_v be_v scripture_n but_o what_o god_n say_v in_o that_o scripture_n he_o can_v know_v at_o all_o but_o by_o fancy_n only_o when_o he_o judge_v contrary_a to_o the_o church_n o_o but_o god_n illuminate_v he_o about_o illuminate_v a_o paradox_n of_o protestant_n illuminate_v the_o sense_n why_o you_o my_o friend_n more_o than_o a_o arian_n as_o strong_a in_o fancy_n as_o you_o be_v but_o why_o you_o more_o than_o a_o whole_a ancient_a church_n do_v god_n tender_v you_o so_o dear_o and_o not_o his_o church_n will_v he_o darkness_n and_o of_o a_o whole_a church_n leave_v in_o darkness_n illuminate_v you_o and_o leave_v his_o church_n in_o darkness_n will_v he_o give_v you_o the_o spirit_n of_o infallibility_n and_o take_v it_o from_o his_o church_n away_o with_o these_o trifle_n not_o worth_a refute_v neither_o god_n nor_o scripture_n nor_o church_n be_v here_o stand_v for_o but_o a_o self-conceipt_n only_o judge_n the_o church_n no_o party_n but_o judge_n 5._o now_o to_o what_o be_v add_v of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o part_n and_o therefore_o no_o judge_n i_o will_v say_v one_o word_n and_o first_o ask_v what_o be_v the_o sectary_n that_o oppose_v himself_o to_o the_o church_n be_v not_o he_o a_o party_n also_o will_v he_o then_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o judge_n and_o censure_v the_o church_n and_o cry_v out_o against_o it_o as_o partial_a if_o it_o meddle_v with_o he_o the_o church_n be_v already_o empower_v by_o christ_n to_o judge_n in_o spiritual_a cause_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v but_o no_o particular_a man_n be_v more_o prove_v it_o be_v prove_v authorize_v to_o judge_v the_o church_n than_o a_o vassal_n be_v to_o judge_v his_o sovereign_n after_o treason_n commit_v and_o the_o instance_n be_v fit_a as_o you_o may_v see_v if_o some_o in_o a_o kingdom_n tumultuous_o rise_v up_o against_o both_o king_n and_o country_n as_o sectary_n have_v do_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n they_o be_v accuse_v and_o bring_v to_o a_o trial_n before_o their_o lawful_a sovereign_n the_o fact_n be_v examine_v whether_o treasonable_a or_o no._n will_v these_o impeach_v man_n think_v you_o fly_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o their_o sovereign_n or_o plead_v he_o be_v a_o party_n and_o therefore_o seek_v for_o justice_n to_o a_o foreign_a prince_n no_o most_o certain_o the_o king_n appeal_n the_o church_n the_o high_a tribunal_n from_o which_o there_o be_v no_o appeal_n and_o country_n where_o they_o offend_v have_v power_n to_o judge_v they_o and_o so_o have_v the_o church_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n from_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o appeal_n and_o the_o case_n be_v most_o evident_a for_o the_o church_n because_o whilst_o sectary_n by_o their_o schism_n or_o new_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o it_o become_v rebel_n they_o have_v no_o tribunal_n imaginable_a leave_v they_o to_o appeal_v to_o seclude_v this_o judge_n but_o their_o own_o self-judgement_n which_o be_v the_o delinquent_n the_o church_n thus_o judge_n sectary_n make_v the_o delinquent_n judge_n reject_v neither_o god_n immediate_o nor_o scripture_n more_o explicit_o nor_o angel_n ministerial_o judge_v for_o they_o therefore_o their_o last_o appellation_n be_v to_o a_o very_a friendly_a and_o too_o partial_a a_o judge_n judge_n too_o partial_a a_o judge_n their_o own_o what_o they_o please_v and_o this_o be_v most_o evident_a in_o every_o debate_v controversy_n where_o no_o other_o judge_n be_v allow_v of_o by_o they_o but_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v well_o will_v they_o stand_v to_o it_o but_o it_o be_v scripture_n as_o they_o be_v please_v to_o interpret_v 6._o they_o may_v object_n fourthly_a those_o apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n mention_v in_o the_o text_n though_o grant_v infallible_a be_v against_o all_o reason_n suppose_v to_o be_v the_o teacher_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o pretence_n of_o other_o lawful_a pastor_n beside_o those_o of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n church_n for_o most_o sure_o there_o be_v other_o orthodox_n teacher_n beside_o these_o continue_a age_n after_o age_n in_o the_o world_n why_o therefore_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n draw_v all_o that_o be_v good_a to_o itself_o and_o allow_v no_o other_o christian_a society_n at_o least_o a_o share_n of_o these_o doctor_n and_o teacher_n &_o c_o mark_v the_o objection_n which_o acknowledge_v a_o succession_n of_o other_o orthodox_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n age_n after_o age_n null_a show_v null_a and_o take_v with_o it_o my_o plain_a answer_n if_o sectary_n lay_v claim_v to_o such_o they_o be_v oblige_v plain_o to_o point_v they_o out_o and_o say_v where_o or_o when_o they_o live_v who_o they_o teach_v etc._n etc._n but_o they_o be_v not_o designable_a because_o from_o luther_n day_n upward_o there_o be_v none_o except_o the_o roman_a pastor_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o know_v confess_v and_o condemn_v heretic_n and_o they_o be_v no_o orthodox_n teacher_n as_o i_o large_o prove_v in_o the_o first_o chap._n of_o the_o next_o discourse_n be_v please_v to_o read_v it_o they_o may_v reply_v five_o this_o argument_n such_o pastor_n be_v not_o answer_v a_o reply_v answer_v designable_a therefore_o be_v not_o be_v pure_o negative_a and_o prove_v nothing_o well_o but_o i_o hope_v this_o proposition_n assert_v by_o protestant_n such_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n distinct_a from_o the_o roman_a clergy_n be_v successive_o find_v to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n be_v positive_a and_o therefore_o must_v be_v prove_v however_o negative_a argument_n in_o such_o matter_n and_o of_o the_o like_a nature_n with_o this_o that_o be_v when_o thing_n be_v of_o themselves_o perceptible_a and_o yet_o not_o see_v be_v both_o strong_a and_o convince_v for_o example_n force_v when_o negative_a argument_n have_v force_v if_o a_o company_n of_o quick_a sight_v man_n stand_v up_o in_o a_o tower_n set_v before_o a_o plain_a and_o look_v round_o about_o they_o yet_o see_v nothing_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o eye_n like_o a_o high_a mountain_n they_o may_v well_o conclude_v there_o be_v no_o such_o mountain_n within_o their_o sight_n now_o i_o say_v a_o church_n consist_v of_o such_o suppose_a orthodox_n pastor_n as_o protestant_n imagine_v distinct_a from_o the_o roman_a be_v as_o visible_a and_o discernible_a as_o a_o mountain_n in_o this_o present_a case_n yet_o be_v never_o see_v by_o protestant_n nor_o other_o therefore_o it_o follow_v they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o unless_o we_o
recur_n to_o a_o invisible_a society_n of_o such_o man_n now_o as_o well_o explode_v by_o late_a protestant_n as_o catholic_n 7._o a_o five_o objection_n flow'_v from_o the_o pen_n of_o a_o late_a stillingfleet_n mr._n stillingfleet_n writer_n after_o this_o manner_n can_v you_o conceive_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o number_n of_o man_n profess_v christianity_n without_o infallibility_n if_o not_o say_v he_o i_o will_v help_v your_o understanding_n a_o little_a suppose_v and_o it_o be_v only_o a_o supposition_n that_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v be_v destroy_v in_o one_o age_n do_v not_o you_o think_v that_o there_o will_v be_v still_o a_o number_n remain_v who_o profess_v christianity_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o protestant_a church_n sound_v at_o least_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o fundamental_o without_o infallibility_n i_o have_v answer_v already_o no._n and_o give_v my_o reason_n because_o a_o church_n stable_n a_o church_n separate_v from_o divine_a assistance_n can_v persist_v stable_n divorce_v from_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v pull_v from_o the_o centre_n of_o truth_n which_o support_v it_o and_o consequent_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o must_v needs_o reel_v and_o totter_v now_o as_o be_v suppose_v to_o rely_v on_o no_o firm_a a_o hold_n then_o on_o man_n unsteedy_a fallible_a reason_n or_o on_o a_o testimony_n mere_o humane_a and_o therefore_o uncertain_a neither_o have_v we_o without_o this_o assistance_n more_o security_n fundamental_o without_o infallible_a assistance_n no_o security_n of_o fundamental_o of_o true_a belief_n in_o matter_n call_v fundamental_a than_o other_o as_o be_v clear_a in_o condemn_a arian_n who_o no_o soon_o leave_v the_o church_n direct_v by_o this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n but_o error_n follow_v they_o in_o point_n most_o fundamental_a and_o yet_o like_o black_a ghost_n do_v and_o will_v haunt_v they_o without_o repentance_n to_o the_o world_n end_n 8._o before_o we_o end_v this_o matter_n i_o have_v one_o question_v to_o propose_v it_o be_v whether_o if_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n sectary_n a_o question_n propose_v to_o sectary_n that_o ever_o live_v have_v plain_o interpret_v scripture_n as_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n now_o interpret_n they_o contrary_v to_o protestant_n they_o will_v then_o disavow_v their_o own_o gloss_n and_o submit_v to_o the_o undeniable_a authority_n of_o so_o many_o worthy_a father_n may_v reason_n or_o religion_n set_v one_o unlucky_a adversary_n aside_o call_v prejudice_n make_v the_o answer_n sectary_n will_v say_v yes_o and_o do_v so_o be_v the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n against_o they_o grant_v thus_o much_o and_o say_v bold_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a antecedent_n father_n the_o authority_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n more_o weighty_a than_o that_o of_o father_n and_o this_o present_a roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v in_o true_a prudence_n of_o great_a force_n to_o withdraw_v sectary_n from_o their_o new_a invent_a gloss_n contrary_a to_o it_o then_o if_o all_o the_o father_n together_o have_v plain_o interpret_v scripture_n as_o the_o church_n interpret_n why_o nothing_o on_o earth_n can_v parallel_v this_o church_n authority_n much_o les_fw-fr make_v it_o inferior_a to_o church_n the_o father_n only_a part_n of_o the_o church_n the_o universal_a consent_n of_o father_n the_o reason_n be_v these_o father_n be_v only_o a_o part_n of_o it_o particular_a man_n and_o single_o consider_v fallible_a but_o a_o whole_a church_n embrace_v a_o great_a number_n and_o can_v be_v mislead_v into_o error_n nay_o i_o say_v though_o we_o impious_o suppose_v father_n be_v the_o church_n suppose_v fallible_a the_o authority_n of_o it_o be_v as_o great_a as_o the_o father_n that_o this_o whole_a church_n may_v swerve_v from_o truth_n yet_o the_o testimony_n of_o it_o be_v as_o great_a as_o that_o of_o the_o father_n who_o as_o protestant_n say_v may_v all_o err_v and_o swerve_v more_o easy_o this_o reason_n be_v reinforce_v if_o we_o reflect_v on_o one_o undeniable_a truth_n which_o be_v in_o all_o controversy_n now_o between_o we_o sectary_n can_v pretend_v no_o more_o but_o thus_o much_o only_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o some_o few_o father_n only_o they_o never_o pretend_v all_o whilst_o they_o interpret_v scripture_n be_v though_o often_o obscure_a more_o against_o the_o church_n interpretation_n then_o for_o it_o here_o be_v the_o most_o they_o can_v say_v with_o any_o conscience_n though_o we_o grant_v not_o so_o much_o when_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o a_o father_n be_v well_o examine_v however_o gratis_o admit_v of_o the_o supposition_n at_o present_a and_o see_v what_o follow_v fallible_a a_o clear_a testimony_n though_o fallible_a have_v more_o weight_n than_o another_o that_o be_v obscure_a and_o fallible_a thus_o much_o only_o the_o sense_n of_o such_o and_o such_o father_n be_v doubtful_a and_o sectary_n say_v fallible_a the_o church_n sense_n be_v clear_a that_o be_v you_o know_v what_o it_o teach_v and_o though_o false_o suppose_v fallible_a be_v yet_o far_o more_o firm_a than_o the_o other_o testimony_n that_o be_v confess_o both_o obscure_a and_o fallible_a 9_o this_o discourse_n convince_v that_o sectary_n can_v prove_v if_o sectary_n say_v the_o more_o clear_a church_n doctrine_n be_v the_o more_o manifest_a be_v its_o error_n they_o speak_v without_o principle_n and_o suppose_v what_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v impugn_v the_o church_n sense_n give_v of_o scripture_n by_o any_o thing_n that_o have_v the_o look_n of_o a_o probable_a principle_n for_o the_o church_n defend'_v itself_o upon_o two_o undeniable_a ground_n the_o first_o positive_a and_o it_o be_v the_o church_n own_o authority_n nothing_o can_v be_v great_a the_o other_o negative_a viz._n never_o any_o of_o know_a credit_n neither_o father_n general_o nor_o ecumenical_a council_n much_o less_o scripture_n probably_n clear_o contradict_v that_o sense_n which_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n give_v of_o scripture_n and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n you_o may_v see_v to_o what_o a_o exigency_n our_o new_a scripture_n none_o of_o undoubted_a credit_n ever_o clear_o contradict_v the_o church_n sense_n of_o scripture_n man_n be_v drive_v for_o want_n of_o principle_n they_o say_v the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n be_v fallible_a the_o father_n be_v fallible_a all_o condemn_a heretic_n be_v fallible_a they_o themselves_o be_v fallible_a thus_o much_o suppose_v tell_v i_o i_o beseech_v you_o by_o what_o probable_a principle_n can_v they_o so_o much_o as_o seem_o show_v that_o either_o they_o interpret_v scripture_n better_o than_o we_o or_o that_o any_o of_o we_o all_o ever_o yet_o arrive_v to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o in_o controvert_v best_a if_o all_o be_v fallible_a by_o what_o principle_n can_v sectary_n prove_v their_o interpretation_n to_o be_v the_o best_a matter_n which_o yet_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o we_o can_v have_v no_o true_a faith_n without_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n you_o know_v if_o the_o blind_a lead_v the_o blind_a there_o be_v no_o safe_a conduct_n and_o if_o the_o fallible_a man_n guide_v the_o fallible_a both_o may_v mistake_v their_o way_n and_o err_v gross_o you_o will_v have_v no_o answer_n return_v to_o this_o difficulty_n but_o sectary_n fancy_n and_o fancy_n only_o scripture_n or_o show_v that_o any_o have_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n 10._o some_o may_v reply_v protestant_n have_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n as_o clear_a as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v please_v to_o write_v they_o in_o fundamental_o as_o also_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n at_o least_o for_o those_o fundamental_o they_o wave_v other_o by-passage_n of_o scripture_n and_o care_v not_o much_o sectary_n a_o reply_n of_o sectary_n whether_o their_o interpretation_n be_v right_a or_o wrong_n i_o answer_v first_o to_o say_v nothing_o of_o many_o other_o they_o difficulty_n they_o can_v wave_v all_o difficulty_n can_v wave_v one_o difficulty_n concern_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacred_a eucharist_n which_o be_v either_o a_o fundamental_a doctrine_n or_o none_o be_v both_o scripture_n and_o father_n be_v in_o this_o particular_a most_o express_o against_o they_o as_o be_v prove_v hereafter_o 11._o but_o let_v this_o pass_v i_o answer_v 2._o we_o have_v as_o good_a scripture_n as_o sectary_n can_v lay_v claim_n to_o in_o every_o point_n which_o they_o call_v fundamental_a and_o with_o it_o the_o superior_a in_o fundamental_o we_o be_v at_o least_o equal_a and_o in_o controvert_v matter_n far_o superior_a consent_n of_o father_n also_o in_o other_o controvert_v matter_n we_o own_o the_o same_o scripture_n they_o own_o and_o moreover_o have_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o declare_v by_o this_o long_a stand_a church_n wherein_o we_o infinite_o surpass_v they_o speak_v therefore_o of_o matter_n out_o of_o controversy_n or_o wherein_o all_o agree_v we_o be_v at_o least_o equal_a with_o they_o and_o for_o other_o in_o controversy_n
because_o the_o church_n stand_v for_o we_o there_o it_o no_o authority_n allegeable_a contrary_n to_o the_o church_n can_v be_v comparable_a to_o it_o can_v be_v no_o competition_n unless_o they_o render_v our_o church_n testimony_n of_o no_o force_n by_o substitute_v a_o great_a in_o its_o place_n for_o their_o sense_n which_o be_v impossible_a alas_o they_o want_v principle_n to_o go_v about_o such_o a_o work_n and_o therefore_o must_v reduce_v all_o they_o talk_v against_o we_o to_o fancy_n only_o 12._o what_o i_o will_v say_v here_o may_v perhaps_o be_v more_o clear_o express_v thus._n if_o sectary_n have_v plain_a scripture_n for_o fundamental_o we_o have_v it_o also_o and_o take_v along_o with_o it_o those_o father_n they_o admit_v of_o if_o in_o spirit_n judgement_n against_o judgement_n spirit_n against_o spirit_n other_o matter_n now_o in_o controversy_n they_o rely_v on_o their_o private_a judgement_n when_o they_o interpret_v scripture_n our_o judgement_n that_o be_v opposite_a be_v to_o say_v no_o more_o as_o good_a as_o they_o if_o they_o plead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n work_v in_o they_o we_o may_v set_v our_o spirit_n against_o they_o and_o ask_v whether_n better_a thus_o far_o we_o stand_v most_o evident_o upon_o equal_a term_n with_o they_o now_o be_v please_v to_o observe_v what_o i_o say_v they_o have_v not_o one_o plain_a text_n of_o scripture_n nor_o one_o plain_a testimony_n of_o any_o council_n or_o ancient_a father_n whereby_o they_o can_v so_o much_o as_o probably_n offer_v to_o prove_v that_o fancy_n protestant_n have_v nothing_o for_o their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o fancy_n the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n own_v by_o catholic_n be_v erroneous_a in_o point_n debate_v between_o we_o and_o beside_o the_o judgement_n of_o innumerable_a father_n we_o have_v also_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o whole_a learned_a church_n that_o approve_v our_o sense_n they_o have_v neither_o church_n nor_o scripture_n nor_o council_n nor_o father_n for_o they_o let_v therefore_o the_o world_n judge_n how_o far_o they_o be_v from_o convince_a our_o sense_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v erroneous_a by_o any_o know_v or_o receive_v principle_n unless_o their_o fancy_n enter_v in_o and_o pass_v for_o a_o proof_n which_o we_o utter_o reject_v you_o will_v say_v if_o in_o all_o controvert_v matter_n we_o make_v so_o much_o of_o church_n esteem_v why_o church_n authority_n be_v to_o be_v high_o esteem_v authority_n there_o be_v no_o dispute_v against_o we_o for_o the_o church_n will_v ever_o stand_v for_o its_o own_o doctrine_n i_o answer_v and_o if_o we_o value_v not_o of_o it_o so_o high_o but_o admit_v of_o our_o sectary_n gloss_n upon_o their_o bare_a word_n we_o be_v worse_o than_o mad_a when_o it_o be_v evident_a they_o can_v prove_v that_o sense_n to_o be_v erroneous_a by_o a_o strong_a principle_n than_o our_o church_n authority_n be_v that_o deny_v the_o error_n the_o church_n therefore_o fortify_v with_o most_o solid_a proof_n draw_v from_o scripture_n council_n father_n and_o tradition_n most_o just_o stand_v for_o it●s_n own_o interpretation_n and_o hence_o i_o say_v impertinency_n whatever_o sectary_n can_v allege_v against_o it_o will_v show_v itself_o a_o impertinency_n though_o cavil_n may_v be_v raise_v there_o be_v no_o rational_a dispute_v against_o it_o you_o have_v the_o reason_n hereof_o already_o because_o what_o ever_o sectary_n can_v lay_v hold_v on_o like_o a_o principle_n or_o that_o whereby_o they_o may_v attempt_v to_o prove_v the_o catholic_n interpretation_n false_o will_v appear_v more_o than_o feeble_a to_o stand_v against_o the_o long_a stand_a authority_n of_o this_o one_o holy_a and_o catholic_n church_n but_o of_o this_o subject_n more_o afterward_o in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n 13._o and_o thus_o much_o of_o our_o protestant_n strange_a unsettle_a religion_n and_o vndeniable_a apostasy_n both_o from_o church_n and_o scripture_n we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o next_o discourse_n how_o they_o recede_v from_o reason_n also_o in_o pass_v be_v please_v to_o take_v these_o few_o consideration_n along_o with_o you_o 14._o a_o religion_n destitute_a of_o all_o appearance_n of_o any_o ancient_a religion_n a_o recapitulation_n of_o the_o enormity_n of_o protestant_a religion_n church_n to_o side_n and_o symbolize_v with_o as_o protestant_n most_o evident_o be_v their_o recours_fw-fr to_o the_o three_o of_o four_o first_o age_n be_v ignotum_fw-la per_fw-la ignotius_fw-la and_o no_o less_o and_o vnproved_a than_o a_o suppose_a whimsy_n a_o religion_n which_o have_v not_o one_o syllable_n of_o scripture_n for_o it_o as_o it_o be_v evident_a man_n of_o this_o profession_n have_v not_o and_o because_o they_o ever_o glory_v in_o scripture-proof_n i_o be_o force_v to_o tell_v they_o they_o can_v produce_v one_o text_n for_o protestancy_n without_o their_o fallible_a gloss_n if_o i_o wrong_v their_o cause_n let_v they_o speak_v out_o and_o shame_v i_o i_o will_v suffer_v the_o affront_n yet_o fear_v it_o not_o but_o remember_v i_o call_v for_o plain_a scripture_n a_o religion_n which_o never_o yet_o have_v one_o general_n council_n to_o confirm_v it_o no_o universal_a tradition_n to_o warrant_n it_o not_o one_o professor_n before_o luther_n to_o own_o it_o a_o religion_n which_o hold_v the_o belief_n of_o all_o christian_n to_o have_v be_v fall_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o and_o the_o prelate_n mislead_v by_o error_n who_o teach_v christian_n for_o so_o vast_a a_o time_n a_o religion_n who_o professor_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o reform_v other_o before_o they_o find_v their_o own_o pretend_a reformation_n arrive_v to_o any_o shadow_n of_o perfection_n who_o espy_v error_n in_o a_o church_n never_o discover_v erroneous_a by_o thousand_o more_o ancient_a and_o learned_a than_o they._n a_o religion_n which_o have_v the_o very_a look_n of_o haeresy_n turn_v it_o which_o way_n you_o will_v which_o oppose_v all_o man_n and_o be_v oppose_v by_o the_o rest_n of_o christian_n which_o be_v settle_v on_o no_o other_o ground_n but_o the_o bare_a vnproved_a word_n of_o those_o vncommission_v man_n that_o teach_v it_o which_o change_v every_o year_n and_o have_v no_o seem_a principle_n for_o a_o ground_n of_o constancy_n not_o one_o motive_n to_o make_v it_o rational_o credible_a such_o a_o religion_n i_o say_v dishonour_v god_n injure_v jesus_n christ_n seduce_v poor_a soul_n and_o as_o unworthy_o as_o weak_o stand_v out_o against_o that_o ancient_n roman_n catholic_n church_n which_o be_v every_o way_n blameless_a unless_o faulty_a in_o this_o that_o it_o make_v protestant_n their_o progenitor_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n christian_n if_o i_o here_o overlash_n in_o assert_v too_o much_o let_v our_o adversary_n come_v close_o to_o any_o one_o particular_a and_o vouchsafe_v fair_o and_o rational_o to_o make_v my_o error_n know_v the_o third_z discourse_n of_o the_o unreasonable_a procede_v of_o protestant_n in_o some_o chief_n handle_v point_n of_o controversy_n be_v please_v to_o observe_v what_o i_o shall_v note_v hereafter_o you_o shall_v ever_o find_v our_o sectary_n either_o skulk_a in_o generality_n or_o suppose_v what_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v or_o word_v it_o by_o scripture_n misinterpret_v or_o final_o make_v controversy_n endless_a without_o appeal_n to_o any_o other_o judge_n but_o themselves_o the_o first_o chapter_n protestant_n be_v unreasonable_a whilst_o they_o seem_o hold_v a_o catholic_n church_n distinct_a from_o the_o roman_a neither_o know_v nor_o designable_a by_o any_o 1._o this_o be_v a_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o be_v luther_n sectary_n be_v require_v to_o point_n at_o a_o catholic_n church_n before_o luther_n so_o three_o day_n before_o luther_n desert_v the_o roman_a faith_n my_o humble_a suit_n be_v that_o our_o new_a man_n will_v plea_n by_o a_o plain_a designation_n i_o ask_v not_o for_o a_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n to_o point_v i_o out_o the_o true_a church_n which_o then_o be_v or_o now_o be_v holy_a and_o catholic_n protestant_n as_o i_o here_o suppose_v be_v not_o then_o visible_a in_o the_o world_n there_o be_v it_o be_v true_a arian_n pelagian_o abyssins_n grecian_n and_o perhaps_o some_o remainder_n of_o donatist_n with_o other_o heretic_n whether_o more_o or_o few_o true_a know_a heretic_n constitute_v not_o the_o catholic_n church_n yet_o the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n be_v then_o true_a it_o import's_n not_o to_o our_o present_a question_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o some_o christian_n then_o live_v unanimous_o profess_v their_o belief_n in_o a_o holy_a catholic_n church_n my_o demand_n therefore_o be_v whether_o that_o believe_v article_n be_v then_o true_a or_o falso_n if_o fall_v for_o want_v of_o a_o true_a catholic_n church_n speak_v out_o plain_o and_o say_v that_o christian_n believe_v a_o church_n which_o then_o real_o be_v not_o in_o be_v if_o true_a the_o then_o holy_a catholic_n
assent_n and_o with_o like_a faith_n the_o centre_n of_o faith_n reverence_n upon_o this_o motive_n of_o god_n reveal_v word_n true_a christian_a faith_n rely_v mille_fw-la clypei_fw-la pendent_fw-la ex_fw-la eâ_fw-la omnis_fw-la armatura_fw-la fortium_fw-la here_o they_o meet_v together_o concentred_a as_o it_o be_v in_o this_o one_o vndeceived_a and_o undeceive_a verity_n do_v i_o therefore_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v word_n we_o believe_v all_o ●like_a upon_o god_n word_n the_o true_a messiah_n because_o god_n say_v it_o i_o must_v also_o believe_v baptism_n the_o eucharist_n and_o other_o reveal_v truth_n when_o after_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n i_o know_v that_o the_o same_o god_n speak_v them_o for_o if_o his_o word_n prevail_v with_o i_o to_o credit_v he_o in_o the_o one_o it_o be_v as_o powerful_a and_o press_v to_o force_v as_o i_o may_v say_v faith_n from_o i_o in_o the_o other_o a_o further_a reason_n be_v because_o a_o reason_n another_o reason_n right_a act_n of_o faith_n settle_v on_o this_o motive_n be_v a_o virtual_a and_o implicit_a belief_n not_o of_o one_o article_n but_o of_o all_o other_o which_o the_o motive_n own_v his_o or_o vphold_n you_o see_v therefore_o none_o can_v true_o believe_v in_o christ_n who_o deny_v the_o least_o verity_n sufficient_o propose_v that_o god_n reveal_v for_o as_o the_o true_a belief_n of_o one_o article_n imply_v a_o belief_n of_o all_o so_o ●●ll_v believe_v all_o ●●_o none_o at_o ●●ll_v the_o denial_n of_o one_o imply_v a_o denial_n of_o all_o other_o and_o thus_o christian_a faith_n consist_v in_o indivisibili_fw-la and_o be_v either_o whole_o have_v or_o whole_o lose_v which_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n why_o protestant_n have_v no_o faith_n and_o must_v jumble_v as_o they_o do_v fundamental's_n why_o protestant_n have_v no_o faith_n and_o stagger_v in_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v fundamental's_n in_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o essential_o of_o it_o and_o final_o have_v never_o yet_o discover_v nor_o shall_v hereafter_o if_o we_o seclude_v the_o roman_a any_o thing_n like_o a_o catholic_n church_n before_o luther_n 5._o for_o these_o reason_n now_o allege_v perhaps_o some_o will_v say_v that_o after_o a_o belief_n in_o christ_n and_o a_o general_n own_v of_o scripture_n we_o must_v descend_v to_o more_o particular_n purpose_n a_o reply_n to_o little_a purpose_n and_o explicit_o assent_v to_o all_o that_o express_v scripture_n plain_o deliver_v and_o we_o will_v adhere_v to_o the_o very_a word_n without_o dispute_n if_o we_o do_v so_o we_o admit_v of_o all_o that_o god_n clear_o reveal_n and_o take_v it_o upon_o his_o authority_n without_o interpretation_n answer_n here_o be_v a_o fair_a promise_n of_o nothing_o for_o plain_o who_o can_v tell_v when_o scripture_n speak_v plain_o who_o can_v assure_v we_o without_o dispute_n when_o scripture_n speak_v s_z plain_o both_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n dissent_n in_o this_o very_a principle_n those_o say_v it_o speak_v plain_o for_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n sacred_a body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o a_o priest_n dispute_n the_o matter_n still_o in_o dispute_n for_o justification_n by_o good_a work_n for_o extream-vnction_n for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n these_o deny_v all_o and_o do_v what_o we_o can_v to_o hinder_v they_o will_v upon_o their_o own_o fancy_n force_v into_o god_n word_n certain_a violent_a gloss_n which_o god_n never_o speak_v you_o see_v therefore_o that_o when_o we_o descend_v to_o the_o particular_a expression_n of_o scripture_n concern_v the_o particular_a doctrine_n of_o it_o we_o be_v at_o a_o stand_n and_o can_v go_v forward_o for_o sectary_n will_v have_v no_o judge_n on_o earth_n to_o appeal_v to_o in_o these_o doubt_n if_o they_o say_v the_o ancient_a etc._n a_o judge_n necessary_a to_o determine_v etc._n etc._n church_n shall_v judge_v we_o be_v as_o i_o tell_v you_o as_o far_o from_o home_n as_o before_o and_o as_o much_o differ_v about_o the_o sentiment_n of_o that_o church_n as_o we_o do_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o thus_o it_o ever_o fall_v out_o endless_a otherwise_o controversy_n be_v endless_a either_o we_o must_v drive_a controversy_n between_o we_o to_o endless_a quarrel_n or_o yield_v to_o what_o our_o protestant_n say_v or_o final_o commiserate_v their_o sad_a condition_n because_o they_o will_v not_o acquiesce_v in_o a_o judge_n upon_o earth_n that_o as_o well_o ascertain_n u_fw-mi of_o the_o mean_v as_o it_o do_v of_o the_o very_a book_n of_o scripture_n without_o this_o judge_n we_o may_v contract_v to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o never_o be_v wise_a 6._o you_o see_v this_o plain_o in_o that_o instance_n propose_v above_o out_o of_o st._n hierom._n for_o according_a to_o plain_a scripture_n if_o one_o strike_v we_o on_o the_o right_a cheek_n we_o must_v turn_v to_o he_o the_o other_o also_o we_o be_v to_o abstain_v from_o eat_v of_o blood_n and_o thing_n strangle_v we_o be_v not_o to_o have_v two_o coat_n nor_o carry_v money_n with_o we_o etc._n etc._n none_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o god_n speak_v these_o verity_n although_o they_o seem_v light_n to_o we_o buthow_v to_o understand_v they_o be_v to_o be_v learn_v from_o some_o infallible_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n which_o word_n scripture_n obscure_a when_o seem_o clear_a in_o word_n protestant_n reject_v when_o all_o know_v that_o very_o often_o where_o scripture_n seem_v clear_a in_o word_n there_o it_o be_v more_o deep_a in_o sense_n and_o most_o obscure_a chap._n iu._n the_o ambiguous_a discourse_n of_o protestant_n concern_v fundamental_o in_o faith_n be_v prove_v unreasonable_a 1._o we_o need_v not_o here_o to_o discuss_v too_o large_o this_o point_n of_o fundamental_o most_o learned_o examine_v by_o catholic_n writer_n for_o if_o we_o reflect_v well_o on_o what_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n there_o be_v enough_o say_v to_o silence_n all_o adversary_n and_o to_o satisfy_v every_o rational_a man_n doubt_n in_o this_o question_n 2._o we_o catholic_n speak_v plain_o and_o assert_v although_o a_o explicit_fw-la belief_n in_o god_n as_o a_o rewarder_n of_o good_a and_o a_o punisher_n of_o evil_n yea_o as_o some_o divine_n hold_v of_o doctrine_n the_o catholic_n doctrine_n christ_n also_o after_o the_o promulgation_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v primary_n fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n because_o necessitate_v medij_fw-la every_o one_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v they_o explicit_o yet_o withal_o we_o say_v that_o the_o least_o article_n reveal_v by_o almighty_a god_n when_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v grow_v to_o be_v so_o far_o fundamental_a that_o none_o can_v deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o it_o without_o damnable_a sin_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n there_o be_v no_o distinction_n between_o point_n fundamental_a and_o not_o fundamental_a the_o reason_n hereof_o already_o give_v rely_v upon_o this_o certain_a principle_n believe_v what_o ever_o god_n reveal_n be_v equal_o to_o be_v believe_v what_o god_n speak_v whether_o the_o material_a object_n be_v little_a or_o great_a after_o the_o charge_v lay_v on_o we_o to_o believe_v be_v to_o be_v admit_v of_o with_o equal_a certitude_n and_o reverence_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o less_o or_o more_o weight_n of_o thing_n reveal_v that_o distinguish_v faith_n submission_n to_o god_n veracity_n give_v true_a value_n to_o faith_n our_o faith_n or_o make_v it_o less_o or_o more_o valuable_a but_o that_o which_o set_z the_o true_a price_n upon_o it_o be_v the_o submission_n we_o yield_v by_o it_o to_o god_n veracity_n now_o because_o this_o veracity_n be_v one_o and_o equal_o the_o same_o in_o what_o ever_o be_v reveal_v by_o consequence_n we_o say_v that_o faith_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o that_o submission_n be_v equal_o good_a solid_a and_o valuable_a this_o i_o note_v in_o opposition_n to_o sectary_n reveal_v faith_n not_o to_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o diversity_n of_o thing_n reveal_v who_o for_o aught_o i_o can_v yet_o learn_v measure_v their_o faith_n not_o so_o much_o by_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o formal_a object_n as_o by_o the_o different_a nature_n of_o thing_n reveal_v which_o because_o consider_v in_o themselves_o they_o often_o vary_v in_o worth_n protestant_n think_v that_o the_o degree_n of_o their_o faith_n may_v answerable_o be_v less_o or_o more_o various_a according_a as_o the_o object_n require_v it_o be_v a_o error_n reason_n the_o reason_n for_o as_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o when_o god_n speak_v to_o we_o the_o high_a truth_n imaginable_a speak_v so_o it_o be_v as_o certain_a that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v by_o we_o with_o high_a respect_n and_o reverence_n whether_o the_o matter_n be_v great_a or_o small_a 3._o what_o be_v here_o say_v suppose_v a_o sufficient_a proposition_n of_o reveal_v verity_n which_o without_o doubt_n be_v not_o equal_o clear_a to_o all_o capacity_n if_o we_o descend_v to_o the_o explicit_fw-la
they_o name_v not_o the_o guilty_a person_n that_o extend_v the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n beyond_o its_o foundation_n be_v they_o catholic_n who_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n reveal_n and_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v reveal_v or_o sectary_n that_o have_v neither_o church_n nor_o scripture_n for_o any_o article_n of_o their_o protestancy_n 3._o if_o they_o hold_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o preserver_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n they_o must_v prove_v it_o by_o strong_a principle_n and_o first_o show_n positive_o by_o scripture_n that_o they_o have_v just_a so_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a and_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n before_o unity_n sectary_n who_o have_v neither_o church_n nor_o scripture_n for_o one_o word_n of_o protestancy_n most_o unreasonable_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o preserver_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n they_o make_v we_o guilty_a of_o any_o breach_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n this_o will_v be_v a_o hard_a task_n for_o if_o they_o say_v we_o break_v the_o church_n unity_n in_o believe_v a_o sacrifice_n a_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v and_o by_o plain_a scripture_n that_o either_o their_o contrary_a negative_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v or_o that_o neither_o our_o positives_n nor_o their_o negative_n merit_v a_o act_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v impossible_a for_o what_o scripture_n say_v we_o be_v neither_o to_o believe_v a_o sacrifice_n nor_o the_o contrary_a 5._o in_o the_o next_o place_n they_o come_v to_o solve_n the_o enigma_n to_o explicate_v the_o main_a subject_n of_o the_o present_a dispute_n and_o it_o be_v to_o tell_v we_o what_o those_o thing_n be_v proof_n their_o own_o say_n be_v the_o only_a proof_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v own_v by_o all_o christian_a society_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n on_o which_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n depend_v happy_a be_v they_o can_v they_o unridle_v the_o mystery_n necessary_a protestant_n can_v show_v what_o thing_n be_v necessary_a and_o say_v what_o thing_n be_v thus_o necessary_a but_o our_o author_n still_o run_v on_o in_o general_n and_o determin_n nothing_o be_v please_v to_o hear_v his_o resolution_n 6._o nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v own_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o christian_a society_n but_o such_o thing_n which_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o those_o society_n be_v antecedent_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n no_o man_n i_o think_v know_v to_o what_o that_o word_n antecedent_o relate_v nor_o can_v this_o author_n make_v sense_n of_o it_o one_o may_v guess_v what_o he_o will_v be_v at_o he_o will_v perhaps_o say_v when_o all_o christian_a impossibility_n they_o fall_v upon_o impossibility_n society_n stand_v firm_o unite_v in_o one_o judgement_n concern_v the_o be_v and_o the_o essential_o of_o a_o church_n than_o we_o be_v right_a in_o these_o essential_o answ_n but_o this_o be_v never_o yet_o see_v nor_o will_v be_v see_v as_o be_v more_o large_o declare_v chap._n 2._o n._n 1._o whither_o i_o remit_v the_o reader_n for_o further_a satisfaction_n he_o add_v two_o thing_n more_o one_o be_v there_o can_v be_v any_o reason_n give_v why_o any_o thing_n else_o shall_v be_v judge_v necessary_a to_o the_o church_n communion_n he_o mean_v not_o who_o be_v to_o judge_v he_o that_o say_v he_o dissent_v not_o in_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o all_o those_o church_n who_o do_v not_o manifest_o dissent_n from_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n be_v agree_v in_o as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o my_o god_n what_o confusion_n have_v we_o here_o where_o be_v the_o protestant_n that_o can_v assure_v we_o without_o believe_v protestant_n can_v show_v what_o the_o primitive_a church_n believe_v dispute_n what_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n positive_o believe_v and_o positive_o reject_v can_v this_o one_o point_n be_v clear_v without_o endless_a debate_n a_o better_a union_n may_v be_v hope_a for_n but_o herein_o both_o we_o and_o sectary_n dissent_n as_o be_v prove_v above_o therefore_o by_o church_n no_o appeal_n to_o the_o primitive_a church_n without_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n their_o appeal_n to_o the_o ancient_a church_n whilst_o they_o abstract_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o a_o present_a catholic_n church_n they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v ignotum_fw-la per_fw-la ignotius_fw-la and_o convince_v nothing_o 7._o they_o add_v a_o second_o consideration_n which_o may_v be_v reflect_v on_o ad_fw-la perpetuam_fw-la rei_fw-la memoriam_fw-la and_o it_o be_v to_o doctrine_n memorable_a doctrine_n this_o sense_n after_o their_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o case_n of_o great_a division_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n any_o national_a church_n may_v reform_v itself_o as_o be_v suppose_v england_n abuse_v man_n uncertain_a in_o all_o they_o say_v take_v on_o to_o teach_v wherein_o faith_n be_v abuse_v have_v do_v and_o declare_v its_o sense_n of_o those_o abuse_n in_o article_n of_o religion_n yea_o and_o require_v of_o man_n a_o subscription_n against_o those_o abuse_n etc._n etc._n they_o go_v on_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o own_v some_o proposition_n in_o order_n to_o peace_n and_o the_o believe_v of_o they_o as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n now_o mark_v what_o follow_v doctrine_n no_o orthodox_n church_n ever_o except_v against_o our_o church_n doctrine_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n impose_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v believe_v a_o most_o unproved_a assertion_n which_o article_n be_v except_v against_o by_o other_o church_n name_n the_o orthodox_n church_n that_o ever_o except_v against_o they_o it_o can_v be_v do_v but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n make_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n doctrine_n mark_v the_o doctrine_n but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o testimony_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n and_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o by_o rome_n itself_o and_o in_o other_o thing_n she_o require_v subscription_n to_o truth_n protestant_n religion_n reduce_v to_o inferior_a truth_n they_o not_o as_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o as_o inferior_a truth_n which_o she_o expect_v submission_n to_o in_o order_n to_o her_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n and_o thus_o much_o the_o late_a primate_n of_o ireland_n express_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o to_o her_o thirtynine_a article_n 8._o be_v it_o know_v to_o all_o man_n by_o these_o present_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n so_o far_o as_o it_o maintain_v these_o church_n the_o english_a church_n consist_v of_o negative_n be_v no_o church_n negative_a protestant_a article_n of_o no_o sacrifice_n no_o real_a presence_n no_o purgatory_n be_v here_o confess_o own_v to_o have_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n reveal_v by_o almighty_a god_n and_o therefore_o so_o far_o it_o be_v neither_o any_o christian_n or_o catholic_n church_n because_o these_o negative_n the_o very_a marrow_n of_o protestancy_n be_v now_o degrade_v and_o throw_v down_o from_o their_o ancient_a height_n of_o article_n to_o the_o low_a rank_n of_o a_o few_o humble_a and_o inferior_a truth_n 9_o but_o let_v we_o go_v on_o who_o assure_v you_o sir_n of_o truth_n inferior_a truth_n be_v none_o of_o god_n truth_n their_o be_v truth_n at_o all_o god_n you_o say_v that_o reveal_n nothing_o but_o most_o supreme_a truth_n own_o be_v none_o of_o them_o no_o orthodox_n church_n no_o ancient_a council_n no_o vnanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n no_o nor_o your_o own_o synod_n in_o england_n though_o without_o proof_n they_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v truth_n ever_o yet_o define_v they_o as_o you_o two_o young_a pope_n do_v doctor_n bramhal_o and_o yourself_o to_o be_v truth_n of_o a_o inferior_a rank_n and_o order_n be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v i_o be_o sure_a the_o declaration_n before_o these_o article_n say_v they_o be_v article_n of_o religion_n article_n these_o author_n clash_n with_o the_o 39_o article_n and_o contain_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n agreeable_a to_o god_n word_n if_o so_o god_n word_n be_v agreeable_a to_o these_o article_n and_o prove_v they_o again_o some_o of_o your_o own_o coat_n and_o perhaps_o as_o learned_a as_o you_o call_v they_o article_n of_o faith_n certain_o they_o truth_n these_o negative_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n be_v neither_o article_n of_o faith_n nor_o inferior_a truth_n be_v none_o of_o our_o faith_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v you_o or_o no_o body_n upon_o who_o then_o shall_v we_o rely_v for_o the_o last_o definition_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o both_o the_o assertion_n of_o their_o be_v either_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o inferior_a truth_n stand_v totter_v without_o proof_n or_o principle_n upon_o the_o sole_a fancy_n of_o those_o who_o say_v so_o 10._o 3._o if_o these_o dull_a negative_n be_v only_o vote_v for_o
peace_n among_o you_o without_o reference_n to_o your_o faith_n your_o church_n be_v essential_o hypocritical_a which_o may_v believe_v hypocritical_a the_o english_a church_n be_v essential_o hypocritical_a one_o thing_n and_o must_v profess_v a_o other_o i_o now_o say_v no_o more_o have_v tell_v you_o enough_o to_o this_o sense_n in_o another_o place_n though_o all_o the_o protestant_n in_o england_n do_v not_o only_a dissent_n in_o judgement_n from_o the_o own_n of_o these_o faith_n protestant_n may_v curse_v these_o negative_a article_n and_o yet_o besound_v in_o faith_n negative_n though_o they_o be_v plain_a papist_n in_o hart_n yea_o and_o interior_o curse_v and_o anathematise_v all_o your_o new_a article_n if_o the_o exterior_a demeanour_n be_v fair_o good_a all_o be_v fine_a they_o may_v be_v still_o look_v on_o as_o bless_a child_n of_o your_o new_a negative_a church_n the_o sequel_n be_v undeniable_a for_o they_o may_v believe_v all_o that_o scripture_n say_v and_o this_o be_v faith_n enough_o to_o salvation_n and_o yet_o anathematise_v your_o negative_n not_o at_o all_o contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o whole_o unnecessary_a to_o salvation_n 11._o yet_o far_o you_o protestant_n endless_o talk_v sectary_n a_o hard_a question_n propose_v to_o sectary_n of_o reform_v we_o papist_n by_o scripture_n speak_v once_o plain_o and_o tell_v we_o how_o can_v you_o go_v about_o such_o a_o work_n as_o to_o reclaim_v we_o by_o scripture_n to_o a_o belief_n of_o your_o negative_n when_o you_o have_v not_o one_o syllable_n of_o god_n word_n for_o they_o for_o if_o you_o have_v scripture_n they_o be_v superior_a truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n and_o consequent_o article_n of_o faith_n if_o you_o have_v no_o scripture_n why_o preach_v you_o fall_v doctrine_n why_o teach_v you_o that_o you_o can_v draw_v we_o from_o our_o old_a faith_n to_o your_o new_a negative_a religion_n by_o plain_a scripture_n no_o protestant_a shall_v answer_v to_o answer_v it_o can_v be_v answer_v this_o short_a demand_n 4._o you_o cheat_v the_o world_n when_o you_o offer_v to_o resolve_v protestant_n faith_n which_o be_v no_o more_o resolvable_a into_o divine_a revelation_n than_o arianism_n cheat._n protestant_n resolve_v faith_n a_o mere_a cheat._n be_v because_o you_o must_v now_o confess_v that_o god_n never_o speak_v word_n of_o protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n in_o the_o whole_a bible_n let_v therefore_o the_o world_n judge_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o a_o pure_a cheat_n to_o give_v a_o title_n of_o the_o protestant_n way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n and_o then_o leave_v that_o which_o the_o title_n promise_v to_o talk_v of_o resolve_v a_o faith_n in_o communi_fw-la which_o stand_v in_o no_o need_n of_o your_o resolution_n 12._o to_o see_v this_o more_o evidence_v and_o to_o end_v with_o these_o mere_a nothing_o of_o sectary_n our_o now_o author_n tell_v we_o we_o that_o the_o english_a church_n make_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o testimony_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n yes_o and_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o rome_n etc._n protestant_n church_n no_o more_o a_o church_n then_o a_o arian_n etc._n etc._n itself_o if_o this_o be_v so_o it_o be_v no_o more_o a_o english_a than_o a_o church_n of_o arian_n of_o pelagian_o and_o of_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n for_o this_o man_n will_v say_v that_o a_o faith_n common_a to_o all_o call_v christian_n without_o believe_v more_o be_v the_o english_a faith_n and_o sufficient_a to_o acquire_v heaven_n mark_v the_o proposition_n and_o ask_v first_o what_o be_v now_o become_v of_o the_o christian_n the_o arian_n and_o english_a faith_n agree_v in_o doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n protestant_n way_n of_o resolve_v protestant_n faith_n next_o and_o most_o just_o call_v it_o a_o mere_a fancy_n a_o new_a coin_a haeresy_n contrary_a to_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n for_o neither_o scripture_n nor_o council_n nor_o father_n nor_o any_o particular_a orthodox_n or_o haeretical_a church_n much_o less_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n own_v the_o belief_n of_o that_o abstract_a doctrine_n wherein_o all_o heretic_n agree_v to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n all._n a_o new_a coin_a haeresy_n contrary_a to_o all._n the_o whole_a christian_a world_n never_o yet_o say_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n abstract_v from_o his_o godhead_n and_o two_o nature_n be_v sufficient_a catholic_n hold_v the_o belief_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n as_o arian_n monothelit_n only_o no_o heretic_n much_o less_o catholic_n ever_o yet_o defend_v what_o our_o sectary_n here_o vent_v upon_o fancy_n only_o and_o other_o as_o firm_o adhere_v to_o their_o particular_a heresy_n as_o to_o the_o abstract_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n otherwise_o they_o have_v be_v worse_a than_o mad_a to_o have_v abandon_v a_o ancient_a church_n for_o a_o few_o suppose_a inferior_a truth_n which_o neither_o can_v vncatholick_n any_o if_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n be_v enough_o nor_o make_v they_o in_o reaelity_n worse_a or_o better_a christian_n and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n you_o see_v the_o hideous_a sin_n of_o sectary_n who_o mere_o for_o a_o company_n of_o inferior_a truth_n if_o yet_o they_o be_v truth_n have_v shameful_o deserted_n the_o true_a mother_n church_n that_o make_v their_o progenitour_n truth_n the_o sin_n of_o sectary_n who_o have_v trouble_v ●_o the_o world_n for_o a_o company_n of_o suppose_a inferior_a truth_n to_o be_v christian_n i_o say_v if_o they_o be_v truth_n for_o i_o utter_o deny_v the_o fall_v supposition_n and_o therefore_o press_v our_o adversary_n to_o speak_v to_o the_o cause_n that_o be_v to_o come_v to_o proof_n and_o principle_n whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o these_o negative_a doctrine_n no_o sacrifice_n no_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n merit_v so_o much_o as_o the_o very_a name_n of_o inferior_a truth_n these_o negative_n can_v be_v prove_v even_o by_o their_o wont_a weak_a way_n of_o argue_v negative_o we_o read_v not_o of_o a_o sacrifice_n or_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o read_v antiquity_n but_o he_o find'_v these_o doctrine_n positive_o assert_v 13._o from_o what_o be_v now_o say_v these_o sequels_fw-fr undeniable_o follow_v first_o that_o protestant_n can_v resolve_v reason_n protestant_n faith_n but_o fancy_n the_o reason_n their_o faith_n but_o into_o fancy_n only_o for_o if_o they_o make_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n only_o to_o be_v their_o sufficient_a faith_n for_o salvation_n and_o resolve_v that_o into_o its_o principle_n both_o fancy_n and_o haeresy_n lie_v at_o the_o very_a bottom_n of_o the_o resolution_n and_o if_o they_o go_v about_o to_o resolve_v their_o negative_a article_n the_o whole_a analysis_n the_o regress_n the_o reduction_n of_o they_o will_v come_v at_o last_o to_o no_o other_o principle_n but_o to_o the_o sole_a fancy_n of_o sectary_n who_o call_v they_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o inferior_a truth_n it_o follow_v 2._o if_o the_o english_a church_n make_v world_n the_o english_a church_n contradict_v the_o whole_a christian_n world_n no_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n exclude_v other_o it_o do_v not_o only_o contradict_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n who_o particular_a community_n own_v the_o belief_n of_o more_o doctrine_n necessary_a but_o have_v neither_o all_o and_o therefore_o have_v no_o faith_n at_o all_o faith_n of_o those_o abstract_a article_n now_o believe_v nor_o any_o faith_n at_o all_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n as_o be_v large_o prove_v in_o the_o 2._o chap._n if_o final_o to_o assoil_v these_o difficulty_n sectary_n will_v restrain_v that_o ample_a term_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n to_o their_o imagine_a catholic_n church_n in_o the_o air_n they_o be_v to_o specify_v the_o particular_a society_n of_o this_o vast_a church_n and_o when_o that_o be_v don_n they_o will_v find_v no_o abstract_a doctrine_n common_a to_o salvation_n there_o never_o have_v be_v haeresy_n in_o the_o world_n may_v faith_n common_a to_o all_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n all_o christian_n admit_v of_o by_o any_o sufficient_a to_o gain_v heaven_n for_o be_v this_o true_a there_o have_v never_o be_v heretic_n or_o schismatic_n in_o the_o world_n whilst_o christ_n only_o though_o his_o divinity_n be_v deny_v be_v own_v in_o a_o general_a way_n whereof_o more_o in_o the_o 3._o chap._n 14._o here_o i_o will_v only_o propose_v one_o question_n to_o our_o adversary_n when_o they_o positive_o teach_v that_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n give_v his_o apostle_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o priest_n now_o consecrate_v daily_o be_v and_o be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o sign_n a_o figure_n only_o of_o christ_n body_n my_o question_n
inconsequent_a proceed_v of_o protestant_n who_o must_v trust_v our_o church_n for_o the_o handing_z down_o to_o they_o god_n write_v word_n consequence_n sectary_n ill_a consequence_n whilst_o most_o unreasonable_o they_o reject_v her_o authority_n when_o she_o declare_v what_o the_o unwritten_a word_n be_v i_o say_v most_o unreasonable_a for_o if_o it_o can_v deceive_v in_o this_o late_a it_o may_v as_o well_o have_v deceive_v christian_n in_o the_o first_o and_o give_v they_o false_a scripture_n whereof_o see_v more_o in_o the_o second_o discourse_n 6._o it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v another_o way_n of_o define_v asseveration_n another_o way_n call_v by_o divine_n asseveration_n call_v by_o some_o divine_v asseveratio_fw-la or_o the_o assert_v of_o a_o truth_n not_o so_o explicit_o at_o least_o believe_v before_o as_o when_o the_o church_n define_v against_o open_a heretic_n what_o be_v antecedent_o of_o faith_n and_o herein_o the_o church_n proceed_v not_o so_o much_o upon_o a_o previous_a know_a act_n of_o faith_n as_o upon_o the_o general_a own_a principle_n of_o catholic_n belief_n whereunto_o theological_n discourse_v draw_v from_o sound_a divinity_n and_o other_o principle_n partly_o evident_a and_o partly_o in_o a_o high_a measure_n moral_o certain_a have_v access_n and_o be_v most_o prudent_o join_v not_o that_o the_o definition_n in_o itself_o rely_v on_o those_o low_a principle_n but_o on_o god_n gracious_a assistance_n ever_o with_o his_o church_n in_o the_o delivery_n of_o truth_n however_o providence_n will_v have_v this_o way_n follow_v as_o a_o usual_a and_o necessary_a condition_n because_o man_n of_o reason_n in_o so_o weighty_a matter_n be_v not_o as_o sectary_n do_v to_o define_v at_o random_n but_o industrious_o to_o use_v reason_n and_o proceed_v on_o rational_a principle_n but_o this_o belong_v more_o to_o divinity_n then_o to_o controversy_n for_o i_o think_v the_o church_n never_o yet_o define_v any_o thing_n against_o heretic_n that_o be_v not_o antecedent_o a_o know_a and_o own_a truth_n of_o faith_n though_o not_o so_o full_o express_v as_o it_o often_o be_v by_o the_o church_n clear_a proposition_n thus_o we_o say_v the_o real_a doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n etc._n the_o real_a doctrine_n of_o transubstantiaton_n as_o old_a as_o that_o of_o the_o trinity_n etc._n etc._n be_v as_o old_a as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n with_o his_o eternal_a father_n though_o the_o word_n express_v these_o mystery_n more_o significant_o and_o clear_o be_v of_o a_o late_a date_n 7._o now_o to_o the_o objection_n and_o one_o hint_v at_o above_o be_v the_o church_n be_v solid_o found_v in_o the_o objection_n a_o objection_n apostle_n time_n in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n therefore_o these_o post-nate_a definition_n of_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o confirm_v this_o our_o young_a antagonist_n ask_v whether_o the_o apostolical_a declaration_n of_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a lose_v of_o apostolical_a declaration_n lose_v faith_n be_v lose_v in_o the_o intermediate_v age_n or_o no_o if_o not_o lose_v show_v they_o say_v he_o and_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o new_a definition_n if_o they_o be_v lose_v in_o their_o passage_n down_o the_o church_n now_o want_v they_o and_o therefore_o can_v define_v nothing_o be_v the_o play_n worth_a the_o candle_n i_o may_v here_o demand_v of_o protestant_n whether_o their_o declare_v sense_n this_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n add_v retort_v be_v retort_v to_o christ_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o sense_n they_o suppose_v to_o be_v apostolical_a be_v lose_v in_o the_o intermediate_v age_n or_o no_o if_o not_o lose_v show_v we_o that_o apostolical_a declaration_n and_o it_o be_v enough_o but_o this_o be_v impossible_a if_o it_o be_v lose_v or_o rather_o never_o in_o be_v how_o dare_v sectary_n make_v such_o a_o declaration_n on_o their_o own_o head_n without_o produce_v the_o apostle_n warrant_v i_o answer_v always_o the_o answer_n the_o church_n be_v solid_o found_v as_o it_o be_v now_o that_o which_o be_v sufficient_a in_o one_o age_n serve_v not_o always_o brief_o to_o the_o objection_n the_o church_n then_o be_v solid_o found_v just_a as_o it_o be_v now_o the_o doctrine_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o every_o article_n of_o it_o be_v ever_o and_o be_v now_o still_o either_o explicit_o or_o implicit_o believe_v yet_o these_o new_a declaration_n be_v necessary_a because_o the_o proposition_n of_o a_o doctrine_n sufficient_a in_o one_o time_n or_o age_n serve_v not_o for_o all_o time_n and_o age_n when_o new_a difficulty_n occur_v and_o heresy_n rise_v up_o against_o it_o the_o church_n therefore_o ever_o vigilant_a and_o desirous_a to_o quiet_v all_o speak_v again_o more_o clear_o the_o old_a receive_a verity_n causeless_o too_o often_o bogle_v at_o by_o sectary_n i_o say_v more_o clear_o for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o assert_v such_o a_o verity_n be_v not_o at_o all_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o in_o the_o ancient_n deposit_v declaration_n different_a circumstance_n require_v clear_a and_o more_o ample_a declaration_n doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o another_o to_o say_v it_o be_v so_o clear_o there_o that_o in_o order_n to_o we_o and_o different_a circumstance_n it_o need_v not_o at_o all_o a_o further_a declaration_n sectary_n continual_o declare_v their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n for_o they_o have_v no_o other_o deposit_v apostolical_a doctrine_n to_o talk_v of_o and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o church_n authorize_v by_o christ_n with_o better_a reason_n do_v so_o too_o to_o what_o be_v add_v to_o help_n on_o the_o objection_n i_o have_v answer_v preserve_v deposit_v doctrine_n follow_v the_o church_n through_o all_o age_n be_v secure_o preserve_v the_o deposit_v doctrine_n oral_o deliver_v without_o writing_n be_v not_o lose_v but_o still_o remain_n in_o the_o church_n treasury_n it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v handed_z down_z from_o age_n to_o age_n and_o inseparable_o accompany_v the_o church_n through_o all_o age_n yea_o and_o be_v keep_v there_o though_o not_o in_o chist_n or_o coffer_n as_o secure_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v engrave_v in_o brass_n or_o marble_n and_o sectary_n must_v say_v thus_o much_o this._n sectary_n must_v grant_v this._n if_o they_o own_o scripture_n for_o god_n word_n for_o be_v not_o they_o now_o as_o well_o assure_v upon_o the_o church_n testimony_n or_o unwritten_a tradition_n that_o st._n johns_n gospel_n be_v indict_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o if_o the_o church_n produce_v a_o handwriting_n to_o evidence_n that_o verity_n yes_o most_o assure_o whoever_o therefore_o dare_v call_v into_o frivolous_a their_o urge_n for_o a_o hand_n write_v of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v prove_v frivolous_a question_n the_o church_n authority_n assert_v a_o doctrine_n though_o it_o produce_v no_o manual_a write_n for_o it_o may_v as_o easy_o doubt_v if_o it_o show_v you_o one_o whether_o that_o very_o exhibit_v evidence_n be_v authentical_a or_o no._n let_v we_o only_o imagine_v that_o the_o apostle_n that_o write_v the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v exact_o set_v down_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n which_o the_o church_n now_o receive_v let_v we_o suppose_v again_o that_o very_a copy_n to_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o some_o pious_a christian_n live_v in_o those_o day_n authority_n no_o hand-writing_n distinct_a from_o scripture_n be_v comparable_a to_o the_o church_n own_o authority_n and_o so_o long_o preserve_v until_o after_o heretic_n exclude_v from_o the_o canon_n such_o and_o such_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o luther_n late_o do_v st._n james_n epistle_n both_o they_o and_o luther_n might_n more_o rational_o have_v doubt_v of_o that_o very_a write_a instrument_n than_o any_o can_v now_o doubt_v of_o a_o whole_a church_n authority_n own_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v no_o charter_n therefore_o no_o write_a instrument_n though_o once_o true_o make_v when_o the_o author_n be_v go_v can_v parallel_v the_o church_n testimony_n in_o what_o it_o assert_n the_o reason_n the_o reason_n reason_n be_v because_o a_o manuscript_n only_o tell_v we_o you_v what_o it_o contain_v but_o not_o who_o it_o be_v and_o though_o it_o do_v so_o man_n may_v yet_o question_v the_o forgery_n of_o it_o unless_o a_o authority_n beyond_o exception_n extrinsical_a to_o the_o writing_n take_v away_o all_o fear_n of_o cozenage_n and_o make_v it_o undoubted_a manuscript_n tradition_n sure_a than_o any_o manuscript_n this_o reason_n prove_v tradition_n necessary_a in_o the_o church_n as_o well_o for_o the_o own_n of_o scripture_n as_o other_o verity_n 8._o i_o have_v say_v thus_o much_o to_o show_v how_o near_o to_o a_o piece_n of_o nonsense_n our_o adversary_n draw_v when_o to_o cancel_v the_o late_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n they_o urge_v we_o to_o produce_v the_o old_a apostolical_a declaration_n whereby_o
these_o late_a definition_n be_v prove_v authentic_a can_v you_o imagine_v what_o they_o will_v be_v at_o will_v what_o these_o man_n will_v have_v they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o have_v a_o authentic_a attestation_n to_o prove_v what_o the_o church_n have_v define_v ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v the_o ancient_a apostolical_a doctrine_n the_o church_n tell_v we_o they_o it_o be_v so_o but_o that_o be_v not_o enough_o will_v they_o have_v a_o register_n distinct_a from_o the_o church_n declaration_n contain_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o apostolical_a doctrine_n yes_o sure_a this_o they_o seek_v for_o if_o their_o demand_n of_o have_v the_o apostle_n declaration_n show_v they_o carry_v sense_n with_o it_o for_o example_n we_o must_v show_v they_o by_o some_o write_a record_n more_o ancient_a than_o all_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o the_o apostle_n hold_v a_o purgatory_n transubstantiation_n a_o sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n or_o at_o least_o prove_v these_o doctrine_n to_o be_v ground_v on_o ●ndoubted_a receive_a tradition_n i_o have_v answer_v suppose_v the_o roman_n catholic_n confute_v they_o be_v clear_o confute_v church_n and_o here_o we_o speak_v of_o no_o other_o for_o i_o hope_v sectary_n will_v not_o urge_v we_o to_o show_v they_o writing_n receive_v from_o ancient_a heretic_n shall_v produce_v a_o record_n contain_v a_o summary_n of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n our_o adversary_n may_v more_o just_o except_v against_o that_o as_o a_o old_a unproved_a legend_n than_o they_o be_v now_o able_a rational_o to_o except_v against_o the_o church_n definition_n because_o such_o a_o imagine_a record_n must_v either_o be_v approve_v by_o as_o great_a a_o authority_n as_o the_o church_n be_v to_o gain_v it_o credit_v or_o by_o a_o great_a there_o can_v be_v a_o great_a in_o this_o present_a state_n of_o thing_n than_o the_o church_n own_o authority_n but_o sectary_n reject_v this_o authority_n when_o the_o churck_n define_v therefore_o they_o will_v much_o more_o easy_o reject_v that_o suppose_v write_v instrument_n though_o it_o tell_v they_o exact_o what_o she_o now_o define_v be_v apostolical_a doctrine_n as_o much_o therefore_o it_o the_o church_n can_v do_v as_o much_o without_o the_o imagine_a handwriting_n as_o with_o it_o as_o the_o church_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o do_v by_o the_o help_n of_o such_o a_o imagine_v write_v it_o can_v do_v without_o it_o for_o if_o it_o have_v authority_n to_o legitimate_a as_o it_o be_v such_o a_o write_n it_o be_v own_o authority_n be_v as_o worthy_a of_o credit_n when_o it_o define_v without_o the_o write_n you_o see_v therefore_o how_o unreasonable_o these_o man_n require_v a_o codicil_n contain_v the_o old_a apostolical_a doctrine_n which_o ought_v forsooth_o to_o be_v exhibit_v and_o show_v they_o before_o they_o can_v be_v persuade_v that_o the_o church_n fairhful_o propose_v or_o define_v a_o doctrine_n to_o be_v apostolical_a 9_o now_o if_o they_o be_v convince_v that_o to_o require_v such_o a_o manuscript_n from_o we_o be_v as_o unreasonable_a as_o if_o we_o shall_v press_v they_o to_o produce_v one_o for_o their_o late_a novelty_n and_o therefore_o urge_v the_o church_n to_o prove_v she_o define_v doctrine_n by_o undoubted_a tradition_n i_o answer_v the_o church_n do_v so_o whilst_o they_o god_n know_v allege_v nothing_o like_o tradition_n for_o so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o their_o new_a article_n tradition_n a_o fallacy_n of_o sectary_n about_o tradition_n and_o here_o because_o we_o have_v a_o fit_a occasion_n i_o will_v discover_v in_o a_o word_n the_o fallacy_n of_o sectary_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o tradition_n i_o say_v in_o a_o word_n for_o it_o be_v not_o my_o task_n now_o to_o handle_v that_o question_n large_o thus_o it_o be_v sectary_n ever_o suppose_v when_o the_o church_n define_v a_o doctrine_n upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o former_a age_n it_o be_v oblige_v to_o show_v they_o the_o very_a doctrine_n in_o express_a term_n antecedent_o to_o the_o definition_n own_v and_o write_v down_o in_o the_o volume_n of_o some_o one_o or_o more_o learned_a father_n whence_o it_o be_v they_o argue_v argue_v how_o sectary_n argue_v no_o man_n hear_v of_o a_o purgatory_n before_o st._n augustine_n time_n and_o he_o only_a hint_n at_o it_o slight_o nor_o of_o transubstantiation_n before_o the_o lateran_n council_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o those_o doctrine_n be_v novelty_n late_o introduce_v i_o answer_v be_v all_o this_o true_a the_o argument_n be_v a_o unconcluding_a negative_a and_o run_v negative_n by_o unclude_v negative_n limp_a thus_o antiquity_n or_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v not_o express_v every_o define_v doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o like_o explicit_fw-la term_n as_o the_o church_n use_v therefore_o such_o doctrine_n be_v not_o real_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n observe_v well_o from_o the_o want_n of_o a_o expression_n suitable_a to_o sectary_n fancy_n they_o infer_v another_o the_o father_n express_v thing_n sometime_o one_o way_n and_o the_o church_n another_o the_o doctrine_n be_v never_o teach_v by_o antiquity_n alas_o the_o father_n have_v their_o expression_n one_o way_n and_o the_o church_n after_o mature_a deliberation_n another_o often_o more_o significant_a yet_o both_o aim_v at_o the_o same_o verity_n though_o different_o set_v forth_o in_o word_n as_o be_v clear_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n call_v by_o the_o father_n a_o real_a change_n of_o bread_n into_o christ_n body_n by_o the_o lateran_n council_n as_o you_o here_o se_fw-mi otherwise_o i_o say_v yet_o farther_o have_v the_o father_n not_o at_o all_o so_o much_o as_o hint_v at_o a_o doctrine_n define_v by_o the_o church_n the_o argument_n be_v yet_o pure_o negative_a and_o worth_a nothing_o improbable_a sectary_n discourse_v high_o improbable_a but_o be_v here_o all_o no._n their_o discourse_n upon_o another_o account_n be_v high_o improbable_a to_o prove_v what_o i_o say_v do_v no_o more_o but_o only_o imagine_v that_o three_o or_o four_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o learned_a father_n have_v in_o express_a term_n own_v and_o register_v in_o their_o write_n the_o lateran_n council_n definition_n concern_v transubstantiation_n as_o receive_v orthodox_n and_o catholic_n doctrine_n just_a as_o that_o council_n define_v it_o will_v sectary_n than_o have_v own_v it_o as_o ancient_n and_o orthodox_n upon_o those_o security_n the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n give_v security_n father_n testimony_n if_o they_o say_v yes_o they_o be_v evident_o convince_v for_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o a_o most_o ample_a learned_a council_n be_v in_o true_a prudence_n a_o firm_a principle_n and_o a_o better_a proof_n to_o rely_v on_o if_o we_o inquire_v after_o know_v and_o receive_v orthodox_n doctrine_n ever_o hold_v in_o the_o church_n then_o the_o very_o best_a assurance_n that_o one_o or_o more_o father_n can_v give_v we_o of_o it_o for_o who_o see_v we_o not_o but_o that_o the_o very_a definition_n of_o the_o nicene_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n or_o chalcedon_n etc._n etc._n be_v more_o weighty_a to_o beget_v in_o we_o a_o belief_n that_o what_o those_o council_n define_v to_o be_v receive_v truth_n be_v so_o indeed_o then_o if_o twenty_o other_o father_n have_v antecedent_o write_v they_o in_o their_o father_n council_n represent_v a_o whole_a church_n know_v more_o than_o particular_a father_n learned_a volume_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o general_a council_n represent_v a_o whole_a church_n spread_v all_o the_o world_n over_o can_v but_o know_v more_o exact_o what_o tradition_n and_o the_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n be_v then_o private_a man_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o know_v who_o live_v in_o several_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o bid_v no_o obligation_n to_o register_n entire_o the_o church_n doctrine_n in_o every_o particular_a thus_o much_o be_v say_v if_o the_o church_n at_o any_o time_n define_v upon_o tradition_n only_o fo●_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o beside_o tradition_n it_o rely_v on_o scripture_n also_o and_o hitherto_o never_o want_v the_o authority_n of_o most_o worthy_a father_n that_o undubitable_o teach_v as_o it_o define_v though_o not_o always_o perhaps_o in_o such_o express_a and_o significant_a word_n they_o if_o sectary_n reject_v both_o church_n and_o father_n when_o they_o have_v not_o a_o word_n of_o scripture_n for_o they_o 10._o now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o sectary_n will_v neither_o allow_v of_o the_o father_n doctrine_n susipose_v it_o be_v express_v for_o our_o catholic_n verity_n as_o most_o evident_o it_o be_v in_o twenty_o controversy_n nor_o of_o the_o church_n definition_n already_o declare_v in_o eighteen_o general_a council_n we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o all_o principle_n and_o must_v leave_v they_o to_o their_o unsteedy_a fancy_n or_o wilful_a obstinacy_n and_o pity_v their_o deplorable_a condition_n against_o they_o be_v more_o to_o be_v pity_v then_o dispute_v against_o
church_n when_o they_o listen_v where_o there_o be_v danger_n enough_o of_o more_o than_o little_a error_n which_o prejudice_n salvation_n 4._o and_o here_o be_v proof_n enough_o of_o the_o other_o part_n of_o my_o assertion_n which_o be_v protestant_n can_v probable_o impeach_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n of_o error_n causal_n of_o their_o schism_n you_o have_v already_o the_o reason_n for_o if_o fault_n less_o or_o more_o usual_o see_v even_o in_o well_o order_v commonwealth_n can_v not_o give_v just_a cause_n of_o public_a rebellion_n much_o less_o can_v these_o suppose_a fault_n and_o unproved_a schismatic_n sectary_n must_v either_o convince_v we_o of_o error_n high_o fundamental_a or_o they_o be_v plain_a schismatic_n error_n not_o fundamental_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n give_v just_a cause_n to_o our_o protestant_n of_o their_o shameful_a schism_n against_o it_o therefore_o they_o ought_v to_o convince_v we_o of_o error_n high_o fundamental_a and_o so_o make_v we_o no_o true_a christian_a church_n or_o they_o must_v sit_v down_o brand_v with_o the_o black_a note_n of_o both_o causal_n and_o formal_a schismatic_n there_o be_v no_o avoid_v it_o 5._o again_o i_o argue_v if_o error_n causal_n of_o protestant_n schism_n invade_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o enter_v after_o the_o first_o 4._o or_o 5._o hundred_o year_n for_o so_o long_o say_v they_o that_o church_n be_v orthodox_n but_o it_o be_v more_o than_o improbable_a that_o such_o a_o deluge_n of_o they_o as_o our_o adversary_n charge_v on_o we_o invade_v that_o church_n and_o diffuse_v themselves_o all_o over_o i_o prove_v the_o minor_a forth_o the_o high_a improbability_n of_o error_n enter_v the_o church_n lay_v forth_o they_o can_v not_o enter_v this_o church_n without_o public_a defense_n and_o public_a resistance_n defense_n in_o those_o who_o first_o heretical_o vent_v they_o resistance_n in_o other_o who_o catholick_o oppose_v them_o but_o there_o be_v never_o since_o christ_n time_n any_o such_o first_o public_a heretical_a defense_n nor_o first_o public_a catholic_n opposition_n of_o these_o suppose_a error_n the_o real_a presence_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a prayer_n to_o saint_n etc._n etc._n only_o heretic_n condemn_v for_o their_o pain_n oppose_v they_o but_o not_o other_o let_v we_o therefore_o appeal_v to_o reason_n and_o ask._n how_o it_o sectary_n a_o clear_a conviction_n of_o sectary_n be_v possible_a that_o such_o loud_a clamorous_a novelty_n can_v so_o silent_o and_o as_o it_o be_v by_o night_n creep_v into_o a_o church_n and_o no_o body_n discover_v they_o on_o their_o first_o appearance_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o they_o can_v become_v public_a own_a object_n of_o man_n fairh_n and_o gain_v a_o universal_a belief_n through_o a_o whole_a ample_a church_n and_o no_o body_n yet_o know_v when_o this_o new_a belief_n or_o unheard_a of_o profess_a faith_n first_o begin_v nothing_o can_v be_v more_o improbable_a paradoxal_a and_o moral_o error_n dr●wn_v from_o the_o moral_a impossibility_n of_o the_o entrance_n of_o these_o suppose_a error_n more_o impossible_a and_o 6._o to_o show_v you_o further_o the_o impossibility_n of_o this_o clandestine_v entrance_n of_o public_a error_n into_o a_o church_n without_o public_a notice_n or_o clamour_n against_o they_o be_v please_v to_o reflect_v here_o upon_o one_o instance_n suppose_v that_o a_o new_a sort_n of_o man_n shall_v now_o begin_v to_o broach_n a_o impious_a doctrine_n and_o open_o teach_v say_v a_o instance_n confirm_n all_o that_o be_v say_v that_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n which_o wash_v away_o sin_n be_v ●s_n real_o the_o true_a blood_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o worthy_a of_o adoration_n as_o catholic_n hold_v a_o consecrate_a host_n to_o be_v his_o sacred_a body_n and_o upon_o that_o acount_n adorable_a will_v not_o such_o a_o novelty_n think_v you_o where_o it_o public_o begin_v be_v public_o also_o clamour_v against_o by_o sound_n and_o orthodox_n christian_n yes_o and_o if_o it_o gradual_o get_v ground_n or_o more_o follower_n in_o time_n not_o easy_o suppress_v will_v it_o not_o as_o well_o as_o all_o other_o heresy_n which_o have_v trouble_v the_o world_n remain_v upon_o clear_a and_o undoubted_a record_n for_o posterity_n to_o read_v certain_o yes_o yet_o more_o can_v this_o persuasion_n live_v in_o any_o rational_a man_n that_o such_o a_o novelty_n may_v in_o time_n be_v so_o hold_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n by_o a_o most_o ample_a and_o learned_a church_n that_o the_o professor_n thereof_o will_v die_v for_o it_o the_o seven_o wonder_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o comparable_a to_o this_o one_o observe_v the_o application_n there_o be_v a_o time_n say_v instance_n the_o application_n of_o the_o instance_n protestant_n to_o wit_n for_o the_o 4._o or_o 5._o first_o age_n after_o christ_n when_o the_o whole_a pure_a primitive_a church_n no_o more_o believe_v christ_n sacred_a body_n to_o be_v real_o and_o substantial_o under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n then_o now_o we_o believe_v his_o sacred_a blood_n to_o be_v under_o the_o species_n of_o water_n in_o baptism_n there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o one_o as_o little_a deserve_a worship_n or_o adoration_n as_o the_o other_o for_o both_o be_v only_o holy_a sign_n and_o no_o more_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o this_o whole_a church_n grow_v mad_a and_o bring_v in_o the_o most_o palpable_a and_o erroneous_a novelty_n that_o ever_o the_o world_n hear_v of_o or_o record_v preserve_v what_o a_o piece_n of_o bread_n before_o not_o christ_n body_n be_v then_o o_o strange_a time_n believe_v to_o be_v his_o body_n a_o whole_a ample_n learned_a church_n be_v then_o cheat_v into_o that_o belief_n and_o whereas_o it_o once_o deserve_v no_o worship_n say_v our_o protestant_n all_n at_o last_o fall_v down_o and_o adore_v it_o in_o the_o open_a view_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o testify_v that_o they_o do_v so_o in_o earnest_n innumerable_a have_v shed_v their_o blood_n in_o defense_n of_o what_o they_o believe_v yet_o and_o here_o be_v the_o wonder_n of_o wonder_n sectary_n evidence_n against_o sectary_n no_o man_n can_v say_v who_o those_o be_v that_o first_o introduce_v this_o suppose_a monster_n of_o novelty_n no_o man_n can_v say_v in_o what_o age_n under_o what_o pope_n this_o error_n first_o get_v growth_n and_o patron_n for_o it_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v i_o what_o orthodox_n christian_n first_o stand_v up_o in_o god_n cause_n and_o oppose_v it_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v i_o when_o this_o visible_a and_o public_a adoration_n of_o a_o host_n begin_v no_o man_n can_v tell_v i_o how_o or_o when_o this_o new_a suppose_v coin_v doctrine_n serpent_n like_a first_o creep_v into_o man_n heart_n and_o at_o last_o poison_v a_o whole_a universal_a church_n hideous_a be_v these_o novelty_n prodigious_a these_o visible_a argument_n no_o author_n ever_o mention_v these_o notorious_a visible_a suppose_a change_n sectary_n trifle_v whilst_o they_o oppose_v the_o strength_n of_o our_o argument_n suppose_a change_n yet_o hush_n all_o pass_v in_o silence_n no_o body_n see_v they_o no_o body_n mention_n they_o not_o one_o author_n neither_o friend_n nor_o enemy_n write_v they_o or_o leave_v they_o upon_o record_n be_v not_o this_o think_v you_o whilst_o all_o other_o heresy_n be_v most_o exact_o register_v more_o than_o a_o pythagorean_n and_o prodigious_a silence_n 7._o it_o be_v pitiful_a to_o see_v with_o what_o petty_a trifle_n our_o adversary_n oppugn_v the_o strength_n of_o this_o most_o convince_v argument_n some_o tell_v we_o of_o a_o beard_n grow_v gray_a imperceptible_o of_o the_o index_n of_o a_o clock_n move_v insensible_o of_o tare_n peep_v up_o in_o a_o field_n when_o man_n be_v asleep_a and_o who_o can_v question_v say_v one_o very_o profound_o the_o birth_n of_o a_o infant_n because_o he_o know_v not_o the_o time_n of_o its_o conception_n error_n therefore_o may_v grow_v up_o with_o like_a silence_n in_o a_o church_n and_o as_o insensible_o observe_v this_o trifle_a we_o speak_v in_o the_o instance_n now_o give_v of_o a_o visible_a mountain_n and_o our_o adversary_n send_v we_o to_o seek_v for_o invisible_a moth_n in_o a_o old_a waste_a garment_n say_v i_o beseech_v you_o can_v they_o suppose_v that_o all_o object_n be_v alike_o discernible_a by_o our_o sense_n or_o be_v it_o as_o easy_a to_o find_v a_o needle_n in_o a_o bundle_n of_o straw_n as_o to_o see_v tower_n and_o castle_n before_o our_o eye_n in_o a_o fair_a sun_n shin_n day_n the_o suppose_a novelty_n now_o manifest_a sectary_n parallel_v thing_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n not_o perceptible_a with_o other_o most_o visible_a and_o manifest_a mention_v the_o suppose_a change_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n into_o another_o belief_n the_o imagine_a new_a public_a adoration_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v more_o discernible_a and_o visible_a than_o mountain_n and_o castle_n and_o
can_v be_v parallel_v with_o the_o imperceptible_a grain_n of_o a_o beard_n with_o tare_n peep_v up_o etc._n etc._n however_o this_o we_o can_v say_v certain_o so_o many_o year_n since_o the_o beard_n be_v not_o gray_a now_o it_o be_v so_o many_o month_n since_o tare_n be_v not_o now_o they_o be_v let_v our_o adversary_n proceed_v with_o like_a evidence_n against_o we_o and_o say_v certain_o not_o doubtful_o such_o suppose_a error_n then_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n but_o afterward_o begin_v and_o within_o the_o precise_a compass_n of_o so_o many_o year_n but_o this_o they_o can_v probable_o hint_n at_o the_o last_o instance_n of_o a_o child_n conception_n be_v the_o worst_a of_o all_o for_o if_o you_o know_v its_o birth_n you_o know_v the_o conception_n be_v nine_o month_n before_o according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o nature_n though_o if_o both_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o it_o be_v a_o forceles_a instance_n unless_o we_o suppose_v that_o all_o trivial_a matter_n must_v as_o well_o be_v know_v and_o stand_v upon_o record_n as_o thing_n of_o great_a concernment_n the_o late_a woeful_a burn_v of_o london_n will_v i_o will_v warrant_v it_o be_v exact_o record_v when_o the_o birth_n of_o twenty_o infant_n be_v never_o think_v on_o and_o so_o shall_v the_o general_n ruin_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o whole_a church_n have_v stand_v register_v 8._o one_o word_n more_o though_o these_o example_n be_v enter_v can_v sectary_n show_v how_o such_o change_n may_v enter_v the_o church_n that_o prove_v not_o they_o enter_v to_o the_o purpose_n as_o indeed_o they_o be_v not_o at_o most_o they_o will_v only_o show_v and_o pitiful_o enough_o how_o such_o suppose_a change_n may_v perhaps_o be_v make_v but_o be_v far_o from_o prove_v they_o be_v make_v so_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la for_o this_o carry_v no_o likelihood_n of_o a_o argument_n with_o it_o i_o will_v show_v you_o how_o these_o error_n may_v enter_v the_o church_n insensible_o how_o these_o change_n may_v get_v in_o with_o silence_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v so_o thus_o they_o be_v make_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la a_o potentiâ_fw-la ad_fw-la actum_fw-la non_fw-la valet_fw-la consequentia_fw-la no_o man_n can_v argue_v from_o a_o null_a a_o inference_n from_o a_o mere_a possibility_n to_o the_o act_n be_v null_a mere_a possibility_n of_o their_o clancular_a entrance_n that_o in_o real_a truth_n they_o enter_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n sectary_n may_v say_v they_o suppose_v these_o change_n make_v upon_o other_o principle_n and_o now_o only_o show_v by_o insta●●es_n how_o they_o may_v get_v in_o without_o noise_n and_o public_a notice_n here_o we_o may_v have_v plain_a deal_v if_o it_o please_v our_o adversary_n show_v you_o therefore_o my_o good_a friend_n by_o any_o thing_n like_o a_o solid_a proof_n or_o principle_n that_o the_o change_n we_o now_o speak_v of_o be_v actual_o make_v in_o the_o church_n say_v plain_o this_o suppose_a novelty_n be_v not_o in_o such_o a_o age_n but_o afterward_o and_o let_v a_o solid_a proof_n make_v good_a both_o principle_n their_o example_n neither_o prove_v these_o pretend_a novelty_n introduce_v nor_o suppose_v they_o prove_v by_o any_o know_a principle_n assertion_n and_o than_o your_o instance_n of_o tare_n and_o beard_n grow_v gray_a will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n because_o the_o change_n which_o you_o say_v be_v make_v be_v now_o upon_o your_o supposition_n strong_o prove_v aliunde_fw-la that_o be_v by_o other_o solid_a ground_n and_o this_o without_o the_o help_n of_o these_o weak_a instance_n here_o therefore_o be_v a_o unanswerable_a dilemma_n for_o you_o you_o either_o endeavour_n to_o show_v that_o the_o suppose_a novelty_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n enter_v the_o church_n because_o your_o example_n of_o tare_n and_o a_o clock_n index_n convince_v the_o actual_a entrance_n of_o it_o and_o this_o inference_n as_o i_o say_v now_o be_v nonsense_n thus_o it_o may_v enter_v ergo_fw-la thus_o it_o do_v enter_v or_o contrariwise_o you_o can_v clear_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n begin_v such_o a_o novelty_n by_o undeniable_a ground_n without_o forceles_a protestant_n make_v their_o own_o instance_n impertinent_a and_o forceles_a depend_v of_o these_o instance_n if_o you_o do_v this_o solid_o your_o instance_n be_v worth_a nothing_o for_o if_o you_o convince_v by_o a_o undeniable_a principle_n that_o the_o church_n bring_v in_o this_o new_a doctrine_n in_o any_o age_n you_o need_v not_o at_o all_o to_o talk_v of_o a_o gray_a beard_n or_o of_o tare_n peep_v up_o insensible_o because_o you_o must_v now_o suppose_v the_o pretend_a innovation_n clear_o prove_v by_o other_o far_o better_a and_o undeniable_a ground_n do_v this_o and_o you_o make_v your_o own_o instance_n eo_fw-la ipso_fw-la null_a and_o as_o impertinent_a as_o forceles_a for_o most_o them_o a_o instance_n against_o them_o sure_o no_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n will_v go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o protestancy_n for_o example_n come_v into_o the_o world_n insensible_o as_o a_o board_n grow_v grey_a when_o he_o can_v evident_o demonstrate_v by_o other_o undeniable_a principle_n the_o palpable_a beginning_n of_o it_o and_o thus_o it_o be_v in_o the_o present_a controversy_n 9_o one_o may_v yet_o say_v they_o can_v it_o be_v true_a demonstrative_o evidence_n the_o suppose_a change_n now_o in_o controversy_n yet_o be_v able_a upon_o strong_a moral_a improbable_a their_o pretence_n to_o make_v novelty_n in_o the_o church_n to_o be_v high_o probable_a be_v more_o than_o improbable_a proof_n to_o make_v it_o high_o probable_a contra_fw-la 1._o if_o you_o make_v it_o high_o probable_a talk_v no_o more_o of_o tare_n and_o beard_n for_o one_o proof_n of_o this_o nature_n will_v be_v of_o more_o advantage_n to_o your_o cause_n than_o the_o secret_a peep_v up_o of_o a_o thousand_o weed_n in_o a_o garden_n contra_fw-la 2._o if_o this_o your_o assertion_n be_v make_v probable_a it_o must_v stand_v upon_o a_o strong_a moral_a certain_a principle_n whereof_o none_o can_v but_o most_o imprudent_o doubt_v deal_v candidly_n give_v we_o in_o plain_a language_n this_o high_a moral_a certain_a principle_n whereon_o your_o assertion_n have_v foot_v and_o you_o will_v gain_v much_o but_o if_o after_o the_o offer_n you_o turn_v we_o of_o with_o word_n or_o lead_v we_o by_o a_o loose_a discourse_n to_o what_o you_o may_v say_v be_v moral_o certain_a though_o thousand_o more_o learned_a vow_n the_o contrary_a you_o will_v only_o first_o discredit_v yourself_o and_o next_o your_o cause_n much_o more_o speak_v plain_o on_o god_n name_n here_o be_v place_n for_o it_o make_v your_o undoubted_a principle_n know_v whereby_o your_o assertion_n be_v prove_v and_o you_o will_v do_v more_o than_o ever_o protestant_n do_v yet_o or_o shall_v do_v hereafter_o contra_fw-la 3_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a whimsy_n to_o suppose_v proof_n high_o probable_a against_o this_o ever_o teach_v and_o unchangeable_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o stand_v firm_a first_o upon_o christ_n own_o express_a word_n principle_n no_o proof_n can_v be_v probable_a that_o stand_v against_o undeniable_a principle_n this_o be_v my_o body_n 2._o on_o the_o irrefragable_a authority_n of_o so_o many_o most_o ancient_a father_n that_o speak_v not_o only_o dubious_o of_o the_o mystery_n but_o as_o clear_o defend_v it_o as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n define_v it_o whereof_o more_o large_o hereafter_o to_o these_o principle_n we_o add_v the_o testimony_n and_o express_a belief_n of_o our_o whole_a learned_a both_o pass_v and_o present_a roman_n catholic_n church_n too_o strong_a a_o proof_n to_o be_v batter_v or_o shake_v by_o empty_a word_n wherefore_o every_o one_o may_v consider_v what_o a_o hard_a task_n sectary_n have_v in_o hand_n if_o they_o go_v about_o to_o make_v their_o contrary_a assertion_n high_o probable_a first_o they_o be_v oblige_v church_n it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o find_v a_o orthodox_n christian_n society_n of_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n to_o prove_v and_o by_o a_o sure_a principle_n that_o christ_n speak_v improper_o or_o according_a to_o their_o sense_n 2._o that_o all_o or_o at_o least_o most_o of_o the_o father_n err_v in_o their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n 3._o that_o they_o quite_o overthrow_n the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o some_o other_o church_n that_o be_v ever_o hold_v by_o christian_n more_o orthodox_n and_o apostolical_a than_o our_o roman_a church_n be_v all_o this_o be_v to_o be_v do_v not_o by_o talk_n but_o by_o sober_a solid_a and_o vndeniable_a moral_a principle_n which_o both_o friend_n and_o enemy_n ought_v if_o they_o be_v rational_a to_o acknowledge_v as_o principle_n moral_o certain_a when_o sectary_n shall_v plea_n to_o do_v what_o be_v here_o plain_o require_v and_o it_o must_v be_v perform_v if_o they_o speak_v pertinent_o than_o i_o shall_v begin_v to_o think_v that_o they_o mere_a
fallible_a man_n may_v speak_v more_o bold_o and_o say_n our_o church_n be_v fallible_a and_o have_v bring_v in_o both_o this_o new_a mention_v and_o many_o other_o innovation_n therefore_o i_o deep_o charge_v their_o conscience_n church_n the_o conscience_n of_o sectary_n be_v press_v to_o prove_v what_o they_o teach_v of_o error_n in_o the_o church_n as_o they_o will_v answer_v it_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n not_o to_o trifle_n in_o a_o most_o serious_a matter_n but_o without_o ambiguity_n plain_o to_o touch_v the_o difficulty_n and_o to_o make_v know_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n what_o that_o own_a principle_n be_v whereon_o this_o their_o proposition_n stand_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v fallible_a and_o have_v introduce_v this_o novelty_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n i_o speak_v principle_n not_o by_o empty_a word_n but_o certain_a principle_n bold_o and_o dare_v say_v it_o be_v a_o flat_a heresy_n and_o therefore_o sectary_n have_v nothing_o like_o a_o principle_n moral_o certain_a whereby_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o contrary_a verity_n mantain_v by_o scripture_n church_n and_o father_n can_v be_v mean_o quarrel_v with_o much_o les_fw-fr solid_o reprove_v unless_o the_o too_o simple_a talk_n of_o a_o few_o novellist_n be_v able_a to_o evert_n and_o overturn_v what_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o a_o whole_a ample_a church_n defend_v upon_o revelation_n 10._o perhaps_o it_o will_v be_v say_v first_o the_o father_n that_o defend_v the_o real_a presence_n be_v fallible_a and_o might_n err._n improbable_a what_o sectary_n may_v plead_v but_o it_o be_v more_o than_o high_o improbable_a i_o answer_v our_o protestant_n who_o deny_v it_o be_v fallible_a also_o and_o may_v err_v more_o by_o what_o undoubted_a principle_n therefore_o can_v they_o convince_v that_o their_o fallible_a reject_v the_o father_n have_v weight_n enough_o to_o make_v null_a the_o testimony_n of_o so_o many_o bless_a saint_n against_o their_o doctrine_n we_o call_v here_o for_o principle_n and_o be_v not_o content_a with_o empty_a word_n they_o may_v reply_v 2._o they_o can_v explicate_v both_o scripture_n and_o father_n contrary_a to_o the_o church_n sense_n and_o so_o ride_v themselves_o of_o that_o burden_n i_o answer_v this_o riddance_n be_v none_o unless_o when_o they_o have_v explicate_v they_o prove_v by_o a_o more_o sure_a principle_n then_o the_o express_a word_n of_o these_o father_n be_v that_o their_o gloss_n hit_v right_a and_o that_o the_o father_n be_v deceive_v which_o shall_v never_o be_v so_o much_o as_o probably_n convince_v if_o they_o last_o talk_v of_o cite_v father_n for_o their_o heresy_n i_o answer_v they_o have_v not_o one_o as_o will_v be_v ample_o prove_v hereafter_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n let_v they_o know_v it_o will_v be_v the_o safe_a cours_n to_o talk_v no_o more_o of_o change_n ad_fw-la novelty_n introduce_v into_o our_o church_n without_o proof_n and_o principle_n to_o uphold_v their_o ill_a suppose_a and_o worse_a prove_v calumny_n but_o enough_o of_o this_o digression_n we_o return_v now_o to_o other_o objection_n 11._o some_o again_o tell_v we_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o church_n come_v in_o in_o time_n of_o great_a ignorance_n when_o little_a notice_n be_v principle_n still_o empty_a talk_n without_o proof_n or_o principle_n take_v and_o few_o record_n be_v preserve_v of_o they_o here_o be_v more_o talk_n without_o principle_n for_o where_o read_v they_o of_o so_o great_a ignorance_n in_o the_o church_n that_o disenable_v all_o writer_n to_o register_n such_o vast_a change_n or_o where_o find_v they_o record_v of_o those_o lose_v and_o vnpreserve_v record_n this_o be_v only_a proofle_n talk_v if_o they_o have_v record_n let_v they_o be_v produce_v if_o they_o have_v none_o let_v they_o reject_v sectary_n guess_v reject_v hereafter_o wave_v such_o blind_a guess_n whilst_o proof_n be_v expect_v it_o will_v anger_v our_o protestant_n if_o i_o shall_v tell_v they_o without_o proof_n or_o unquestioned_a record_n that_o the_o beard_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v insensible_o grow_v gray_a since_o their_o new_a faith_n come_v in_o or_o that_o tare_n be_v cast_v into_o their_o church_n whilst_o they_o sleep_v etc._n etc._n yet_o they_o it_o seem_v be_v license_v to_o run_v on_o with_o such_o poor_a guess_n and_o no_o body_n must_v check_v them_o 12._o next_o they_o argue_v we_o can_v show_v when_o the_o also_o be_v these_o thing_n unkow_v it_o follow_v not_o that_o other_o of_o great_a monent_fw-la be_v unknown_a also_o necessity_n of_o communicate_v infant_n and_o the_o rebaptise_v of_o heretic_n or_o that_o doctrine_n of_o soul_n not_o see_v god_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n first_o enter_v the_o church_n yet_o these_o be_v error_n and_o their_o beginning_n be_v unknown_a here_o i_o answer_v brief_o the_o communicate_v infant_n be_v only_o tolerate_v for_o a_o time_n but_o never_o be_v hold_v a_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n much_o less_o be_v those_o two_o other_o difficulty_n these_o example_n touch_v not_o the_o difficulty_n point_n condemn_v by_o the_o church_n ever_o own_v as_o her_o doctrine_n such_o example_n therefore_o not_o church-doctrin_n be_v to_o no_o purpose_n in_o this_o place_n 13._o last_o they_o tell_v we_o scotus_n think_v transubstantiation_n to_o be_v of_o no_o elder_a date_n than_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n and_o bishop_n fisher_n say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n be_v not_o much_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n i_o will_v willing_o see_v in_o scotus_n his_o own_o work_v the_o distin_n and_o quest_n where_o he_o assert_v what_o these_o man_n say_v some_o protestant_n cite_v he_o in_o 4._o distin_n 11._o q._n 3._o where_o he_o only_o say_v in_o different_a edition_n that_o transubstantiation_n be_v more_o explicit_o define_v in_o the_o lateran_n council_n which_o be_v far_o from_o make_v it_o no_o old_a a_o doctrine_n then_o that_o council_n definition_n be_v but_o admit_v scotus_n say_v so_o and_z bishop_n fisher_n unquote_v worse_a then_o they_o pretend_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n teach_v no_o such_o thing_n yet_o from_o this_o oracle_n of_o truth_n we_o must_v learn_v and_o not_o from_o particular_a doctor_n who_o may_v err_v what_o church_n doctrine_n be_v and_o for_o this_o reason_n i_o tell_v you_o above_o of_o much_o foul_a play_n in_o protestant_n who_o because_o they_o want_v antiquity_n take_v no_o little_a pain_n to_o run_v up_o and_o down_o our_o author_n and_o if_o by_o chance_n a_o word_n be_v find_v less_o wary_o speak_v they_o trifle_v with_o it_o and_o present_o make_v that_o popish_a doctrine_n it_o be_v a_o error_n catholic_n doctrine_n be_v not_o one_o man_n singular_a opinion_n opinion_n catholic_n doctrine_n be_v no_o man_n singular_a opinion_n but_o the_o universal_a receive_v doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o thus_o much_o our_o adversary_n must_v assert_v for_o themselves_o otherwise_o when_o one_o of_o great_a renown_n among_o they_o tell_v we_o protestant_n plain_o it_o be_v but_o labour_n in_o vain_a to_o talk_v of_o union_n with_o one_o another_o unless_o they_o join_v again_o to_o that_o moral_a body_n from_o which_o they_o once_o separate_v that_o be_v to_o those_o who_o be_v in_o union_n with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a the_o whole_a english_a church_n must_v here_o subscribe_v and_o say_v it_o be_v protestant_a doctrine_n will_v they_o do_v so_o the_o voice_n therefore_o of_o one_o be_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o all_o nor_o one_o man_n opinion_n more_o man_n opinion_n much_o less_o the_o sentiment_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n 14._o it_o be_v but_o time_n lose_v to_o follow_v these_o man_n whilst_o church_n blind_a guess_v no_o proof_n of_o novelty_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n they_o blindly_n run_v on_o guess_v at_o the_o rise_n and_o origin_n of_o our_o suppose_a error_n and_o tell_v we_o all_o our_o corruption_n come_v not_o in_o on_o a_o sudden_a they_o be_v first_o practise_v free_o and_o then_o urge_v as_o necessary_a person_n of_o great_a esteem_n first_o hold_v they_o and_o other_o soon_o follow_v their_o example_n if_o one_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n and_o trace_v it_o he_o may_v find_v the_o head_n of_o these_o corruption_n at_o last_o etc._n etc._n pitiful_a slight_a talk_n unworthy_a a_o scholar_n and_o vent_v at_o random_n against_o the_o primitive_a church_n will_v even_o blemish_v that_o as_o much_o as_o any_o other_o yea_o and_o protestancy_n more_o i_o wave_v such_o stuff_n because_o nothing_o like_o a_o proof_n follow_v it_o 15._o my_o last_o proposition_n be_v though_o protestant_n shall_v convince_v foundation_n though_o error_n be_v false_o suppose_v to_o have_v enter_v the_o church_n yet_o protestant_n can_v prove_v that_o they_o have_v set_v faith_n right_o again_o on_o its_o old_a foundation_n which_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n have_v swerve_v from_o the_o primitive_a doctrine_n yet_o they_o can_v
doctrine_n of_o the_o donatist_n confine_v the_o church_n to_o one_o place_n vnchurch_n they_o believe_v it_o your_o wide_a the_o donatist_n be_v schismatich_n for_o make_v the_o church_n too_o straight_o and_o so_o be_v protestant_n for_o make_v it_o to_o wide_a particular_a doctrine_n in_o make_v it_o too_o large_a will_v vnchurch_n you_o also_o i_o call_v both_o these_o doctrine_n particular_a and_o heretical_a for_o as_o never_o man_n before_o the_o donatist_n make_v the_o catholic_n church_n so_o straight_o as_o they_o do_v so_o never_o christian_n before_o these_o late_a protestant_n make_v it_o so_o large_a as_o to_o hold_v in_o it_o all_o the_o heretckis_n in_o the_o world_n i_o say_v express_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v only_o their_o particular_a error_n and_o not_o then_o universal_a or_o common_a to_o all_o christian_n for_o their_o very_a deny_v the_o church_n to_o be_v spread_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o make_v that_o doctrine_n not_o vnuniversal_a or_o not_o hold_v by_o all._n and_o thus_o much_o protestant_n must_v say_v for_o whilst_o they_o or_o any_o other_o sectary_n maintain_v tenant_n particular_a to_o themselves_o for_o example_n two_o sacrament_n only_o a_o doctrine_n heretic_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o protestant_n the_o arian_n and_o nestorian_n be_v not_o heretic_n so_o limitate_v can_v be_v call_v universal_a out_o of_o what_o be_v hitherto_o say_a we_o must_v conclude_v if_o no_o doctrine_n can_v make_v a_o man_n a_o heretic_n but_o the_o denial_n of_o that_o which_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n own_o be_v the_o arian_n and_o nestorian_n be_v not_o heretic_n 8._o these_o novellist_n go_v on_o trifle_a in_o a_o most_o serious_a matter_n and_o first_o tell_v we_o though_o a_o man_n differ'_v accidental_a a_o frivolous_a instance_n every_o one_o know_v what_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o man_n but_o protestant_n know_v not_o how_o much_o doctrine_n be_v essential_a to_o christian_a faith_n and_o how_o much_o be_v mere_o accidental_a from_o all_o other_o in_o accident_n for_o example_n in_o feature_n yet_o he_o leave_v not_o of_o to_o be_v essential_o a_o man_n therefore_o though_o protestant_n differ_v from_o all_o other_o christian_n in_o doctrine_n accidental_a or_o wherein_o these_o dissent_v society_n disagree_v from_o one_o another_o yet_o as_o long_o as_o they_o stick_v to_o the_o common_a own_a faith_n of_o all_o christian_n so_o long_o they_o be_v safe_a and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n a_o miserable_a put_v of_o it_o seem_v a_o very_a universal_a doctrine_n suffice_v protestant_n to_o be_v good_a catholic_n all_o we_o desire_v be_v that_o they_o will_v exact_o say_v how_o much_o precise_o of_o this_o doctrine_n will_v serve_v the_o turn_n as_o both_o necessary_a and_o sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o all_o catholic_n or_o whether_o the_o arian_n nestorian_n or_o donatist_n have_v enough_o of_o it_o to_o be_v good_a catholic_n if_o yes_o they_o be_v both_o good_a catholic_n and_o heretic_n at_o once_o catholic_n upon_o the_o symbolize_v arian_n and_o protestant_n symbolize_v account_n of_o common_a christian_a doctrine_n own_a by_o they_o and_o heretic_n for_o their_o particular_a erroneous_a tenant_n and_o it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a that_o protestant_n be_v like_o they_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la catholic_n because_o of_o their_o common_a doctrine_n but_o simpliciter_fw-la heretic_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o late_a introduce_v novelty_n 9_o they_o tell_v we_o again_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v not_o to_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o particular_a opinion_n either_o of_o all_o or_o any_o particular_a church_n but_o by_o such_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a foundation_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o separation_n from_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n but_o in_o such_o thing_n wherein_o it_o be_v catholic_n and_o it_o be_v not_o catholic_n in_o any_o thing_n but_o in_o what_o proper_o relate_v to_o its_o be_v and_o constitution_n let_v the_o world_n judge_n whether_o this_o be_v not_o mere_a confuse_a talk_n for_o the_o only_a difficulty_n explication_n sectary_n wave_v that_o only_a difficulty_n which_o require_v explication_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v to_o know_v of_o these_o new_a doctor_n how_o much_o precise_a doctrine_n be_v necessary_a and_o sufficient_a to_o be_v believe_v how_o much_o of_o it_o constitut'_v the_o be_v and_o foundation_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o what_o be_v accidental_a or_o unnecessary_a you_o see_v they_o wave_v this_o and_o content_v themselves_o with_o tell_v we_o of_o no_o man_n know_v what_o be_v of_o no_o man_n know_v what_o foundation_n of_o a_o church_n without_o descend_v to_o particular_n or_o prove_v what_o these_o essential_o be_v or_o final_o who_o those_o christian_n be_v that_o be_v right_o in_o the_o essential_o of_o faith_n before_o luther_n or_o have_v the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n among_o they_o they_o proceed_v here_o as_o if_o by_o protestant_n enjoin_v we_o to_o learn_v that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n and_o allow_v we_o neither_o master_n nor_o rule_n to_o learn_v it_o by_o a_o master_n shall_v tell_v a_o young_a beginner_n with_o grammar_n you_o must_v learn_v your_o rule_n well_o and_o understand_v they_o perfect_o but_o you_o shall_v have_v neither_o book_n nor_o precept_n from_o any_o whereby_o to_o learn_v they_o i_o profess_v before_o almighty_a god_n and_o i_o think_v thousand_o not_o only_a catholic_n but_o other_o be_v of_o my_o opinion_n i_o be_o yet_o as_o whole_o ignorant_a of_o what_o these_o new_a protestant_n will_v make_v the_o essential_o of_o faith_n the_o necessary_a and_o sufficient_a foundation_n and_o be_v of_o a_o church_n as_o ever_o boy_n be_v of_o grammar_n rule_n when_o he_o first_o go_v to_o school_n i_o may_v perhaps_o guess_v better_a at_o their_o doctrine_n and_o my_o thought_n be_v they_o hold_v all_o the_o heretic_n in_o the_o sense_n the_o world_n will_v cry_v shame_n if_o they_o explicate_v their_o sense_n world_n whether_o arian_n or_o other_o to_o be_v good_a catholic_n christian_n yet_o dare_v not_o publish_v so_o much_o in_o write_v and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n why_o they_o schulk_n in_o generality_n and_o hide_v themselves_o under_o these_o universal_a vnexplicate_v term_n of_o the_o essential_o of_o faith_n of_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n the_o foundation_n of_o it_o etc._n etc._n well_o i_o will_v say_v it_o once_o more_o if_o the_o doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n be_v the_o essential_a necessary_a salvation_n no_o heretic_n ever_o be_v if_o doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n and_o sufficient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n true_o catholic_n it_o follow_v evident_o that_o no_o heretic_n be_v ever_o yet_o vnchurch_v by_o his_o particular_a heresy_n but_o 10._o woe_n be_v to_o catholic_n what_o ever_o become_v of_o other_o they_o must_v be_v vnchurch_v for_o these_o man_n assert_v and_o very_o wise_o as_o they_o think_v although_o nothing_o separate_v a_o church_n proper_o from_o the_o catholic_n but_o what_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o it_o yet_o a_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o roman_a may_v separate_a herself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n society_n by_o take_v upon_o she_o to_o make_v such_o thing_n necessary_a condition_n of_o communion_n which_o never_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n observe_v first_o a_o supposition_n for_o a_o proof_n of_o strange_a impose_v condition_n observe_v 2._o a_o supposition_n sectary_n mere_a supposition_n pass_v for_o proof_n with_o sectary_n for_o a_o proof_n of_o no_o man_n know_v what_o catholic_n church_n wide_a and_o large_a than_o the_o roman_a but_o above_o all_o 11._o observe_v 3._o their_o unlearned_a discourse_n the_o roman_a church_n say_v they_o draw_v the_o bound_n of_o catholic_n communion_n within_o herself_o and_o so_o divide_v from_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n i_o ask_v from_o what_o true_a catholic_n church_n do_v separate_v they_o can_v name_v the_o orthodox_n church_n from_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n separate_v she_o divide_v herself_o speak_v out_o and_o name_v that_o church_n design_v it_o plain_o which_o be_v actual_o orthodox_n and_o in_o be_v when_o luther_n apostate_v and_o something_o be_v say_v to_o the_o purpose_n if_o you_o fail_v to_o show_v we_o that_o imagine_a church_n from_o which_o you_o suppose_v the_o roman_a separate_v all_z you_o assert_v be_v a_o mere_a calumny_n we_o say_v and_o can_v justify_v it_o there_o be_v no_o such_o true_a church_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o separate_a from_o unless_o arian_n nestorian_n eutychian_o grecian_n &c._n &c._n constitute_v that_o great_a imagine_a moral_a body_n but_o these_o as_o be_v evident_a once_o catholic_n separate_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n not_o she_o from_o they_o therefore_o this_o suppose_a separation_n be_v only_o a_o
argumentaremur_fw-la they_o be_v his_o word_n page_n 3_o the_o man_n will_v discourse_n foolish_o that_o shall_v conclude_v the_o greek_a church_n hold_v no_o place_n of_o purgatory_n because_o marcus_n ephesius_n barlaam_n monachus_n nilus_n thessalonicensis_n josephus_n bryennius_n and_o other_o schismatic_n have_v false_o relate_v matter_n so_o which_o way_n of_o argue_v be_v as_o weak_a as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v that_o that_o whole_a church_n be_v now_o infect_v church_n the_o error_n of_o some_o be_v not_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o a_o whole_a church_n with_o arianism_n macedonianism_n eutychianism_n or_o nestorianism_n because_o some_o among_o they_o profess_v these_o heresy_n alas_o the_o error_n of_o some_o that_o recede_v from_o that_o church_n as_o nicetas_n bizantius_n cite_v page_n 4._o well_o observe_v can_v in_o justice_n be_v impute_v to_o their_o whole_a church_n which_o ever_o defend_v a_o place_n of_o purgatory_n and_o therefore_o he_o tell_v we_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o armenian_n of_o his_o unhandsome_a plea_n when_o armeniorum_fw-la bizantius_n adversus_fw-la principem_fw-la armeniorum_fw-la he_o pretend_v that_o the_o church_n leave_v the_o schismatical_a opinion_n of_o some_o few_o no_o such_o matter_n say_v nicetas_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o the_o contrary_n be_v true_a it_o be_v you_o the_o far_o less_o number_n that_o desert_v we_o page_z the_o 12._o alatius_fw-la cite_v manuel_n caleca_n lib._n 4._o adversus_fw-la graecos_n who_o do_v not_o only_o admit_v of_o a_o place_n of_o purgatory_n for_o soul_n not_o perfect_o cleanse_v but_o moreover_o deliver_n caleca_n three_o truth_n establish_v by_o manuel_n caleca_n these_o three_z particular_a truth_n according_a to_o the_o sentiment_n of_o that_o church_n the_o first_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o pray_v for_o those_o who_o now_o enjoy_v beatitude_n for_o although_o say_v he_o we_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v not_o do_v that_o they_o may_v obtain_v mercy_n have_v it_o already_o but_o it_o be_v offer_v up_o for_o this_o end_n that_o by_o honour_v saint_n we_o may_v make_v they_o through_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o be_v mediator_n for_o we_o the_o second_o verity_n be_v the_o church_n never_o pray_v for_o the_o damn_a the_o last_o there_o be_v therefore_o a_o three_o place_n of_o punishment_n call_v purgatory_n where_o soul_n not_o perfect_o cleanse_v must_v by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n suffer_v for_o less_o offence_n and_o so_o pass_v into_o glory_n this_o learned_a author_n have_v much_o more_o to_o this_o purpose_n but_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o touch_v on_o all_o 9_o let_v we_o return_v to_o alatius_fw-la that_o in_o every_o page_n refute_v your_o doctrine_n page_n 74._o he_o tell_v we_o we_o that_o the_o purgatory_n the_o whole_a greek_a church_n teach_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n pray_v for_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n whole_a greek_a church_n teach_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n ever_o pray_v for_o the_o depart_a who_o be_v neither_o cast_v in_o to_o hell_n nor_o be_v glorious_a in_o heaven_n and_o he_o prove_v this_o even_a by_o the_o confession_n of_o innumerable_a that_o be_v of_o the_o schism_n here_o he_o give_v we_o the_o judgement_n of_o gabriel_n severus_n philadelphiensis_fw-la in_o the_o book_n he_o write_v against_o the_o latin_n of_o purgatory_n where_o he_o show_v how_o far_o the_o greek_a church_n agree_v with_o the_o latin_a and_o wherein_o it_o differ_v we_o agree_v say_v he_o that_o soul_n pious_o depart_v this_o life_n receive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d benefit_n and_o relaxation_n it_o those_o of_o the_o schism_n confess_v it_o in_o those_o place_n they_o be_v and_o this_o by_o the_o alms-deed_n and_o good_a prayer_n of_o other_o as_o dionyfius_n areopagita_n teacher_n and_o beside_o dyonisius_n severus_n allege_n also_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n athanasius_n s._n chrysostom_n basil_n and_o theophilact_fw-mi for_o this_o great_a verity_n that_o such_o soul_n depart_v have_v help_n comfort_n and_o relaxation_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n by_o alm_n and_o pious_a prayer_n of_o the_o live_n thus_o a_o grecian_a schismatic_a speak_v and_o it_o be_v not_o he_o alone_o that_o produce_v these_o father_n for_o a_o proof_n of_o purgatory_n but_o other_o greek_a author_n also_o even_o those_o of_o the_o schism_n as_o alatius_fw-la demonstrat_n in_o several_a place_n purgatory_n the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n make_v the_o sense_n of_o father_n clear_a for_o purgatory_n and_o most_o sure_o so_o unanimous_a a_o consent_n of_o many_o which_o who_o the_o latin_n agree_v also_o can_v but_o make_v the_o sense_n of_o these_o father_n indubitable_a for_o our_o catholic_n verity_n 10._o now_o sir_n if_o other_o adversary_n say_v as_o you_o do_v that_o the_o greek_n indeed_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a but_o without_o any_o respect_n of_o deliver_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n or_o a_o place_n of_o torment_n turn_v once_o more_o to_o alatius_fw-la page_n 87._o where_o he_o give_v you_o not_o only_o one_o or_o two_o witness_n but_o as_o he_o speak_v vniversam_fw-la ipsam_fw-la graeciam_fw-la the_o testimony_n of_o the_o whole_a greek_a church_n palam_fw-la &_o aperte_fw-la open_o adversary_n a_o clear_a refutation_n of_o our_o adversary_n avow_v these_o torment_n of_o purgatory_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o quote_v their_o ritual_n their_o office_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o other_o prayer_n in_o the_o office_n you_o have_v this_o orison_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n o_o christ_n give_v rest_n with_o thy_o saint_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o thy_o servant_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d where_o grief_n sadness_n purgatory_n the_o greek_a ritual_n and_o office_n of_o the_o dead_a significant_a for_o purgatory_n and_o mourn_v may_v cease_v give_v they_o a_o life_n of_o perpetual_a happiness_n etc._n etc._n another_o prayer_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n our_o lord_n himself_o give_v rest_n to_o your_o servant_n n_z in_o a_o place_n of_o refreshment_n from_o whence_o grief_n misery_n and_o deep_o sigh_v may_v pass_v this_o be_v also_o repeat_v in_o their_o paracletica_n from_o tear_n and_o bitter_a cry_v out_o deliver_v o_o saviour_n thy_o servant_n again_o they_o beg_v they_o may_v be_v free_v from_o all_o punishment_n from_o a_o prison_n of_o sufferance_n and_o soon_o be_v settle_v in_o a_o place_n of_o joy_n where_o the_o just_a inhabit_v with_o perfect_a forgiveness_n of_o all_o their_o transgression_n yet_o more_o alatius_fw-la page_n 93._o say_v this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n dionysius_n of_o the_o great_a s._n basil_n precatione_n 3._o in_o pentecosten_n where_o he_o pray_v that_o these_o soul_n alatius_fw-la some_o father_n quote_v by_o alatius_fw-la may_v not_o only_o be_v quit_v of_o torment_n and_o sufferance_n but_o moreover_o be_v place_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o just_a and_o enjoy_v happiness_n for_o ever_o final_o page_n 95._o he_o quote_v s._n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n catech._n mystag_n 5._o who_o do_v not_o only_o acknowledge_v assistance_n afford_v the_o dead_a by_o our_o prayer_n for_o such_o a_o assertion_n be_v easy_o misinterpret_v but_o beside_o affirm_v they_o receive_v remission_n and_o relaxation_n of_o their_o punishment_n the_o like_a severus_n philadelphiensis_fw-la though_o a_o schismatic_a confess_v that_o the_o greek_a priest_n schismatic_a the_o confession_n of_o a_o schismatic_a pray_v every_o saturday_n that_o these_o depart_a soul_n may_v find_v god_n merciful_a gain_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o be_v free_v from_o the_o punishment_n which_o torment_v they_o 11._o i_o be_o force_v to_o wave_v a_o world_n of_o other_o testimony_n most_o pertinent_o produce_v by_o this_o learned_a author_n for_o our_o catholic_n verity_n page_n 56._o he_o show_v that_o as_o well_o the_o ancient_n as_o modern_a greek_n acknowledge_v tradition_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a a_o apostolical_a tradition_n the_o continue_a practice_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a to_o have_v come_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o confirmation_n of_o it_o cite_v gennadius_n the_o patriarch_n s._n chrysostom_n hom._n 69._o ad_fw-la populum_fw-la express_o approve_v the_o doctrine_n who_o also_o say_v much_o help_n be_v afford_v the_o dead_a by_o prayer_n this_o be_v again_o confirm_v pag._n 63._o by_o the_o ancient_a testimony_n of_o s._n dionysius_n sive_fw-la quis_fw-la alius_fw-la ecclesiast_fw-la hier._n c._n 3._o by_o holy_a ephrem_n last_o will_v and_o testament_n and_o other_o page_n 93._o and_o 94._o he_o prove_v more_o ample_o 〈…〉_o at_o these_o prayer_n be_v make_v for_o a_o delivery_n of_o soul_n 〈…〉_o be_o pain_n from_o grief_n mourn_v affliction_n and_o torment_v as_o be_v now_o declare_v page_n 104._o he_o show_v the_o sufferance_n imaginary_a the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n be_v real_o great_a not_o slight_a or_o imaginary_a of_o these_o depart_v in_o purgatory_n not_o to_o ●_o a_o slight_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o some_o
the_o greek_n teach_v and_o do_v not_o slight_v the_o man_n for_z he_o have_v the_o repute_n of_o a_o most_o learned_a scholar_n the_o whole_a world_n over_o however_o if_o you_o set_v light_a by_o his_o person_n answer_v his_o argument_n his_o reason_n and_o most_o convince_v authority_n 14._o if_o any_o one_o desire_n to_o know_v more_o of_o what_o the_o greek_a church_n hold_v concern_v the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n he_o may_v read_v alatius_fw-la page_n 200._o where_o he_o cite_v s._n basil_n and_o other_o for_o a_o purgation_n by_o fire_n you_o have_v much_o also_o sire_n purgation_n by_o sire_n of_o this_o whole_a subject_n in_o his_o book_n against_o hottinger_n where_o he_o prove_v page_n 130._o chap._n 10._o that_o the_o greek_n pray_v for_o the_o releasement_n of_o soul_n from_o their_o tear_n and_o torment_n and_o that_o after_o the_o end_v of_o such_o punishment_n punishment_n and_o pass_v into_o happiness_n after_o punishment_n they_o may_v pass_v to_o eternal_a happiness_n in_o ecclesia_fw-la graecorum_n say_v he_o pagina_fw-la 155._o cap._n 11._o vnus_fw-la fere_n est_fw-la consensus_fw-la omnium_fw-la graecorum_n etc._n etc._n almost_o all_o the_o greek_n even_o those_o who_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n agree_v so_o far_o with_o vision_n the_o bless_a after_o this_o life_n enjoy_v the_o beatifical_a vision_n he_o that_o the_o bless_a after_o this_o life_n enjoy_v the_o beatifical_a vision_n with_o the_o angel_n and_o see_v god_n fancy_n ad_fw-la faciem_fw-la now_o sir_n if_o you_o will_v have_v a_o answer_n though_o it_o merit_v none_o to_o the_o pretty_a jeer_n you_o begin_v with_o concern_v the_o vast_a income_n of_o the_o church_n by_o indulgence_n rivet_n call_v they_o pontificias_fw-la emulgentias_fw-la read_v alatius_fw-la page_n 223._o chap._n 12._o where_o he_o wash_v away_o the_o calumny_n and_o show_v how_o severe_o the_o church_n proceed_v in_o this_o particular_a charge_v all_o officer_n of_o the_o court_n not_o to_o take_v indulgence_n no_o salary_n for_o indulgence_n so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o salary_n for_o the_o very_a parchment_n for_o the_o writing_n or_o any_o other_o labour_n belong_v to_o the_o indulgence_n and_o to_o avoid_v all_o deceit_n this_o superscription_n go_v with_o the_o indulgence_n gratis_o etiam_fw-la quoad_fw-la scripturam_fw-la all_o be_v frank_o do_v without_o reward_n or_o recompense_v 15._o you_o may_v return_v once_o more_o to_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr vtriusque_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la consensione_n and_o page_n 272._o find_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n profess_v and_o believe_v as_o well_o by_o the_o syrian_n armenian_n and_o other_o fastern_a nation_n that_o profess_v christianity_n as_o by_o the_o greek_n themselves_o abraham_n ecchelensis_fw-la a_o maronit_fw-la say_v alatius_fw-la and_o one_o no_o less_o skilful_a purgatory_n the_o eastern_a church_n beside_o the_o greek_n believe_v a_o purgatory_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n then_o in_o the_o oriental_a language_n in_o his_o note_n upon_o hebedieusu_n bishop_n of_o sobae_fw-la express_o mantain_n the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n and_o say_v the_o roman_a church_n innovate_v nothing_o in_o this_o particular_a teach_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v read_v in_o s._n ephrem_n church_n s._n ephrem_n office_n accord_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n office_n sive_fw-la spec●et_fw-la id_fw-la ad_fw-la purgatorium_fw-la ignem_fw-la sive_fw-la ad_fw-la remissionem_fw-la delictorum_fw-la whether_o that_o relate_v to_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n or_o to_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n after_o death_n much_o more_o be_v there_o allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n but_o the_o work_n will_v be_v endless_a shall_v we_o transcribe_v the_o half_a of_o his_o quotation_n yet_o one_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v omit_v which_o he_o as_o large_o as_o learned_o prove_v chief_o from_o page_n 268._o to_o page_n 300._o and_o it_o be_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n purgatory_n the_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n believe_v purgatory_n of_o the_o jew_n believe_v a_o purgatory_n he_o first_o urge_v that_o know_a passage_n of_o scripture_n machab._n lib._n 2._o c._n 12._o which_o though_o it_o be_v not_o scripture_n as_o sectary_n pretend_v yet_o the_o book_n be_v of_o great_a authority_n and_o be_v never_o tax_v of_o error_n by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o any_o orthodox_n writer_n since_o christ_n and_o therefore_o can_v but_o be_v reckon_v of_o as_o a_o undoubted_a history_n next_o he_o produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o no_o few_o learned_a rabbin_n from_o page_n 278._o whereby_o we_o have_v assurance_n that_o the_o hebrew_n also_o and_o the_o fire_n of_o it_o also_o church_n indubitable_o believe_v not_o only_o a_o purgatory_n but_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n also_o and_o here_o be_v it_o worth_a the_o labour_n i_o can_v charge_v my_o margin_n with_o hebrew_n enough_o borrow_v from_o alatius_fw-la as_o sectary_n usual_o do_v they_o with_o greek_n and_o latin_a i_o know_v a_o little_a and_o it_o be_v little_a enough_o of_o that_o language_n but_o i_o slight_v such_o paedantry_n too_o manifest_a a_o brag_n of_o nothing_o good_a displease_v ostentation_n ever_o displease_v apparel_n need_v no_o ribbon_n nor_o a_o solid_a discourse_n so_o much_o margent-bravery_n of_o hebrew_n greek_a and_o latin_n if_o any_o particular_a emphasis_n lie_v in_o a_o greek_a or_o hebrew_n word_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o while_n to_o search_v into_o it_o but_o too_o much_o of_o the_o flourish_a when_o every_o boy_n can_v transcribe_v a_o greek_a or_o latin_a sentence_n if_o he_o have_v a_o book_n before_o he_o relish_v not_o for_o it_o only_o serve_v to_o show_v how_o vain_o affectation_n creep'_v in_o under_o a_o colour_n of_o learning_n yet_o if_o this_o be_v the_o new_a mode_n of_o sectary_n let_v it_o pass_v it_o be_v one_o of_o their_o least_o transgression_n 16._o well_o not_o to_o forget_v alatius_fw-la page_n 277._o cite_v you_o r._n menachem_n calomiti_n who_o write_n be_v yet_o preserve_v in_o the_o vatican_n library_n and_o this_o rabbi_n rabbin_n testimony_n of_o the_o rabbin_n tell_v we_o we_o what_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o hebrew_n church_n be_v much_o to_o this_o sense_n that_o if_o any_o soul_n be_v infect_v with_o pride_n or_o error_n it_o be_v necessary_a before_o its_o entrance_n into_o paradise_n to_o be_v wash_v and_o cleanse_v by_o fire_n in_o a_o place_n above_o hell_n you_o have_v yet_o a_o clear_a testimony_n take_v out_o soul_n the_o jew_n distinguish_v a_o triple_a state_n of_o soul_n of_o the_o thalmud_n massecher_n quote_v page_n 292._o where_o a_o triple_a state_n of_o soul_n be_v distinguish_v of_o perfect_o just_a of_o impious_o wicked_a and_o of_o a_o three_o sort_n who_o be_v first_o to_o descend_v to_o a_o place_n of_o torment_n to_o be_v try_v by_o fire_n as_o gold_n be_v and_o for_o the_o relief_n of_o such_o imprison_a captive_n judas_n macchabaeus_n send_v twelve_o thousand_o drachma_n of_o silver_n to_o jerusalem_n as_o a_o oblation_n the_o conclusion_n therefore_o be_v sancta_fw-la &_o salutaris_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v a_o holy_a and_o wholesome_a cogitation_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a that_o they_o may_v be_v free_v from_o their_o sin_n but_o enough_o of_o this_o subject_n if_o you_o desire_v further_a instruction_n from_o the_o rabbin_n concern_v purgatory_n read_v alatius_fw-la now_o cite_v chap._n iu._n a_o parallel_n of_o proof_n for_o and_o against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n a_o solution_n to_o our_o adversary_n late_a objection_n 1._o we_o come_v now_o to_o a_o just_a ttial_a of_o the_o eause_n to_o proof_n and_o principle_n pray_v you_o observe_v we_o will_v balance_v all_o without_o partiality_n and_o make_v the_o parallel_n as_o it_o true_o be_v the_o question_n right_o state_v the_o question_n true_o state_v state_v be_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o three_o place_n distinct_a from_o heaven_n and_o hell_n wherein_o soul_n depart_v this_o life_n suffer_v a_o temporal_a punishment_n from_o which_o punishment_n they_o be_v free_v nomine_fw-la no_o dispute_n de_fw-fr nomine_fw-la by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n call_v it_o purgatory_n or_o otherwise_o it_o matter_n be_v nothing_o we_o dispute_v de_fw-fr re_fw-mi not_o the_o nomine_fw-la sectary_n hold_v the_o negative_a catholic_n the_o affirmative_a and_o here_o be_v our_o first_o principle_n 2._o what_o christ_n true_a church_n and_o all_o other_o church_n proof_n the_o first_o and_o most_o convince_a proof_n in_o the_o world_n denominate_v christian_n profess_v and_o believe_v can_v but_o be_v a_o undoubted_a verity_n but_o christ_n true_a church_n and_o all_o other_o church_n with_o it_o profess_v and_o believe_v that_o three_o place_n of_o torment_n as_o also_o a_o deliverance_n of_o soul_n from_o it_o by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n ergo_fw-la that_o doctrine_n be_v a_o undoubted_a verity_n the_o major_n be_v evident_o prove_v in_o the_o precedent_n chapter_n for_o the_o true_a roman_a catholic_n church_n the_o greek_a church_n and_o those_o more_o eastern_a church_n with_o the_o
ancient_a orthodox_n church_n of_o the_o jew_n undeniable_o profess_v and_o believe_v this_o doctrine_n none_o can_v gainsay_v the_o proposition_n principle_n the_o consent_n of_o act_n church_n a_o strong_a principle_n the_o minor_a be_v as_o certain_a for_o no_o authority_n under_o heaven_n plain_a scripture_n except_v can_v be_v great_a than_o the_o vnanimous_a consent_n of_o all_o curche_n no_o contrary_a judgement_n be_v able_a to_o struggle_v with_o so_o much_o strength_n therefore_o put_v the_o case_n first_o you_o will_v so_o the_o supposition_n hold_v not_o the_o facto_fw-la for_o no_o father_n teach_v so_o have_v what_o i_o will_v say_v better_o evidence_v upon_o a_o supposition_n that_o more_o than_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n shall_v express_o deny_v a_o purgatory_n whilst_o all_o church_n teach_v the_o contrary_n suppose_v second_o that_o god_n shall_v command_v i_o to_o believe_v the_o one_o or_o other_o and_o that_o which_o prudence_n evident_o tell_v we_o i_o be_v the_o most_o supposition_n what_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o upon_o the_o supposition_n credible_a i_o be_o oblige_v if_o i_o proceed_v rational_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v evident_o the_o strong_a proof_n and_o to_o deny_v the_o father_n authority_n therefore_o i_o be_o bind_v much_o more_o to_o yield_v my_o assent_n now_o when_o all_o church_n affirm_v the_o doctrine_n and_o not_o one_o father_n deny_v it_o and_o our_o very_a adversary_n must_v say_v as_o much_o as_o i_o prove_v for_o do_v not_o they_o own_o the_o holy_a book_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n how_o consequent_o assert_v sect_n 〈…〉_o es_fw-ge must_v grant_v what_o be_v now_o assert_v they_o proceed_v i_o dispute_v not_o because_o all_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n do_v so_o if_o therefore_o that_o authority_n be_v warrant_n enough_o for_o a_o bible_n it_o be_v as_o weighty_a for_o the_o doctrine_n we_o stand_v for_o and_o this_o be_v my_o conclusion_n perhaps_o you_o will_v say_v very_o objection_n a_o objection_n many_o among_o the_o schismatical_a church_n deny_v a_o purgatory_n contra._n and_o very_o many_o also_o deny_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n you_o admit_v of_o do_v this_o make_v the_o bible_n of_o less_o esteem_n among_o you_o know_v therefore_o we_o speak_v here_o of_o church_n authority_n and_o not_o of_o doctrine_n schismatic_n recede_v from_o a_o church_n weaken_v not_o the_o church_n doctrine_n schismatical_a party_n recede_v from_o those_o respective_a church_n whereof_o they_o be_v once_o member_n know_v also_o that_o the_o self-opinion_n of_o such_o partisan_n be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o sentiment_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n against_o they_o you_o may_v reply_v again_o we_o be_v now_o force_v to_o make_v use_n of_o schismatical_a church_n to_o defend_v our_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n answer_n no_o such_o matter_n we_o need_v not_o their_o help_n but_o say_v salutem_fw-la ex_fw-la inimicis_fw-la nostris_fw-la when_o adversary_n agree_v with_o we_o in_o a_o truth_n it_o be_v a_o advantage_n to_o our_o cause_n witness_n upon_o this_o account_n be_v multiply_v et_fw-la vox_fw-la populi_fw-la vox_fw-la dei_fw-la if_o advantage_n the_o number_n of_o withness_n for_o a_o truth_n give_v some_o advantage_n all_o teach_v as_o we_o do_v it_o be_v certain_a we_o profess_v no_o erroneous_a doctrine_n at_o least_o the_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la against_o sectary_n have_v place_n who_o value_n so_o much_o of_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o heterodox_n christian_n we_o care_v not_o for_o more_o beside_o the_o greek_a church_n when_o it_o be_v most_o orthodox_n pray_v for_o the_o dead_a in_o a_o state_n of_o sufferance_n as_o be_v already_o prove_v 3._o weigh_v now_o well_o the_o reason_n pro_fw-la and_o con._n weigh_v reason_n pro_fw-la and_o con_v be_v weigh_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n defend_v a_o purgatory_n that_o be_v a_o place_n wherein_o soul_n be_v temporal_o punish_v no_o church_n repute_v orthodox_n ever_o deny_v it_o i_o say_v more_o no_o schismatical_a church_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o church_n contradict_v that_o doctrine_n therefore_o our_o profess_a faith_n be_v undoubted_o certain_a upon_o this_o very_a ground_n or_o if_o it_o be_v not_o one_o may_v call_v the_o primary_n article_n of_o our_o faith_n into_o question_n and_o principle_n the_o parallel_n all_o and_o none_o a_o clear_a conviction_n the_o second_o principle_n thus_o you_o have_v the_o first_o parallel_n all_o church_n stand_v for_o our_o affirmative_a no_o church_n defend'_v the_o contrary_a negative_a of_o sectary_n a_o most_o evident_a conviction_n a_o powerful_a proof_n against_o this_o heresy_n 4._o the_o second_o principle_n be_v s._n augustine_n know_v doctrine_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la contra_fw-la donatistas_n lib._n 4._o c._n 24._o quod_fw-la universa_fw-la tenet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nec_fw-la consiliis_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n hold_v and_o be_v not_o first_o institute_v by_o council_n tradition_n what_o all_o believe_v be_v apostolical_a tradition_n but_o ever_o in_o use_n and_o retain_v recte_fw-la creditur_fw-la be_v right_o believe_v to_o be_v no_o other_o but_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n but_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n pray_v for_o soul_n depart_v with_o intention_n to_o free_v they_o from_o a_o temporal_a punishment_n the_o greek_n the_o latin_n and_o the_o ancient_a hebrew_n pray_v so_o as_o be_v already_o prove_v and_o this_o have_v no_o first_o rise_v from_o any_o decree_n terment_n no_o sectary_n can_v say_v when_o the_o church_n first_o begin_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a suffer_v terment_n of_o council_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o truth_n alatius_fw-la further_o demonstrat'_v upon_o several_a occasion_n ponder_v therefore_o thing_n impartial_o and_o ask_v now_o what_o tradition_n have_v sectary_n for_o their_o negative_a the_o dead_a be_v not_o assist_v by_o prayer_n they_o have_v none_o they_o be_v here_o put_v to_o silence_n for_o neither_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n nor_o of_o any_o part_n of_o it_o repute_a orthodox_n ever_o favour_v their_o opinion_n or_o deliver_v what_o they_o teach_v make_v then_o the_o comparison_n all_o tradition_n be_v for_o our_o catholic_n verity_n parallel_n the_o parallel_n and_o nothing_o like_o tradition_n for_o the_o contrary_a heresy_n all_o and_o nothing_o make_v a_o strange_a parallel_n and_o so_o it_o be_v at_o present_a 5._o the_o three_o principle_n many_o ancient_a and_o learned_a father_n so_o interpret_v those_o know_a passage_n of_o holy_a principle_n scripture_n interprrt_v by_o father_n a_o three_o principle_n scripture_n usual_o allege_v for_o a_o proof_n of_o purgatory_n that_o scripture_n itself_o speak_v what_o the_o church_n teach_v not_o one_o father_n give_v such_o a_o sense_n to_o scripture_n as_o may_v ground_n a_o positive_a or_o absolute_a denial_n of_o purgatory_n i_o can_v insist_v upon_o all_o take_v for_o a_o instance_n that_o one_o passage_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 3._o he_o shall_v so_o yet_o be_v save_v as_o by_o fire_n and_o know_v that_o beside_o those_o learned_a note_n of_o bellarmin_n upon_o the_o text_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr purg._n cap._n 5._o and_o the_o bellarmin_n bellarmin_n father_n there_o quote_v most_o significant_o express_v the_o catholic_n sense_n leo_fw-la alatius_fw-la produce_v other_o and_z page_z alatius_fw-la leo_fw-la alatius_fw-la 311._o cites_n manuel_n caleca_n a_o more_o modern_a author_n lib._n 4._o contra_fw-la graecos_n who_o say_v the_o place_n can_v be_v understand_v of_o hell_n fire_n for_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o a_o fire_n whereby_o soul_n be_v save_v which_o be_v not_o the_o fire_n of_o hell_n but_o a_o purge_v reason_n manuel_n caleca_n his_o reason_n fire_n and_o by_o this_o they_o be_v to_o pass_v to_o happiness_n and_o so_o much_o the_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o per_n which_o insinuate_v a_o pass_o strong_o signify_v thus_o caleca_n who_o have_v much_o more_o to_o our_o purpose_n it_o be_v true_a some_o author_n think_v the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o fire_n of_o tribulation_n other_o though_o less_o probable_o of_o the_o last_o burn_v of_o the_o purgatory_n no_o father_n make_v scripture_n to_o deny_v a_o purgatory_n world_n but_o no_o father_n make_v the_o text_n or_o any_o other_o of_o scripture_n positive_o exclusive_a of_o purgatory_n for_o this_o be_v no_o consequence_n we_o be_v to_o pass_v through_o tribulation_n and_o the_o fire_n also_o at_o the_o judgement_n day_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v no_o penalty_n to_o be_v endure_v in_o a_o three_o place_n here_o you_o have_v a_o other_o parallel_n most_o learned_a father_n interpret_v parallele_v the_o parallele_v scripture_n conformable_o to_o the_o church_n doctrine_n not_o one_o positive_o favour_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o sectary_n judge_v you_o therefore_o and_o cast_v as_o it_o be_v into_o a_o balance_n the_o express_a sentiment_n of_o many_o against_o
none_o and_o see_v where_o the_o great_a weight_n lie_v 6._o the_o four_o principle_n be_v the_o express_a doctrine_n of_o principle_n the_o four_o principle_n father_n themselves_o as_o well_o greek_n as_o latin_a whether_o it_o be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n on_o tradition_n or_o both_o matter_n not_o at_o present_a here_o we_o only_o appeal_v to_o the_o their_o positive_a doctrine_n to_o transcribe_v all_o they_o have_v say_v on_o this_o subject_n will_v be_v a_o long_a work_n bellarmin_n now_o cite_v cap._n 10._o have_v many_o leo_fw-la alatius_fw-la add_v other_o doctrine_n greek_n author_n favour_v the_o church_n doctrine_n greek_a author_n as_o well_o orthodox_n as_o of_o schismatical_a from_o his_o 57_o page_n there_o you_o have_v gennadius_n the_o patriarch_n st._n epiphanius_n express_v to_o our_o purpose_n s._n chrysostom_n hom._n 69._o ad_fw-la populum_fw-la and_o s._n damascen_n both_o approve_v and_o praise_v s._n chrysostoms_n doctrine_n eustrati●s_v priest_n of_o constantinople_n michaël_n glycas_n a_o schismatic_a eugenicus_n nomophilax_n adversus_fw-la synodum_fw-la florentinam_fw-la meletius_n alexandrinus_n epistolâ_fw-la ad_fw-la chios_n who_o say_v express_o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o ground_v also_o in_o scripture_n to_o hold_v that_o the_o dead_a have_v great_a assistance_n by_o the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o live_n but_o let_v we_o return_v to_o the_o more_o know_a authority_n of_o father_n s._n denis_n or_o some_o other_o grave_a author_n eccles_n hierarch_n cap_n 7._o part_n 3._o say_v that_o chrysostom_n dionysius_n s._n cyril_n of_o hi●r_n s._n chrysostom_n the_o venerable_a prelate_n pray_v over_o the_o dead_a to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o his_o have_v commit_v through_o human_a frailty_n may_v be_v forgive_v he_o say_v i_o beseech_v you_o what_o signify_v this_o remission_n of_o sin_n obtainable_a by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o prelate_n s._n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n mystag_n 5._o we_o make_v prayer_n and_o offer_v up_o the_o dreadful_a sacrifice_n on_o the_o altar_n for_o the_o dead_a believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o mighty_a help_n for_o their_o soul_n what_o can_v be_v more_o plain_a popery_n s._n chrysostom_n hom._n 21._o in_o acta_fw-la alatius_fw-la quote_v the_o word_n in_o his_o own_o language_n which_o begin_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n god_n say_v he_o have_v lay_v open_a to_o we_o many_o way_n to_o salvation_n oblation_n dead_a oblation_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a prayer_n and_o alm_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o thing_n vain_o do_v in_o their_o behalf_n no_o they_o be_v institute_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o will_n be_v that_o we_o endeavour_v to_o help_v one_o a_o other_o be_v most_o assure_v the_o dead_a have_v much_o profit_n by_o our_o orison_n the_o saint_n have_v more_o to_o this_o purpose_n in_o his_o 41._o hom._n upon_o the_o first_o of_o the_o corr._n theodoret_n cite_v by_o alatius_fw-la page_n 71._o lib._n 5._o histor_n cap._n 36._o tell_v we_o us_o that_o theodosius_n the_o young_a lay_v prostrate_a at_o the_o relic_n of_o s._n chrysostom_n pra_v for_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o decease_a parent_n arcadius_n and_o eudoxi●_n that_o god_n will_v grant_v they_o pardon_v for_o their_o offence_n etc._n etc._n alatius_fw-la beside_o these_o cite_v theophylact_v s._n cyril_n of_o alexandria_n metaphrastes_n and_o other_o greek_a author_n you_o have_v the_o latin_a father_n large_o quote_v by_o bellarmin_n supra_fw-la cap._n 10._o and_o their_o word_n be_v so_o plain_a for_o our_o doctrine_n also_o the_o latin_a father_n accord_n also_o special_o s._n augustine_n that_o none_o without_o violence_n can_v draw_v they_o to_o any_o other_o sense_n then_o what_o the_o church_n teach_v most_o sure_o you_o will_v now_o expect_v that_o sectary_n answer_v we_o with_o like_a measure_n and_o give_v in_o lieu_n of_o these_o testimony_n brief_o hint_v at_o other_o as_o clear_a and_o significant_a for_o their_o opinion_n and_o this_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o when_o beside_o the_o allege_a authority_n we_o have_v a_o ample_n ancient_a and_o learned_a church_n that_o speak_v in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o father_n and_o teach_v the_o very_a doctrine_n they_o deliver_v but_o all_o be_v contrary_a 7._o i_o will_v tell_v you_o a_o great_a truth_n and_o it_o be_v worth_a a_o serious_a reflection_n sectary_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o ancient_a father_n greek_a or_o latin_a not_o one_o ancient_a writer_n author_n sectary_n want_v of_o author_n repute_v orthodox_n not_o one_o council_n new_a or_o old_a not_o one_o word_n of_o scripture_n that_o either_o positive_o and_o express_o deny_v a_o purgatory_n or_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a or_o the_o relief_n we_o now_o plead_v for_o afford_v they_o in_o a_o place_n of_o punishment_n what_o not_o one_o no._n parallel_n parallel_n the_o parallel_n therefore_o many_o with_o none_o and_o you_o will_v se_fw-mi what_o foundation_n our_o adversary_n novelty_n stand_v on_o i_o say_v express_o and_o positive_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o sectary_n procede_v as_o well_o in_o this_o as_o in_o other_o controversy_n argue_v sectary_n way_n of_o argue_v here_o they_o will_v first_o be_v upon_o you_o with_o their_o negative_a way_n of_o argue_v we_o read_v no_o such_o word_n as_o purgatory_n in_o the_o ancient_a father_n 2._o you_o may_v have_v a_o company_n of_o blind_a inference_n draw_v from_o scripture_n and_o father_n before_o the_o sense_n of_o either_o be_v agree_v know_v they_o make_v deduction_n from_o scripture_n before_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v know_v on_o 3._o as_o far_o as_o conjecture_n can_v reach_v they_o will_v set_v gloss_n enough_o upon_o the_o best_a testimony_n allegeable_a out_o of_o scripture_n or_o father_n etc._n etc._n but_o mark_v it_o all_o this_o while_o you_o have_v nothing_o express_v nothing_o positive_a and_o significant_a against_o we_o and_o do_v they_o think_v that_o a_o mere_a negative_a argument_n have_v force_n enough_o to_o overthrow_v a_o doctrine_n positive_o profess_v by_o a_o whole_a church_n and_o so_o many_o learned_a father_n can_v they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o their_o inference_n force_v from_o scripture_n or_o father_n be_v of_o any_o validity_n whilst_o the_o very_a sense_n of_o both_o lie_n under_o dispute_n take_v for_o a_o instance_n instance_n a_o instance_n that_o of_o s._n john_n apocal._n 14._o bless_a be_v the_o dead_a that_o dye_n in_o our_o lord_n amodo_fw-la from_o hence_o forth_o they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n the_o question_n be_v what_o amodo_fw-la relate_v to_o whether_o to_o the_o day_n of_o every_o man_n death_n or_o to_o the_o last_o judgement_n day_n whether_o the_o scripture_n speak_v there_o of_o perfect_a soul_n only_o or_o of_o other_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o that_o word_n labour_v for_o if_o it_o signify_v the_o sufferance_n and_o persecution_n of_o this_o present_a life_n the_o text_n prove_v nothing_o for_o our_o adversary_n notwithstanding_o all_o these_o doubt_n undecided_a their_o inference_n go_v on_o and_o it_o be_v that_o s._n john_n here_o exclude_v all_o sufferance_n in_o purgatory_n alas_o such_o deduction_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o oppose_v deduction_n weak_a deduction_n a_o express_a own_a doctrine_n all_o over_o the_o world_n as_o be_v now_o prove_v yet_o you_o have_v no_o better_o from_o these_o man_n nothing_o express_v nothing_o open_o significant_a against_o we_o 8._o i_o touch_v in_o the_o last_o place_n on_o sectary_n gloss_n and_o interpretation_n force_v on_o such_o testimony_n as_o be_v usual_o cite_v for_o our_o catholic_n faith_n and_o here_o proceed_v how_o different_o catholic_n and_o sectary_n proceed_v i_o will_v brief_o discover_v not_o only_o their_o cheat_n but_o moreover_o show_v you_o how_o different_o we_o and_o they_o proceed_v as_o well_o in_o this_o present_a controversy_n as_o in_o all_o other_o dispute_v between_o we_o observe_v well_o the_o truth_n be_v thus_o when_o we_o produce_v scripture_n council_n or_o father_n against_o their_o novelty_n they_o make_v their_o own_o interpretation_n to_o be_v the_o last_o and_o sure_a ground_n whereon_o explicate_v the_o sectary_n make_v the_o last_o ground_n of_o his_o opinion_n to_o be_v his_o own_o explication_n the_o catholic_n have_v his_o religion_n prove_v before_o he_o explicate_v their_o maintain_v opinion_n ultimate_o rely_v contrariwise_o the_o catholic_n never_o interpret_n scripture_n or_o father_n allege_v by_o sectary_n but_o he_o ground_n his_o gloss_n on_o a_o sure_a principle_n than_o his_o sole_a explication_n reach_v to_o i_o will_v explicate_v myself_o more_o clear_o by_o one_o instance_n beside_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o church_n and_o all_o other_o society_n call_v christian_n we_o allege_v for_o example_n st._n denis_n his_o testimony_n st._n chrysostoms_n or_o any_o other_o to_o prove_v that_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a avail_n much_o for_o their_o comfort_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v for_o the_o lessen_v of_o the_o pain_n due_a to_o sin_n
punishment_n st._n austin_n only_o doubt_v of_o one_o particular_a punishment_n it_o here_o but_o only_o call_v such_o a_o particular_a pain_n into_o question_n as_o be_v expiatory_a of_o lesser_a fault_n because_o as_o i_o tell_v you_o he_o hold_v these_o lesser_a transgression_n usual_o take_v away_o by_o sufferance_n endure_v in_o this_o life_n conclude_v therefore_o unless_o this_o inference_n be_v good_a st._n austin_n doubt_v whether_o some_o fault_n be_v punish_v in_o purgatory_n we_o the_o testimony_n show_v forceles_a against_o we_o ergo_fw-la he_o think_v none_o be_v expiate_v there_o which_o be_v not_o probable_a the_o allege_a testimony_n be_v of_o no_o force_n against_o we_o yet_o prove_v that_o you_o read_v not_o st._n austin_n too_o well_o now_o if_o you_o say_v my_o gloss_n upon_o this_o authority_n be_v not_o certain_a i_o answer_v no_o more_o will_v you_o be_v when_o you_o have_v interpret_v all_o you_o can_v therefore_o neither_o of_o we_o yet_o come_v to_o a_o certain_a principle_n and_o consequent_o you_o must_v produce_v a_o far_o clear_a authority_n before_o you_o ask_v again_o whether_o any_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n can_v think_v that_o st._n austin_n speak_v this_o of_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n suppose_v all_o sure_a for_o your_o interpretation_n which_o to_o i_o and_o i_o think_v to_o other_o also_o that_o know_v latin_a and_o sense_n will_v not_o appear_v probable_a it_o be_v not_o my_o task_n to_o quote_v passage_n a_o parallel_n of_o clear_a and_o doubtful_a passage_n here_o at_o large_a those_o most_o clear_a testimony_n of_o st._n austin_n for_o our_o catholic_n verity_n yet_o i_o will_v give_v you_o one_o and_o wish_v you_o to_o parallel_v that_o with_o all_o your_o dubious_a place_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la genesi_fw-la contra_fw-la manichaeos_n cap_n 20._o fine_a those_o book_n be_v of_o undoubted_a authority_n qui_fw-la fortè_fw-la agrum_fw-la suum_fw-la non_fw-la coluerit_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o that_o cultivate_v not_o his_o church_n sectary_n ever_o suppose_v mere_a dubious_a testimony_n to_o have_v more_o force_n then_o most_o clear_a one_o and_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n field_n but_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v overgrow_v with_o thorn_n have_v a_o cur_n on_o he_o in_o all_o he_o do_v in_o this_o life_n et_fw-la post_fw-la hanc_fw-la vitam_fw-la habebit_fw-la vel_fw-la ignem_fw-la purgati●nis_fw-la well_fw-mi penal_a aeternam_fw-la and_o after_o this_o life_n shall_v either_o have_v a_o purgatory_n or_o suffer_v pain_n for_o ever_o thus_o the_o doctor_n and_o every_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n it_o be_v your_o own_o phrase_n can_v but_o think_v he_o speak_v of_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n when_o his_o doctrine_n agree_v with_o the_o belief_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n see_v more_o lib._n 21._o de_fw-la civit._fw-la c._n 16._o where_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o purge_v torment_n after_o death_n as_o also_o in_o psal_n 37._o but_o enough_o of_o this_o point_n 15._o you_o say_v 3._o where_o any_o of_o the_o father_n build_v any_o doctrine_n upon_o the_o sense_n of_o doubtful_a place_n of_o scripture_n we_o have_v no_o further_a reason_n to_o believe_v that_o doctrine_n than_o we_o have_v to_o unprove_v two_o proposition_n more_o unprove_v believe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o those_o place_n so_o that_o in_o this_o case_n the_o enquiry_n be_v take_v off_o from_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n and_o fix_v upon_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o they_o and_o we_o both_o rely_v on_o and_o you_o give_v this_o reason_n for_o since_o the_o father_n pretend_v to_o no_o great_a evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n than_o such_o place_n do_v afford_v it_o be_v the_o great_a reason_n that_o the_o argument_n to_o persuade_v we_o be_v not_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n but_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o place_n itself_o answ_n if_o here_o be_v not_o a_o piece_n of_o most_o doctrine_n confuse_a doctrine_n confuse_a learning_n i_o never_o read_v any_o observe_v well_o your_o own_o proposition_n as_o they_o lie_v in_o order_n first_o the_o father_n be_v suppose_v to_o build_v a_o doctrine_n upon_o the_o sense_n of_o doubtful_a scripture_n and_o than_o you_o say_v you_o have_v no_o further_a reason_n to_o believe_v that_o doctrine_n than_o you_o have_v to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o those_o place_n very_a good_n but_o i_o ask_v by_o what_o light_n can_v you_o better_o come_v to_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o a_o doubtful_a place_n of_o scripture_n than_o the_o father_n do_v if_o the_o meaning_n be_v father_n how_o sectary_n may_v wrong_v both_o scripture_n and_o father_n doubtful_a to_o they_o it_o be_v as_o doubtful_a to_o you_o and_o if_o that_o sense_n which_o you_o draw_v out_o of_o a_o doubtful_a place_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o father_n you_o wrong_v both_o they_o and_o the_o text_n they_o because_o you_o oppose_v their_o judgement_n upon_o a_o mere_a uncertainty_n the_o text_n because_o you_o will_v make_v it_o speak_v your_o sense_n which_o it_o do_v not_o certain_o for_o it_o be_v doubtful_a to_o you_o perhaps_o you_o will_v say_v when_o the_o sense_n be_v doubtful_a neither_o you_o nor_o the_o father_n can_v tell_v what_o to_o make_v of_o it_o and_o therefore_o without_o further_a enquiry_n it_o will_v be_v best_a to_o let_v it_o alone_o and_o remain_v in_o its_o obscurity_n may_v this_o doctrine_n pass_v you_o need_v not_o to_o believe_v a_o great_a part_n of_o scripture_n for_o it_o be_v very_o obscure_a place_n they_o can_v contradict_v the_o father_n explicate_v a_o doubtful_a place_n 2._o you_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n never_o to_o contradict_v the_o father_n interpret_n a_o doubtful_a passage_n for_o and_o it_o be_v very_o good_a reason_n if_o you_o will_v have_v the_o father_n silent_a in_o such_o a_o case_n you_o be_v to_o hold_v your_o peace_n and_o to_o say_v nothing_o against_o they_o your_o second_o proposition_n in_o this_o case_n the_o enquiry_n be_v take_v off_o from_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n and_o fix_v upon_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o they_o and_o we_o both_o rely_v on_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v too_o full_a of_o sense_n for_o most_o assure_o when_o the_o father_n explicate_v a_o dubious_a passage_n their_o judgement_n tend_v to_o declare_v the_o hide_a sense_n of_o it_o why_o therefore_o will_v sense_n no_o sure_a fix_v on_o a_o doubtful_a sense_n you_o take_v their_o judgement_n off_o from_o such_o a●sense_n and_o put_v you_o in_o room_n of_o it_o or_o to_o what_o purpose_n do_v you_o talk_v here_o of_o fix_v upon_o the_o sense_n when_o a_o place_n be_v dubious_a and_o neither_o church_n nor_o father_n must_v be_v believe_v what_o be_v your_o fix_v good_a for_o when_o you_o suppose_v the_o thing_n you_o fix_v on_o to_o be_v doubtful_a and_o your_o felve_n fallible_a if_o you_o say_v you_o must_v come_v to_o a_o certainty_n of_o the_o sense_n by_o tradition_n or_o some_o other_o way_n know_v that_o the_o church_n and_o father_n have_v better_a reason_n to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o such_o light_n than_o any_o sectary_n can_v have_v in_o a_o word_n a_o doubtful_a place_n remain_v still_o doubtful_a or_o dubiouf_o explicate_v can_v never_o beget_v a_o certain_a belief_n in_o you_o or_o any_o yet_o we_o say_v when_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o father_n also_o agree_v in_o a_o explication_n cease_v when_o the_o church_n and_o father_n interpret_v all_o doubt_n cease_v the_o doubt_n cease_v and_o the_o deliver_v sense_n be_v most_o certain_a in_o your_o reason_n for_o since_o they_o etc._n etc._n you_o leap_v from_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o doubtful_a passage_n to_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o place_n itself_o which_o seem_v not_o pertinent_a for_o what_o have_v evidence_n to_o do_v here_o when_o your_o discourse_n be_v only_o of_o a_o doubtful_a sense_n when_o a_o place_n be_v evident_a we_o see_v that_o as_o well_o as_o you_o and_o have_v with_o it_o the_o sentiment_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n and_o consent_v of_o father_n also_o 16._o you_o say_v 4._o after_o some_o talk_n of_o two_o reverend_a primate_fw-la which_o i_o much_o heed_n not_o that_o st._n ambrose_n and_o other_o pray_v for_o the_o bless_a in_o heaven_n ergo_fw-la orison_n purpose_n old_a objection_n renew_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o the_o dead_a prove_v not_o a_o purgatory_n i_o wonder_v you_o weary_a man_n ear_n again_o with_o such_o old_a worn-out_a objection_n you_o or_o your_o brethren_n have_v be_v tell_v many_o and_o many_o a_o time_n that_o no_o father_n no_o church_n remit_v the_o church_n pray_v not_o for_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n to_o be_v release_v from_o temporal_a pain_n or_o to_o have_v sin_n remit_v greek_a or_o latin_a ever_o pray_v that_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n may_v be_v free_v from_o any_o temporal_a pain_n or_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n yet_o not_o only_o the_o father_n
but_o these_o church_n also_o pray_v for_o both_o and_o such_o a_o prayer_n evident_o prove_v a_o purgatory_n bellarmin_n cite_v cap._n 9_o n._n neque_fw-la videtur_fw-la tell_v we_o you_v st._n ambrose_n hope_v well_o of_o theodosius_n and_o therefore_o rejoice_v in_o his_o behalf_n yet_o because_o he_o be_v not_o certain_a of_o his_o possess_n happiness_n he_o pray_v for_o he_o and_o the_o like_a practice_n be_v yet_o in_o the_o church_n when_o man_n of_o great_a virtue_n depart_v this_o life_n we_o pray_v for_o they_o if_o they_o stand_v in_o need_n though_o we_o very_o think_v they_o need_v no_o prayer_n you_o know_v what_o distinction_n st._n austin_n make_v serm._n 17._o de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la apost_n between_o martyr_n and_o other_o pro_fw-la caeteris_fw-la defunctis_fw-la say_v he_o oratur_fw-la we_o pray_v for_o the_o faithful_a soul_n depart_v but_o not_o for_o martyr_n injuria_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o it_o be_v a_o wrong_a to_o pray_v for_o a_o martyr_n cujus_fw-la nos_fw-la debemus_fw-la orationibus_fw-la commendari_fw-la to_o who_o prayer_n other_o st._n augustine_n distinction_n between_o martyr_n and_o other_o we_o be_v to_o commend_v ourselves_o this_o have_v not_o be_v well_o speak_v have_v st._n austin_n think_v that_o the_o bless_a in_o heaven_n need_v our_o prayer_n as_o much_o as_o other_o do_v if_o you_o desire_v more_o of_o this_o subject_n or_o will_v know_v how_o the_o greek_a church_n pray_v for_o saint_n read_v leo_fw-la alatius_fw-la de_fw-la consens_fw-la page_n 105._o n._n 15._o where_o he_o tax_v his_o adversary_n alatius_fw-la alatius_fw-la of_o more_o than_o childish_a ignorance_n in_o the_o greek_a affair_n because_o he_o think_v the_o ancient_a church_n intercede_v for_o saint_n how_o the_o greek_a church_n pray_v for_o saint_n saint_n just_a as_o it_o do_v for_o other_o no_o such_o matter_n say_v alatius_fw-la tormentorum_fw-la ac_fw-la poenarum_fw-la nulla_fw-la est_fw-la mentio_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o church_n in_o her_o orison_n for_o saint_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o releasement_n from_o pain_n and_o torment_n but_o pray_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n offer_v up_o to_o god_n may_v be_v to_o his_o glory_n in_o the_o name_n of_o those_o bless_a for_o the_o celestial_a gift_n of_o grace_n bestow_v on_o they_o or_o that_o god_n may_v receive_v most_o large_a and_o ample_a thanks_o from_o they_o for_o the_o great_a glory_n they_o enjoy_v wherefore_o st._n austin_n in_o enchir._n c._n 110._o speak_v conformable_a st._n austin_n be_v conformable_a proper_o pro_fw-la valdè_fw-la sanctis_fw-la gratiarum_fw-la actiones_fw-la sunt_fw-la thanksgiving_n be_v for_o great_a saint_n alatius_fw-la moreover_o cite_v not_o only_o the_o orthodox_n greek_a father_n st._n dionysius_n st._n epiphanius_n objection_n the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o greek_a father_n a_o objection_n st._n chrysostom_n but_o also_o late_a author_n as_o manuel_n caleca_n yea_o and_o those_o of_o the_o schism_n very_o pertinent_o to_o this_o purpose_n some_o perhaps_o will_v say_v we_o may_v pray_v as_o well_o for_o our_o saviour_n as_o for_o saint_n if_o the_o supplication_n for_o they_o to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o give_v of_o thanks_o and_o offer_v up_o of_o such_o a_o sacrifice_n as_o be_v now_o explicate_v if_o any_o one_o i_o say_v cavil_v thus_o st._n epiphanius_n contra_fw-la aërium_fw-la present_o after_o those_o word_n difficulty_n st._n epiphanius_n answer_v the_o difficulty_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n we_o make_v a_o commemoratiom_n of_o the_o just_a crave_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n for_o sinner_n etc._n etc._n answer_v the_o difficulty_n and_o say_v we_o be_v to_o separate_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n from_o the_o order_n of_o other_o man_n because_o of_o the_o special_a honour_n and_o worship_v due_a to_o he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v rank_v with_o other_o mortal_n though_o most_o high_a in_o glory_n whence_o it_o be_v we_o he_o no_o prayer_n make_v for_o christ_n but_o to_o he_o pray_v not_o for_o christ_n no_o more_o than_o for_o god_n because_o of_o his_o supreme_a excellency_n and_o dignity_n above_o all_o other_o whether_o saint_n or_o angel_n but_o offer_v up_o to_o he_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n as_o also_o to_o his_o eternal_a father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o bellarmin_n now_o cite_v well_o observe_v n._n separamus_fw-la 17._o you_o say_v 5._o the_o supplication_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o dead_a respect_a mercy_n and_o forgiveness_n to_o be_v show_v the_o just_a at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o consequent_o be_v intend_v for_o god_n final_a justification_n of_o they_o by_o his_o sentence_n at_o that_o great_a assembly_n to_o prove_v this_o you_o cite_v many_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o tim._n 1._o 16._o 1._o cor._n 1._o 8._o etc._n etc._n answer_v the_o church_n in_o the_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a whilst_o she_o represent_v the_o terror_n of_o that_o scripture_n the_o church_n speak_v conformable_o to_o scripture_n dreadful_a judgement_n speak_v most_o conformable_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o scripture_n and_o as_o if_o that_o day_n be_v to_o be_v the_o first_o trial_n do_v not_o only_o make_v her_o child_n solicitous_a quid_fw-la sum_fw-la miser_n etc._n etc._n what_o then_o miserable_a man_n shall_v i_o say_v what_o patron_n shall_v i_o ask_v for_o when_o the_o just_a will_n hardly_o be_v secure_a but_o moreover_o teach_v they_o to_o petition_v for_o mercy_n ne_o i_o perdas_fw-la destroy_v i_o not_o in_o that_o day_n call_v i_o with_o the_o bless_a etc._n etc._n yet_o this_o inference_n be_v not_o good_n the_o church_n and_o scripture_n speak_v of_o mercy_n and_o forgiveness_n to_o be_v find_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n ergo_fw-la there_o day_n how_o the_o supplication_n of_o the_o church_n respect_v the_o judgement_n day_n be_v no_o three_o place_n of_o punishment_n wherein_o mercy_n be_v show_v before_o judgement_n i_o say_v therefore_o the_o supplication_n of_o the_o church_n for_o mercy_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n respect_v the_o mercy_n don_n we_o before_o hand_n when_o we_o be_v release_v from_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n and_o supra_fw-la condignum_fw-la receive_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n above_o our_o desert_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n i_o understand_v st._n austin_n lib._n 9_o conf._n c._n 11._o we_o etiam_fw-la laudabili_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la etc._n etc._n woe_n be_v to_o the_o worthy_a commendable_a life_n of_o man_n if_o you_o o_o god_n remove_v pity_n and_o discuss_v it_o too_o severe_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o supplication_n for_o these_o intermedial_a mercy_n have_v a_o necessary_a reference_n to_o the_o judgement_n day_n real_o obtain_v before_o but_o when_o the_o judge_n judgement_n mercy_n show_v the_o just_a will_v be_v public_o declare_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n sit_v they_o will_v be_v public_o declare_v and_o make_v know_v before_o god_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o the_o confusion_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o eternal_a comfort_n of_o the_o just_a who_o may_v say_v with_o joyful_a heart_n misericordias_fw-la domini_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o will_v sing_v the_o mercy_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o ever_o and_o sectary_n can_v deny_v this_o doctrine_n for_o do_v not_o they_o hold_v that_o god_n through_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n sectary_n can_v deny_v this_o doctrine_n pardon_v the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o take_v off_o all_o punishment_n from_o the_o elect_n before_o they_o die_v what_o forgiveness_n be_v there_o then_o anew_o to_o be_v expect_v for_o they_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o both_o sin_n and_o punishment_n be_v antecedent_o remit_v yet_o more_o suppose_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o just_a man_n do_v not_o enjoy_v a_o complete_a felicity_n before_o the_o great_a day_n i_o ask_v whether_o they_o sit_v in_o that_o state_n with_o their_o sin_n on_o their_o conscience_n or_o without_o they_o if_o they_o remain_v in_o sin_n all_o sin_n be_v mortal_a with_o sectary_n sin_n no_o pardon_n can_v be_v expect_v at_o the_o judgement_n day_n for_o mortal_a sin_n they_o shall_v never_o be_v pardon_v for_o the_o future_a if_o without_o all_o sin_n they_o need_v neither_o forgiveness_n nor_o pardon_n at_o the_o general_a day_n but_o only_o a_o publication_n a_o confirmation_n of_o that_o mercy_n as_o be_v now_o explicate_v 18._o you_o say_v 6._o since_o we_o confess_v that_o many_o of_o the_o father_n hold_v erroneous_a opinion_n concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o dead_a we_o ought_v not_o to_o press_v you_o with_o their_o testimony_n answer_n we_o go_v not_o about_o it_o but_o error_n sectary_n be_v to_o look_v to_o their_o own_o error_n urge_v you_o to_o prove_v your_o erroneous_a opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o great_a part_n of_o father_n and_o all_o church_n doctrine_n and_o you_o be_v to_o do_v this_o not_o by_o talk_n but_o by_o solid_a proof_n and_o principle_n to_o what_o you_o
will_v not_o insist_v much_o on_o their_o high_a contempt_n of_o these_o sacred_a word_n which_o in_o a_o vulgar_a and_o obvious_a sense_n be_v as_o fall_v as_o if_o i_o shall_v now_o say_v hold_v a_o paper_n in_o my_o hand_n this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o this_o i_o must_v urge_v to_o their_o confusion_n and_o wish_v all_o to_o tak●_n notice_n of_o it_o if_o the_o interpretation_n now_o make_v of_o the_o proposition_n be_v true_a doctrine_n it_o evident_o follow_v that_o christ_n speak_v so_o contrary_a to_o his_o speak_v sectary_n must_v say_v that_o christ_n beguile_v the_o whole_a orthodox_n christian_n world_n by_o the_o most_o serious_a word_n he_o ever_o speak_v mind_n that_o he_o have_v beguile_v the_o whole_a orthodox_n christian_n world_n by_o the_o most_o serious_a word_n he_o ever_o utter_v in_o this_o mortal_a life_n i_o will_v show_v you_o how_o christ_n say_v sectary_n before_o he_o speak_v those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n have_v only_o this_o internal_a act_n or_o judgement_n in_o his_o mind_n that_o which_o i_o will_v now_o give_v to_o my_o disciple_n shall_v be_v nothing_o but_o bread_n only_o or_o a_o bare_a sign_n and_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n for_o sectary_n suppose_v he_o never_o intend_v to_o make_v bread_n his_o body_n yet_o hear_v how_o they_o make_v christ_n to_o speak_v as_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o thought_n i_o will_v say_v eternal_a truth_n though_o i_o know_v that_o that_o shall_v be_v bread_n only_o which_o i_o be_o to_o give_v my_o disciple_n presence_n mark_v the_o injury_n they_o make_v christ_n to_o say_v that_o be_v his_o body_n which_o real_o be_v not_o three_o thing_n evident_a in_o the_o principle_n of_o sectary_n the_o first_o that_o christ_n speak_v improper_o the_o second_o that_o in_o the_o moment_n he_o speak_v he_o foresee_v a_o universal_a pretend_a error_n will_v follow_v in_o all_o orthodox_n church_n the_o three_o that_o this_o universal_a pretend_a error_n will_v proceed_v from_o no_o other_o cause_o but_o from_o his_o improper_a speak_n all_o church_n orthodox_n believe_v the_o real_a presence_n so_o unlucky_o express_v myself_o by_o outward_a word_n as_o to_o miscall_v the_o sign_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o avouch_v that_o to_o be_v my_o body_n which_o real_o shall_v not_o be_v my_o body_n but_o be_v here_o all_o no._n christ_n intend_v more_o in_o these_o man_n opinion_n and_o say_v in_o effect_n thus_o much_o though_o i_o now_o foresee_v that_o a_o universal_a error_n will_v follow_v through_o all_o the_o repute_a orthodox_n church_n of_o christendom_n upon_o my_o dark_a and_o improper_a language_n yet_o i_o will_v speak_v as_o i_o do_v obscure_o and_o beguile_v they_o i_o know_v all_o will_v be_v beguile_v because_o all_o will_v mistake_v my_o mean_v and_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v my_o body_n which_o real_o be_v not_o thus_o i_o foresee_v they_o will_v err_v and_o the_o very_a emphasis_n of_o my_o word_n will_v cause_n this_o now_o pretend_v universal_a error_n among_o them_o therefore_o they_o can_v but_o leave_v off_o to_o be_v orthodox_n for_o a_o church_n err_v in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n or_o that_o adore_v a_o piece_n of_o bread_n for_o god_n be_v absolute_o vnorthodox_n and_o hideous_o fals._n sectary_n you_o see_v grant_v that_o christ_n speak_v thus_o dark_o and_o that_o by_o do_v so_o he_o have_v draw_v all_o the_o repute_a true_a church_n on_o earth_n into_o this_o persuasion_n be_v a_o most_o evident_a truth_n for_o there_o be_v never_o any_o church_n acknowledge_v true_a in_o the_o world_n but_o such_o as_o literal_o understand_v his_o proposition_n in_o its_o plain_n and_o obvious_a sense_n and_o consequent_o all_o church_n believe_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o his_o sacred_a body_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n though_o sectary_n say_v all_o err_v in_o that_o belief_n i_o say_v all_o for_o so_o lanfrancus_fw-la speak_v in_o his_o last_o book_n against_o berengarius_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-fr christianos_n se_fw-la &_o esse_fw-la &_o dici_fw-la laetantur_fw-la all_o who_o be_v glad_a of_o the_o reality_n and_o name_n of_o christian_n glory_n in_o this_o that_o they_o receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o true_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n ask_v of_o all_o whether_o grecian_n armenian_n or_o of_o what_o other_o nation_n soever_o vno_fw-la ore_fw-la hanc_fw-la fidem_fw-la se_fw-la testantur_fw-la babere_fw-la all_o of_o they_o with_o vnanimous_a consent_n open_o witness_n that_o they_o have_v this_o faith_n now_o if_o our_o adversary_n slight_v so_o worthy_a a_o author_n let_v they_o produce_v but_o one_o as_o ancient_n and_o learned_a as_o lanfrancus_fw-la be_v that_o say_v as_o much_o for_o the_o own_n of_o their_o novelty_n of_o a_o trope_n sign_n figure_n only_o etc._n etc._n and_o i_o will_v be_v satisfy_v 11._o and_o here_o we_o come_v to_o the_o last_o trial_n of_o our_o sectary_n cause_v which_o be_v to_o show_v you_o the_o high_a improbability_n of_o their_o new_a fancy_v opinion_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o drive_v they_o of_o all_o possible_a ground_n to_o stand_v on_o and_o demonstrate_v that_o opinion_n the_o last_o trial_n of_o our_o sectary_n cause_n which_o be_v to_o lay_v forth_o the_o improbability_n of_o their_o new_a opinion_n they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o likelihood_n of_o any_o undoubted_a principle_n whereby_o we_o may_v learn_v that_o christ_n our_o lord_n speak_v improper_o in_o the_o passage_n now_o quote_v or_o that_o his_o word_n have_v any_o other_o sense_n then_o what_o they_o express_o signify_v which_o be_v our_o catholic_n doctrine_n chap._n vi_o sectary_n without_o either_o proof_n or_o principle_n wrest_v christ_n word_n to_o a_o improper_a sense_n and_o vent_v a_o heresy_n upon_o mere_a fancy_n 1._o note_n first_o when_o christ_n our_o lord_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n and_o use_v the_o like_a or_o more_o significant_a expression_n register_v by_o the_o other_o evangelist_n he_o do_v not_o only_a institute_n the_o noble_a of_o sacrament_n but_o make_v also_o his_o will_n and_o testament_n he_o publish_v a_o law_n verity_n the_o nature_n of_o a_o noble_a sacrament_n christ_n own_o will_n a_o dogmatical_a verity_n give_v a_o command_n hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la do_v this_o at_o least_o all_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o deliver_v a_o dogmatical_a verity_n concern_v our_o christian_a faith_n and_o do_v this_o in_o such_o grave_a circumstance_n and_o to_o such_o person_n his_o own_o dear_a disciple_n that_o the_o time_n place_n and_o person_n to_o who_o he_o speak_v require_v no_o dark_a but_o most_o plain_a and_o proper_a language_n as_o therefore_o no_o man_n make_v his_o last_o language_n and_o other_o grave_a circumstance_n require_v plain_a and_o proper_a language_n will_n publish_v a_o law_n lay_v a_o express_a command_n on_o any_o or_o deliver_v a_o truth_n which_o all_o be_v to_o learn_v under_o trope_n figure_n metonymy_n or_o such_o obscurity_n thief_n have_v place_n in_o the_o dark_a speak_v of_o prophet_n and_o serve_v well_o to_o set_v forth_o a_o oration_n but_o contrariwise_o in_o obvious_a vulgar_a and_o intelligible_a word_n so_o much_o less_o can_v it_o be_v suppose_v when_o christ_n our_o lord_n speak_v of_o these_o serious_a matter_n that_o he_o deliver_v his_o mind_n in_o obscure_a metaphor_n trope_n or_o any_o such_o expression_n unless_o as_o i_o note_v above_o we_o certain_o know_v by_o more_o writ_n christ_n can_v not_o speak_v so_o obscure_o of_o this_o mystery_n without_o clear_v all_o in_o other_o passage_n of_o holy_a writ_n plain_a scripture_n then_o our_o saviour_n word_n be_v now_o cite_v that_o though_o he_o beguile_v we_o here_o with_o trope_n and_o metaphor_n yet_o in_o other_o passage_n of_o holy_a writ_n he_o clear'_v all_o these_o dark_a expression_n by_o a_o contrary_a language_n and_o speak_v more_o significant_o for_o these_o sign_n of_o sectary_n than_o he_o do_v for_o our_o catholic_n doctrine_n unless_o i_o say_v such_o text_n be_v at_o hand_n nothing_o can_v force_v we_o from_o that_o express_a sense_n which_o the_o gospel_n most_o significant_o deliver_n concern_v this_o mystery_n 2._o note_v 2._o sectary_n advance_v their_o cause_n nothing_o at_o all_o when_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o word_n est_fw-la sometime_o signify_v though_o the_o particle_n est_fw-fr in_o some_o proposition_n may_v be_v interpret_v it_o signify_v import_v as_o much_o as_o if_o we_o say_v signify_v as_o when_o you_o see_v a_o picture_n of_o caesar_n on_o a_o wall_n and_o say_v this_o be_v caesar_n the_o seed_n be_v signify_v the_o word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n can_v this_o be_v prove_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o more_o be_v require_v for_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o show_v and_o by_o a_o vndeniable_a principle_n if_o my_o faith_n rely_v on_o their_o gloss_n
be_v give_v for_o you_o they_o answer_v no._n it_o be_v not_o his_o body_n but_o a_o sign_n only_o of_o his_o body_n give_v for_o we_o observe_v well_o this_o interpretation_n of_o a_o sign_n only_o be_v a_o gloss_n of_o fancy_n for_o neither_o the_o word_n sign_n be_v in_o scripture_n nor_o a_o sign_n only_o be_v any_o ancient_a father_n we_o cite_v again_o that_o unanswerable_a text_n of_o st._n luke_n this_o be_v the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o chalice_n be_v shed_v for_o you_o and_o mark_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o relate_v to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o same_o case_n and_o not_o to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o a_o different_a case_n what_o answer_v our_o sectary_n marry_o beza_n tell_v we_o we_o st._n luke_n here_o either_o speak_v a_o solacism_n or_o a_o marginal_a note_n cre'pt_v by_o chance_n into_o the_o text_n here_o be_v his_o best_a solution_n and_o who_o tell_v we_o mr._n beza_n so_o but_o his_o own_o fancy_n we_o produce_v moreover_o those_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n brief_o hint_v at_o above_o and_o say_v no_o wit_n of_o man_n can_v solve_v they_o chief_o that_o authority_n of_o st._n cyril_n of_o wine_n change_v into_o blood_n as_o water_n be_v once_o change_v into_o wine_n they_o answer_v the_o change_n be_v only_o moral_a of_o wine_n depute_a to_o a_o holy_a use_n which_o be_v against_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o instance_n and_o consequent_o a_o strong_a thought_n of_o fancy_n we_o say_v no_o universal_a tradition_n no_o ancient_a church_n ever_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n concern_v this_o mystery_n herein_o our_o ad_fw-la 〈…〉_o rsary_n be_v silence_v and_o can_v design_n the_o orthodox_n church_n that_o oppose_v our_o doctrine_n as_o both_o we_o and_o the_o whole_a world_n beside_o now_o oppose_v their_o novelty_n parallel_v therefore_o the_o proceed_n of_o sectary_n against_o we_o authority_n a_o parallel_n between_o their_o proceed_v and_o we_o sectary_n mangle_v and_o pervert_v most_o clear_a authority_n with_o we_o against_o they_o and_o you_o will_v find_v they_o to_o stand_v upon_o quicksand_n without_o principle_n the_o very_a strait_n they_o be_v put_v to_o demonstrat_n this_o evident_o whilst_o as_o you_o have_v see_v they_o mangle_v pervert_v misconstrue_v and_o gloss_n every_o clear_a authority_n cite_v against_o they_o and_o we_o on_o the_o other_o side_n candid_o admit_v both_o of_o scripture_n and_o father_n quote_v by_o they_o without_o any_o other_o gloss_n but_o what_o the_o very_a text_n and_o context_n of_o the_o testimony_n allow_v of_o 5._o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o you_o always_o have_v our_o adversary_n proof_n sectary_n bold_a in_o assert_v but_o weak_a at_o their_o proof_n bold_a in_o assert_v but_o cold_a unmanly_a and_o weak_a at_o their_o proof_n beside_o what_o be_v now_o say_v the_o true_a reason_n be_v no_o proof_n can_v touch_v much_o less_o vainquish_v a_o verity_n that_o stand_v firm_a upon_o undeniable_a principle_n plain_a scripture_n the_o vnanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n undeniable_a be_v what_o our_o catholic_n proof_n be_v tradition_n the_o authority_n of_o a_o holy_a and_o universal_a church_n and_o this_o negative_a no_o church_n ever_o blame_v our_o doctrine_n be_v strong_a support_v for_o the_o faith_n we_o profess_v and_o can_v our_o sectary_n who_o be_v as_o scriptureles_a as_o fatherless_a as_o fatherless_a as_o churchles_a and_o final_o destitute_a of_o all_o other_o principle_n think_v to_o dant_fw-la u_fw-mi with_o a_o few_o gleancing_n gather_v them_o sectary_n can_v deny_v them_o now_o out_o of_o this_o now_o out_o of_o that_o ancient_a writter_n when_o they_o evident_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n the_o whole_a torrent_n of_o antiquity_n contrary_n to_o they_o can_v they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o because_o one_o theodoret_n for_o example_n authority_n of_o theodoret_n authority_n say_v the_o mystical_a sign_n after_o the_o sanctification_n recede_v not_o from_o their_o nature_n but_o remain_v in_o their_o first_o substance_n figure_n and_o form_n be_v see_v and_o touch_v as_o before_o which_o word_n be_v literal_o true_a if_o we_o speak_v as_o word_n we_o admit_v of_o his_o word_n this_o author_n do_v of_o the_o visible_a accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n can_v we_o i_o say_v think_v that_o this_o one_o authority_n though_o it_o be_v a_o hundred_o time_n more_o difficil_n have_v weight_n enough_o to_o turn_v the_o scale_n force_v enough_o to_o drive_v we_o from_o the_o faith_n which_o scripture_n church_n and_o father_n most_o manifest_o deliver_v it_o be_v impossible_a clear_a the_o obscure_a place_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n be_v to_o be_v interpret_v by_o the_o clear_a all_o know_v when_o divine_n explicate_v scripture_n or_o father_n they_o interpret_v the_o obscure_a passage_n by_o the_o clear_a and_o never_o make_v the_o dark_a place_n to_o give_v light_n to_o the_o more_o evident_a observe_v now._n theodoret_n say_v the_o mystical_a sign_n recede_v not_o from_o their_o nature_n but_o remain_v as_o before_o i_o say_v so_o too_o the_o only_a difficulty_n be_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o word_n sign_n and_o father_n sectary_n gloss_n without_o proof_n theodoret_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o contradict_v other_o most_o learned_a father_n he_o be_v to_o be_v explicate_v be_v he_o obscure_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o other_o father_n nature_n sectary_n tell_v we_o the_o sense_n be_v bread_n and_o wine_n recede_v not_o from_o their_o true_a substance_n first_o this_o be_v their_o gloss_n without_o proof_n for_o the_o visible_a sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o the_o invisible_a substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n 2._o theodoret_n in_o all_o law_n of_o argue_v when_o his_o plain_a word_n force_v not_o on_o we_o this_o sense_n of_o sectary_n aught_o to_o be_v catholick_o interpret_v and_o have_v we_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o this_o that_o it_o can_v be_v reason_n to_o make_v so_o learned_a a_o father_n though_o once_o he_o stray_v a_o little_a to_o clash_n with_o all_o antiquity_n it_o be_v enough_o at_o most_o his_o word_n be_v doubtful_a and_o upon_o that_o account_n capable_a of_o explication_n be_v it_o not_o therefore_o more_o just_a to_o explicate_v they_o by_o the_o clear_a and_o vndeniable_a doctrine_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n and_o other_o father_n then_o to_o draw_v these_o father_n from_o their_o open_a and_o manifest_a sense_n to_o his_o if_o it_o be_v suppose_v obscure_a as_o in_o truth_n well_o ponder_v it_o be_v not_o let_v reason_n judge_n here._n 6._o by_o what_o be_v say_v already_o we_o may_v well_o pity_v the_o desperate_a condition_n of_o sectary_n who_o pertinacious_o defend_v a_o heresy_n without_o so_o much_o as_o a_o colour_n of_o principle_n sectary_n want_v principle_n scripture_n church_n or_o the_o general_n consent_v of_o father_n for_o these_o principle_n and_o none_o can_v parallel_v they_o most_o evident_o fail_v our_o adversary_n urge_v they_o again_o and_o again_o to_o speak_v more_o pertinent_o to_o their_o cause_n then_o be_v don_n hitherto_o you_o get_v nothing_o but_o the_o old_a story_n tell_v over_o again_o and_o it_o will_v never_o be_v better_o for_o i_o se_fw-mi too_o plain_o their_o humour_n it_o be_v god_n know_v appear_v sectary_n tri_n and_o wherein_o it_o appear_v to_o spend_v or_o rather_o to_o misspend_v their_o whole_a life_n and_o labour_n in_o trifle_n they_o think_v to_o cavil_v at_o the_o proof_n of_o our_o doctrine_n establish_v they_o as_o if_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v their_o novelty_n good_a because_o they_o can_v talk_v against_o our_o ancient_a faith_n just_a as_o if_o one_o to_o prove_v himself_o a_o honest_a man_n may_v do_v it_o pithy_o by_o call_v his_o neighbour_n a_o knave_n 7._o i_o must_v yet_o add_v one_o significant_a word_n more_o and_o it_o be_v very_o necessary_a to_o lay_v forth_o our_o adversary_n weakness_n as_o well_o in_o this_o as_o in_o all_o other_o controversy_n observe_v opponent_n solid_n proof_n for_o a_o doctrine_n stand_v firm_a and_o unshaken_a against_o all_o opponent_n it_o when_o proof_n of_o a_o doctrine_n stand_v on_o solid_a ground_n and_o principle_n the_o objection_n against_o it_o be_v like_o father_n cast_v against_o the_o wind_n forceles_a and_o return_v upon_o the_o opponent_n to_o their_o confusion_n whereof_o i_o think_v you_o have_v already_o see_v enough_o in_o this_o present_a controversy_n but_o contrariwise_o when_o the_o proof_n be_v meager_a barren_a and_o void_a of_o strength_n they_o be_v ever_o so_o with_o sectary_n the_o very_o opposite_a principle_n for_o truth_n dash_v all_o discountenance_n all_o and_o evident_o show_v those_o argument_n to_o be_v feeble_a and_o true_o will_v our_o convince_v do_v sectary_n proceed_v candid_o they_o will_v see_v themselves_o convince_v adversary_n once_o deal_v ingenious_o candour_n will_v
force_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v what_o i_o say_v to_o be_v most_o true_a when_o they_o can_v allege_v nothing_o probable_o for_o their_o novelty_n against_o our_o plain_a scripture_n against_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o a_o universal_a learned_a church_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o so_o many_o father_n now_o cite_v 8._o we_o may_v yet_o entertain_v you_o with_o one_o or_o two_o solve_v difficult_a ●_o draw_v from_o the_o weak_a reason_n of_o sectary_n solve_v difficulty_n more_o draw_v from_o reason_n whereat_o our_o adversary_n measure_v god_n power_n by_o their_o own_o wit_n or_o fancy_n stumble_v not_o a_o little_a one_o be_v a_o body_n can_v be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o just_o so_o the_o peasant_n think_v the_o sun_n can_v be_v big_a than_o a_o broad_a sieve_n because_o never_o learn_v mathematik_n he_o measure_v all_o by_o his_o silly_a imagination_n and_o so_o the_o sectary_n do_v here_o because_o he_o be_v no_o scholar_n in_o christ_n school_n but_o ad_fw-la rem_fw-la who_o tell_v we_o he_o that_o a_o body_n can_v be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o have_v god_n reveal_v this_o in_o scripture_n place_n nit●her_n faith_n nor_o philosophy_n against_o the_o be_v of_o a_o body_n in_o two_o place_n no_o but_o philosophy_n teach_v it_o what_o philosophy_n aristotle_n no_o for_o the_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o his_o school_n be_v that_o a_o body_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o a_o soul_n that_o be_v in_o two_o place_n head_n and_o foot_n at_o once_o individual_o consider_v by_o itself_o be_v no_o more_o actual_o it_o be_v own_o local_a presence_n or_o place_n then_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o eye_n be_v of_o itself_o its_o own_o actual_a vision_n or_o fire_n ungrounded_a a_o body_n be_v not_o by_o itself_o it_o be_v own_o local_a presence_n an_o other_o argument_n of_o sectary_n ungrounded_a by_o itself_o actual_o heat_n this_o be_v common_a philosophy_n if_o that_o of_o sectary_n be_v better_a let_v they_o vouchsafe_v to_o learn_v we_o otherwise_o not_o by_o say_v it_o be_v better_a but_o by_o some_o clear_a and_o vndeniable_a principle_n 9_o an_o other_o argument_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o great_a indignity_n whereunto_o christ_n sacred_a body_n be_v liable_a if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n as_o that_o a_o mouse_n or_o worse_a creature_n may_v eat_v it_o up_o etc._n etc._n here_o we_o may_v just_o exclaim_v with_o st._n austin_n upon_o another_o occasion_n lib._n 22._o de_fw-la civit._fw-la c._n 11._o ecce_fw-la qualibus_fw-la argumentis_fw-la omnipotentiae_fw-la dei_fw-la humana_fw-la contradicit_fw-la infirmitas_fw-la etc._n etc._n se_fw-la with_o what_o slight_a argument_n man_n weak_a wit_n oppose_v god_n omnipotency_n speak_v therefore_o truth_n be_v it_o not_o a_o great_a frivolous_a the_o pretend_a indignity_n of_o sectary_n show_v frivolous_a indignity_n that_o christ_n permitt'_v a_o sinner_n to_o receive_v he_o with_o a_o filthy_a conscience_n then_o that_o he_o lic_v in_o the_o stomach_n of_o a_o rat_n or_o mouse_n say_v yet_o have_v a_o worm_n suke_v his_o precious_a blood_n when_o it_o be_v shed_v on_o the_o ground_n in_o his_o passion_n or_o a_o spider_n bite_v his_o sacred_a flesh_n in_o the_o crib_n of_o bethlem_n will_v that_o indignity_n think_v you_o have_v force_v man_n from_o a_o belief_n of_o his_o real_a true_a body_n these_o be_v childish_a argument_n not_o worth_a the_o answer_v and_o here_o you_o have_v almost_o a_o end_n of_o a_o digression_n which_o i_o think_v can_v be_v well_o answer_v 10._o i_o exceed_v not_o in_o say_v it_o can_v be_v answer_v answer_n some_o point_n brief_o touch_v on_o whereunto_o sectary_n be_v desire_v to_o answer_n and_o therefore_o tell_v our_o adversary_n if_o it_o shall_v please_v they_o to_o reply_n they_o be_v first_o to_o prove_v and_o by_o certain_a principle_n that_o christ_n sacred_a word_n now_o allege_v for_o our_o catholic_n verity_n be_v misunderstand_v by_o we_o and_o aught_o to_o have_v their_o determinate_a sense_n of_o a_o sign_n figure_n metonymy_n and_o no_o other_o what_o we_o here_o require_v be_v most_o reasonable_a for_o if_o my_o faith_n fall_v upon_o their_o sense_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v it_o reveal_v by_o almighty_a god_n otherwise_o principle_n upon_o sound_a principle_n contrary_a to_o all_o reason_n they_o will_v urge_v i_o to_o believe_v what_o a_o infinite_a verity_n never_o speak_v 2._o they_o be_v to_o prove_v and_o by_o a_o clear_a principle_n also_o that_o in_o such_o a_o age_n after_o christ_n there_o be_v a_o orthodox_n church_n that_o believe_v their_o doctrine_n of_o a_o sign_n figure_n metonymy_a only_a etc._n etc._n and_o public_o oppose_v we_o of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o do_v this_o more_o be_v require_v then_o to_o cite_v a_o few_o break_a sentence_n of_o father_n half_o abuse_v and_o whole_o proofle_n maim_a sentence_n of_o father_n proofle_n weigh_v out_o of_o their_o circumstance_n all_o which_o put_v together_o come_v not_o near_o to_o a_o probable_a much_o less_o to_o a_o certain_a principle_n that_o be_v able_a to_o evert_n the_o undeniable_a clear_a catholic_n doctrine_n of_o other_o father_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o whole_a learned_a church_n with_o them_o 3._o they_o be_v not_o only_o to_o interpret_v the_o father_n now_o allege_v for_o fancy_n without_o proof_n may_v pervert_v the_o clear_a word_n god_n ever_o speak_v but_o when_o their_o interpretation_n interpretation_n when_o sectary_n interpret_v the_o father_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v their_o interpretation_n be_v make_v they_o must_v show_v it_o ground_v upon_o a_o contrary_a receive_a principle_n as_o strong_a as_o the_o express_a word_n of_o those_o father_n be_v 4._o they_o be_v to_o show_v that_o christ_n our_o lord_n when_o he_o utter_v those_o sacred_a word_n to_o his_o disciple_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o then_o foresee_v the_o universal_a suppose_a error_n of_o believe_v his_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n will_v follow_v in_o all_o orthodox_n church_n and_o from_o no_o other_o cause_n but_o his_o own_o express_a and_o significant_a speak_v they_o be_v i_o say_v oblige_v to_o prove_v and_o by_o a_o undeniable_a principle_n that_o he_o shut_v up_o in_o the_o clear_a proposition_n he_o ever_o utter_v that_o dark_a sense_n which_o they_o draw_v from_o it_o and_o that_o he_o do_v so_o to_o deceive_v the_o world_n sectary_n grant_v christian_n to_o have_v be_v universal_o deceive_v grant_n what_o sectary_n grant_n in_o their_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o that_o the_o suppose_a error_n arise_v from_o christ_n plain_a word_n be_v evident_a for_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n that_o believe_v this_o mystery_n do_v so_o because_o truth_n itself_o say_v plain_o without_o reserve_n this_o be_v my_o body_n final_o that_o christ_n our_o lord_n will_v speak_v as_o he_o do_v be_v manifest_a by_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o he_o then_o foresee_v the_o suppose_a universal_a error_n will_v be_v also_o believe_v by_o force_n of_o his_o word_n in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christendom_n be_v most_o vndubitable_a because_o of_o the_o perfect_a knowledge_n he_o have_v of_o future_a thing_n 5._o may_v it_o please_v sectary_n to_o proceed_v candid_o they_o be_v to_o cast_v a_o serious_a reflection_n on_o passed_a age_n and_o ponder_v well_o who_o those_o be_v that_o patronize_v their_o doctrine_n and_o oppose_v we_o they_o be_v to_o compare_v and_o just_o to_o balance_n their_o obscure_a scripture_n with_o our_o clear_a text_n the_o weak_a testimony_n of_o their_o misconstrue_v father_n with_o our_o contrary_n now_o quote_v authority_n their_o novelty_n with_o our_o ancient_n believe_v faith_n the_o sentiment_n of_o their_o little_a late_a congregation_n concern_v this_o mystery_n with_o the_o judgement_n and_o belief_n of_o our_o long_a stand_a roman_a church_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o when_o all_o be_v don_n they_o can_v come_v to_o a_o sound_a principle_n whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v to_o every_o rational_a man_n that_o their_o scripture_n father_n and_o church_n authority_n outweigh_v as_o it_o be_v we_o or_o have_v more_o force_n to_o establish_v their_o novelty_n than_o what_o be_v now_o allege_v to_o make_v our_o catholic_n doctrine_n most_o stable_o sure_a we_o will_v begin_v to_o think_v they_o may_v more_o laudable_o write_v controversy_n hereafter_o but_o if_o contrariwise_o you_o find_v they_o gravel_v at_o every_o difficulty_n now_o propose_v and_o hear_v nothing_o distinct_o reply_v to_o upon_o undoubted_a principle_n or_o further_o confute_v than_o a_o loose_a wander_a discourse_n will_v carry_v on_o a_o weak_a cause_n i_o will_v once_o more_o crave_v their_o pardon_n and_o plain_o say_v our_o argument_n and_o reason_n can_v be_v answer_v chap._n viii_o the_o conclusion_n the_o church_n evidence_n 1._o we_o have_v see_v enough_o in_o the_o precedent_n discourse_v that_o true_a religion_n be_v not_o as_o sectary_n make_v protestancy_n
like_o a_o dark_a lantern_n but_o one_o of_o the_o most_o moral_o manifest_v and_o evidence_v thing_n in_o the_o world_n and_o reason_n teach_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o for_o if_o true_a worth_n ever_o show_v itself_o by_o real_a effect_n true_a worth_n be_v know_v by_o real_a effect_n sign_n and_o know_a effect_n so_o faith_n be_v discover_v by_o good_a work_n life_n by_o its_o vital_a operation_n the_o existency_n of_o a_o deity_n by_o the_o emanation_n of_o creature_n none_n can_v doubt_v but_o that_o god_n who_o desire_v all_o to_o be_v save_v have_v make_v that_o religion_n wherein_o salvation_n be_v have_v doctrine_n proof_n can_v be_v want_v to_o manifest_v the_o church_n wherein_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v have_v st._n austin_n confirm's_n this_o doctrine_n most_o know_a and_o discernible_a by_o outward_a sign_n and_o vndubitable_a mark_n of_o truth_n therefore_o as_o we_o say_v above_o clear_a proof_n can_v be_v want_v whereby_o that_o be_v manifest_v which_o god_n will_v have_v know_v audistis_fw-la ejus_fw-la vocem_fw-la manifestissimam_fw-la they_o be_v word_n of_o st._n austin_n de_fw-fr vnit._fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cap._n 25._o you_o have_v hear_v the_o most_o manifest_a voice_n of_o god_n not_o only_o by_o the_o law_n prophet_n and_o psalm_n but_o by_o his_o own_o sacred_a mouth_n commendantis_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la svam_fw-la futuram_fw-la commend_v his_o future_a church_n to_o we_o all._n this_o church_n you_o have_v diffuse_v every_o where_o you_o see_v it_o like_o a_o city_n whereof_o he_o who_o build_v it_o say_v a_o city_n upon_o a_o mountain_n can_v be_v hid._n this_o be_v the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o in_o one_o part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o the_o donatist_n be_v in_o the_o south_n and_n our_o sectary_n now_o be_v in_o these_o northern_a climate_n sed_fw-la ubique_fw-la est_fw-la notissima_fw-la but_o it_o be_v manifest_a every_o where_n and_o if_o you_o ask_v by_o what_o sign_n evidence_v and_o show_v by_o what_o mark_v christ_n church_n be_v evidence_v it_o be_v know_v the_o saint_n answer_v lib._n de_fw-fr vtilit_fw-la cred._n c._n 17._o hoc_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la divina_fw-la providentiâ_fw-la this_o be_v don_n by_o providence_n by_o the_o oracle_n and_o before_o tell_v of_o prophet_n by_o the_o humanity_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o wearisome_a travail_n of_o his_o apostle_n by_o the_o reproach_n and_o contumely_n of_o martyr_n by_o their_o gibbet_n blood_n shed_v and_o bless_a death_n by_o the_o famous_a credibility_n st._n augustine_n motive_n of_o credibility_n know_a live_v of_o saint_n and_o among_o these_o so_o universal_a great_a virtue_n by_o most_o worthy_a miracle_n meet_o and_o upon_o fit_a occasion_n show_v we_o mark_v the_o sign_n he_o go_v on_o cum_fw-la igitur_fw-la tantum_fw-la auxilium_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o therefore_o we_o see_v so_o great_a aid_n and_o help_n afford_v by_o almighty_a god_n so_o much_o fruit_n and_o increase_n dubitamus_fw-la nos_fw-la ejus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la gremio_fw-la christian_n they_o force_v reason_n to_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o that_o church_n which_o show_v they_o it_o be_v pride_n and_o impiety_n not_o to_o give_v preeminence_n to_o such_o a_o church_n before_o other_o st._n austin_n defend_v not_o a_o religion_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n condere_fw-la etc._n etc._n shall_v we_o doubt_v to_o hide_v ourselves_o in_o the_o lap_n of_o that_o church_n which_o from_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n even_o to_o this_o public_a confession_n of_o mankind_n have_v get_v to_o such_o a_o height_n of_o authority_n by_o a_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n condemn_v heretic_n vain_o snarl_v at_o it_o partly_o also_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o people_n partly_o by_o the_o gravity_n and_o weight_n of_o council_n partly_o by_o the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o miracle_n cui_fw-la nolle_fw-la primas_fw-la dare_v vel_fw-la summae_fw-la profecto_fw-la impietatis_fw-la est_fw-la vel_fw-la praecipitis_fw-la arrogantiae_fw-la and_o not_o to_o give_v to_o this_o church_n the_o chief_a preeminence_n be_v in_o good_a earnest_a either_o a_o mighty_a wickedness_n or_o a_o stubborn_a and_o headstrong_a pride_n ponder_v these_o word_n well_o with_o the_o follow_v also_o and_o ask_v your_o own_o conscience_n what_o church_n that_o be_v for_o which_o st._n austin_n plead_v so_o strong_o do_v he_o speak_v for_o all_o who_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n no_o the_o impugn_a manichy_n be_v such_o and_o so_o be_v also_o the_o arian_n pelagian_o and_o other_o but_o these_o because_o of_o their_o vnevidence_v religion_n utter_o destitute_a of_o mark_n and_o motive_n he_o reject_v as_o schismatic_n protestant_n much_o less_o the_o then_o unknown_a novelty_n of_o protestant_n and_o heretic_n do_v he_o argue_v think_v you_o for_o our_o little_a late_a rise_v congregation_n of_o protestant_n no_o god_n know_v they_o have_v less_o of_o this_o evidence_n then_o the_o very_a arian_n have_v and_o beside_o be_v never_o think_v of_o in_o st._n augustine_n day_n 2._o the_o church_n therefore_o for_o which_o our_o profound_a church_n the_o saint_n plead_v for_o no_o other_o then_o for_o the_o ever_o visible_a holy_a and_o catholic_n roman_n church_n doctor_n speak_v and_o plead_v be_v a_o other_o society_n know_v to_o the_o world_n before_o heresy_n begin_v i_o mean_v the_o ever_o visible_a holy_a continue_a and_o catholic_n roman_n church_n wherinto_fw-la heresy_n just_o condemn_v never_o enter_v august_n tract_n 18._o in_o joannem_fw-la and_o whereof_o the_o prophet_n speak_v more_o fignificant_o then_o of_o christ_n himself_o aug._n in_o psal_n 30._o this_o church_n and_o this_o only_a have_v be_v manifest_v age_n after_o age_n by_o eminent_a sanctity_n by_o glorious_a miracle_n sign_n make_a evident_o credible_a by_o undoubted_a mark_n and_o sign_n by_o the_o bloodshede_v of_o martyr_n by_o a_o never_o interrupt_v succession_n of_o prelate_n pastor_n and_o people_n from_o st._n peter_n day_n to_o we_o and_o final_o by_o most_o learned_a and_o approve_v council_n this_o and_o this_o only_o be_v the_o church_n diffuse_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o which_o keep_v perfect_a unity_n in_o faith_n with_o one_o supreme_a head_n and_o so_o demonstrative_o evidence_v its_o antiquity_n that_o the_o worst_a of_o sectary_n be_v silence_v when_o they_o offer_v to_o cavil_v at_o it_o 3._o if_o you_o ponder_v well_o these_o vndeniable_a truth_n you_o sectary_n a_o conclusion_n against_o sectary_n must_v needs_o conclude_v against_o sectary_n as_o bless_v st._n austin_n once_o do_v against_o the_o manichean_o read_v he_o lib._n the_o util_a creden_fw-mi cap._n 14._o vos_fw-fr autem_fw-la tam_fw-la pauci_fw-la et_fw-la tam_fw-la turbulenti_fw-la et_fw-la tam_fw-la novi_fw-la nemini_fw-la dubium_fw-la est_fw-la quin_fw-la nihil_fw-la dignum_fw-la authoritate_fw-la praeferatis_fw-la there_o be_v no_o doubt_n say_v the_o saint_n but_o that_o you_o sectary_n so_o few_o st._n augustine_n pithy_a expression_n just_o agree_v to_o sectary_n th●y_v be_v few_o in_o number_n fearful_o divide_v and_o of_o a_o new_a faith_n st_o augustine_n word_n ponder_v with_o reflection_n on_o sectary_n innumerable_a witness_n against_o a_o few_o mean_o few_o who_o evidence_n nothing_o credible_a in_o your_o religion_n you_o so_o turbulent_a and_o consuse_v in_o your_o opinion_n concern_v faith_n you_o so_o new_o stranger_n to_o the_o christian_a world_n there_o be_v i_o say_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o you_o of_o so_o small_a authority_n can_v allege_v nothing_o worth_a the_o hear_n or_o worthy_a of_o credit_n when_o you_o oppugn_v our_o ancient_a church_n or_o defend_v your_o own_o so_o late_o invent_v novelty_n consider_v every_o word_n serious_o vos_fw-fr tam_fw-la pauci_fw-la what_o you_o so_o few_o you_o who_o see_v to_o your_o eternal_a discomfort_n so_o many_o nation_n so_o many_o people_n so_o many_o worthy_a prelate_n so_o many_o glorious_a martyr_n so_o many_o penitent_a sinner_n believe_v our_o ancient_a faith_n die_v in_o it_o and_o for_o it_o you_o who_o see_v so_o many_o miracle_n confirm_v it_o so_o many_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o it_o so_o many_o church_n erect_v so_o many_o university_n found_v so_o many_o prison_n sanctify_v so_o many_o danger_n run_v through_o so_o many_o work_v of_o piety_n don_n by_o the_o professor_n of_o this_o ancient_a church_n all_o be_v evident_a to_o your_o eye_n and_o sense_n vos_fw-fr autem_fw-la tam_fw-la pauci_fw-la and_o what_o can_v you_o so_o inconsiderable_o few_o not_o the_o hundred_o part_n in_o number_n who_o have_v don_n nothing_o like_o these_o zealous_a christian_n say_v for_o a_o novelty_n or_o probably_n plead_v against_o so_o learned_a so_o holy_a and_o so_o diffuse_v a_o christian_a society_n moreover_n vos_fw-fr tam_fw-la turbulenti_fw-la you_o so_o turbulent_a see_v in_o this_o ample_a moral_a catholic_n body_n innumerable_a secular_o though_o of_o different_a nation_n of_o different_a temper_n and_o education_n knit_v together_o in_o one_o ancient_a belief_n you_o see_v innumerable_a division_n unity_n stand_v against_o division_n profound_a doctor_n all_o
exclamation_n the_o prophet_n lesson_n and_o the_o wise_a counsel_n of_o the_o son_n of_o syrach_n the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n quis_fw-la cognovit_fw-la sensum_fw-la domini_fw-la who_o have_v know_v the_o mind_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o who_o have_v be_v his_o counsellor_n learn_v well_o that_o good_a lesson_n esay_n 55._o 9_o my_o thought_n be_v not_o your_o thought_n for_o as_o the_o heaven_n be_v exalt_v above_o the_o earth_n s●_n be_v my_o way_n exalt_v above_o you_o and_o my_o cogitation_n above_o your_o cogitation_n learn_v more_o of_o jesus_n the_o wise_a son_n of_o syrach_n eccles_n 33._o 15._o and_o look_v with_o he_o upon_o all_o evil._n teach_v ●●_o to_o reverence_n god_n permission_n of_o evil._n the_o work_n of_o the_o high_a you_o see_v two_o against_o two_o and_o one_o against_o one_o against_o evil_n be_v good_a against_o death_n be_v life_n against_o a_o just_a man_n be_v a_o sinner_n and_o i_o add_v against_o truth_n you_o have_v heresy_n s._n austin_n lib._n 11._o de_fw-la civitate_fw-la c._n 18._o call_v work_n s._n augustine_n discourse_n of_o contrariety_n in_o god_n work_n these_o thing_n r●rum_fw-la antitheta_fw-la contrarity_n in_o the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o moreover_o assure_v we_o that_o his_o goodness_n will_v never_o have_v create_v either_o man_n or_o angel_n in_o who_o evil_n be_v foresee_v nisi_fw-la pariter_fw-la nosset_n quibus_fw-la eos_fw-la bonorum_fw-la usibus_fw-la accommodaret_fw-la unless_o he_o have_v also_o know_v how_o useful_a subservient_fw-fr and_o beneficial_a i_o will_v will_v prove_v at_o last_o to_o virtuous_a good_a men._n atque_fw-la ita_fw-la in_o ordinem_fw-la seculorum_fw-la tanquam_fw-la pulcherrimum_n carmen_fw-la etiam_fw-la ex_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la quasi_fw-la antithetis_fw-la honestaret_fw-la and_o how_o that_o in_o the_o cours_n of_o age_n he_o may_v commend_v and_o set_v forth_o all_o we_o see_v like_o a_o well_o make_v verse_n with_o certain_a contrariety_n truth_n evil_n grace_v virtue_n and_o error_n give_v a_o lustre_n to_o truth_n evil_n therefore_o have_v its_o good_a and_o give_v a_o grace_n to_o virtue_n error_n add_n a_o comeliness_n to_o truth_n and_o the_o more_o ugly_a heresy_n be_v the_o more_o it_o sett'_v forth_o the_o lustre_n of_o christ_n orthodox_n church_n and_o make_v it_o glorious_a doctrine_n s._n austin_n confirm's_n the_o doctrine_n pictor_n novit_fw-la they_o be_v word_n of_o s._n austin_n serm._n de_fw-fr diversis_fw-la c._n 5._o fine_n ubi_fw-la ponat_fw-la nigrum_fw-la colorem_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la decora_fw-la pictura_fw-la &_o nescit_fw-la deus_fw-la ubi_fw-la ponat_fw-la peccatores_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la ordinata_fw-la creatura_fw-la a_fw-it painter_n know_v well_o where_o to_o lay_v dark_a colour_n that_o his_o piece_n may_v be_v fair_a to_o the_o eye_n and_o shall_v not_o god_n know_v where_o to_o place_v sinner_n the_o like_a be_v of_o heretic_n that_o his_o creature_n may_v thereby_o appear_v church_n and_o sh●w●s_v of_o what_o use_v err_a man_n be_v to_o the_o church_n seemly_a and_o in_o order_n yes_o most_o assure_o this_o great_a doctor_n say_v yet_o more_o lib._n de_fw-la vera_fw-la beligione_fw-la c._n 6._o haec_fw-la enim_fw-la catholica_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la per_fw-la totum_fw-la orbem_fw-la validè_fw-la lateque_fw-la diffusa_fw-la omnibus_fw-la errantibus_fw-la ad_fw-la profectus_fw-la suos_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la eorum_fw-la correctionem_fw-la cum_fw-la evigilare_fw-la voluerint_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o catholic_n church_n so_o far_o and_o near_o diffuse_v make_v benefit_n of_o all_o poor_a err_a soul_n yea_o and_o do_v so_o for_o their_o amendment_n when_o they_o shall_v please_v to_o awake_v out_o of_o their_o drowsiness_n it_o make_v use_n of_o gentile_n to_o let_v they_o see_v the_o wonder_n it_o work_v of_o heretic_n to_o prove_v its_o holy_a doctrine_n of_o schismatic_n to_o give_v they_o a_o lesson_n of_o better_a stability_n of_o jew_n to_o show_v they_o the_o beauty_n of_o christian_a religion_n etc._n etc._n so_o it_o be_v all_o the_o blindness_n in_o the_o world_n say_v s._n austin_n else_o be_v ad_fw-la aliquem_fw-la usum_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la ordinatur_fw-la be_v ordain_v for_o some_o church_n heresy_n serviceable_a to_o the_o church_n profit_n and_o service_n of_o god_n elect_n and_o choose_a people_n 8._o conclude_v therefore_o as_o there_o will_v be_v delude_v soul_n whether_o jew_n or_o gentile_n as_o there_o will_v be_v sin_n oppression_n and_o open_a injustice_n to_o the_o end_n of_o age_n sic_fw-la oportet_fw-la haereses_fw-la esse_fw-la so_o there_o will_v be_v heresy_n also_o church_n no_o wonder_n that_o some_o wilful_o shut_v their_o eye_n to_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o those_o who_o wilful_o shut_v their_o eye_n to_o the_o evidence_n of_o a_o glorious_a mother_n church_n and_o wonder_v not_o at_o it_o for_o you_o know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o come_v into_o the_o world_n et_fw-la mundus_fw-la cum_fw-la non_fw-la cognovit_fw-la and_o the_o world_n will_v not_o know_v he_o his_o sacred_a doctrine_n be_v preach_v all_o over_o but_o seem_v judaeis_n scandalum_fw-la gentibus_fw-la stultitia_fw-la a_o scandal_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o a_o foolery_n all._n when_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o know_v to_o all._n to_o the_o gentile_n what_o marvel_n be_v it_o then_o that_o his_o own_o holy_a church_n be_v less_o regard_v by_o dispirited_a soul_n and_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o set_v light_n by_o have_v patience_n wait_v on_o god_n good_a leisure_n no_o hart_n be_v so_o hard_a but_o grace_n can_v soften_v it_o these_o dimm_n eye_n of_o deceive_v man_n will_v at_o last_o be_v open_v et_fw-la videbit_fw-la omnis_fw-la caro_fw-la salutare_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o all_o shall_v see_v and_o know_v that_o as_o there_o be_v no_o other_o saviour_n but_o one_o christ_n our_o lord_n so_o there_o be_v no_o other_o church_n but_o church_n no_o other_o christ_n but_o one_o no_o other_o church_n but_o the_o one_o only_a roman_a catholic_n church_n one_o wherein_o salvation_n long_o seek_v for_o can_v be_v find_v but_o in_o the_o one_o only_a ancient_n apostolical_a catholic_n and_o holy_a roman_a church_n credo_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la finis_fw-la the_o chapter_n in_o order_n the_o first_o discourse_n of_o a_o infallible_a church_n and_o infallible_a teacher_n chap._n i._o there_o be_v infallible_a teacher_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n page_n 16._o chap._n ii_o the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n necessary_o require_v infallible_a teacher_n 20_o chap._n iii_o other_o proof_n for_o teacher_n and_o a_o church_n infallible_a 29_o chap._n iv_o reply_v to_o these_o argument_n be_v answer_v 36_o chap._n v._o a_o controversy_n with_o some_o late_a sectary_n concern_v moral_a certainty_n 49_o chap._n vi_o faith_n only_o moral_o certain_a be_v no_o faith_n protestant_n have_v no_o moral_a certainty_n of_o protestant_a religion_n 63_o chap._n vii_o how_o sectary_n err_v in_o the_o search_n make_v after_o religion_n of_o their_o weak_a and_o improbable_a opposition_n the_o objection_n be_v more_o full_o answer_v 70_o chap._n viii_o a_o few_o reflection_n make_v upon_o these_o motive_n of_o credibility_n no_o religion_n have_v motive_n sound_v moral_a certainty_n but_o one_o only_a which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d roman_n catholic_n religion_n 78_o chap._n ix_o a_o short_a digression_n concern_v the_o shuffle_n of_o protestant_n in_o this_o matter_n 88_o chap._n x._o protestant_n have_v no_o rational_a motive_n whereby_o their_o new_a faith_n be_v evidence_v to_o be_v so_o much_o as_o probable_a 96_o chap._n xi_o argument_n draw_v from_o reason_n against_o protestant_n upon_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o declare_a motive_n 114_o chap._n xii_o protestant_n for_o want_v of_o rational_a motive_n can_v convert_v a_o infidel_n to_o christian_a faith_n 119_o chap_n xiii_o protestancy_n for_o want_n of_o rational_a motive_n dishonor_n christ_n and_o make_v way_n for_o any_o new_a coin_a heresy_n 128_o the_o second_o discourse_n of_o scripture_n chap._n i._o scripture_n be_v useless_a if_o none_o declare_v infallible_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o 135_o chap._n ii_o the_o fallacy_n of_o protestant_n concern_v scripture_n and_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v discover_v 144_o chap._n iii_o all_o substantial_o of_o faith_n be_v not_o plain_a in_o scripture_n without_o a_o infallible_a teacher_n 153_o chap._n iu_o sole_a scripture_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n can_v be_v no_o rule_n of_o faith_n protestant_n have_v no_o scripture_n for_o their_o religion_n as_o it_o be_v protestancy_n 162_o chap._n v._o the_o reason_n of_o private_a man_n and_o their_o private_a spirit_n can_v interpret_v scripture_n 169_o chap._n vi_o the_o new_a mode_n of_o protestant_n misinterpret_v scripture_n which_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n be_v more_o ample_o refute_v 179_o chap._n vii_o more_o of_o this_o subject_n 187_o chap._n viii_o the_o new_a mode_n of_o sectary_n misinterpret_v scripture_n destroy_v protestant_n religion_n 195_o chap._n ix_o of_o the_o mean_n leave_v by_o almighty_a god_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n true_o one_o
faith_n precise_o rest_v always_o on_o god_n revelation_n as_o the_o last_o and_o ultimate_a motive_n without_o the_o mixture_n of_o any_o other_o see_v disc_n 1._o c._n 5._o n._n 5._o 6._o as_o also_o chap._n 6._o now_o if_o you_o desire_v to_o know_v more_o concern_v the_o certainty_n of_o he_o that_o propose_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n dark_o reveal_v in_o holy_a scripture_n read_v the_o 4._o chap._n of_o the_o first_o discourse_n 10._o by_o what_o be_v say_v hitherto_o you_o see_v good_a mr._n poole_n that_o true_a christian_a religion_n must_v either_o signify_v the_o objective_a infallibility_n of_o god_n revelation_n or_o the_o assent_n of_o faith_n whereby_o we_o captivate_v our_o understanding_n and_o submit_v to_o a_o infallible_a veracity_n both_o the_o one_o and_o other_o go_v far_o beyond_o the_o mean_a measure_n of_o mere_a probability_n or_o the_o high_a moral_a certainty_n therefore_o your_o instance_n of_o jamaica_n and_o a_o calf_n be_v here_o useless_a and_o insignificant_a i_o say_v true_a christian_a religion_n or_o to_o speak_v in_o your_o word_n the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n for_o if_o by_o the_o essential_a truth_n of_o christianity_n you_o will_v understand_v the_o prudent_a motive_n or_o inducement_n that_o precede_v faith_n and_o show_v we_o where_o true_a christianity_n be_v profess_v and_o call_v these_o the_o essential_o of_o christian_a religion_n know_v first_o you_o have_v none_o of_o they_o as_o be_v prove_v disc_n 1._o c._n 8._o 9_o and_o 10._o know_v second_o that_o these_o motive_n previous_o ponder_v before_o we_o believe_v though_o most_o requisite_a to_o belief_n be_v not_o the_o essential_o of_o faith_n whether_o you_o take_v faith_n obiective_o for_o the_o matter_n believe_v or_o subiective_o for_o the_o act_n of_o belief_n but_o object_n of_o science_n as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o chapter_n now_o quote_v for_o faith_n which_o essential_o constitute_v religion_n follow_v in_o every_o good_a christian_n after_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o motive_n and_o sub_fw-la notione_fw-la fidei_fw-la or_o as_o divine_a faith_n ultimate_o rely_v not_o on_o they_o 11._o upon_o these_o ground_n all_o come_v to_o nothing_o that_o you_o have_v p._n 10._o and_o 11._o where_o you_o say_v if_o beside_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o thing_n there_o be_v require_v certitudo_fw-la subjecti_fw-la the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o person_n you_o will_v bring_v this_o fox_n out_o of_o his_o hole_n by_o a_o notable_a dilemma_n a_o word_n only_o in_o pass_v pray_v you_o sir_n what_o be_v here_o understand_v by_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o thing_n you_o either_o mean_v god_n certain_a revelation_n and_o this_o certain_o most_o infallible_o be_v not_o to_o be_v call_v a_o thing_n but_o aught_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o with_o great_a reverence_n or_o you_o mean_v and_o your_o context_n bear_v no_o other_o sense_n the_o material_a object_n of_o our_o christian_a belief_n now_o these_o sole_o consider_v can_v no_o more_o proper_o be_v call_v fallible_a or_o infallible_a then_o probable_a and_o improbable_a no_o man_n say_v that_o a_o stone_n which_o he_o see_v in_o the_o high_a way_n be_v either_o fallible_a or_o infallible_a probable_a or_o improbable_a the_o reason_n be_v because_o these_o term_n certain_a fallible_a infallible_a probable_a improbable_a etc._n etc._n note_v ever_o the_o tendency_n of_o vital_a act_n proceed_v from_o a_o intellectual_a power_n and_o therefore_o most_o improper_o belong_v to_o object_n neither_o vital_a nor_o intellectual_a thus_o much_o only_o by_o the_o buy_v now_o to_o your_o fox_v it_o and_o fearful_a dilemma_n either_o say_v you_o a_o subjective_a certainty_n or_o infallibility_n of_o belief_n mark_v your_o own_o word_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n be_v necessary_a for_o particular_a christian_n or_o it_o be_v not_o if_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a than_o papist_n too_o vain_o boast_v of_o it_o and_o must_v confess_v probable_a evidence_n sufficient_a for_o particular_a christian_n and_o infallibility_n necessary_a only_o for_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n if_o a_o subjective_a infallibility_n be_v necessary_a for_o particular_a christian_n than_o every_o papist_n in_o england_n have_v a_o pope_n in_o his_o belly_n etc._n etc._n here_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o your_o dilemma_n and_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a piece_n of_o confuse_a stuff_n observe_v well_o you_o begin_v with_o the_o subjective_a infallibility_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n and_o then_o run_v further_o than_o to_o jamaica_n to_o talk_v of_o that_o which_o you_o call_v the_o probable_a evidence_n of_o it_o good_a sir_n the_o evidence_n of_o credibility_n belong_v to_o true_a christianity_n be_v total_o distinct_a from_o the_o infallible_a belief_n of_o it_o that_o if_o we_o make_v a_o right_a analysis_n precede_v faith_n faith_n follow_v and_o be_v far_o more_o certain_a than_o the_o judgement_n be_v all_o have_v of_o the_o evidence_n of_o credibility_n see_v disc_n 1._o c._n 7._o 8._o 9_o 10._o brief_o i_o say_v first_o the_o belief_n of_o true_a christianity_n be_v subjective_o infallible_a in_o every_o faithful_a christian_a who_o therefore_o may_v have_v as_o sound_v faith_n as_o the_o pope_n himself_o or_o any_o that_o sitt'_v in_o council_n the_o reason_n already_o give_v and_o further_o declare_v disc_n 1._o c._n 1._o be_v thus_o god_n a_o infinite_a verity_n speak_v to_o we_o for_o this_o end_n that_o we_o believe_v he_o he_o speak_v infallible_o faithful_a christian_n believe_v both_o what_o he_o speak_v and_o answerable_o to_o their_o power_n as_o he_o speak_v ergo_fw-la they_o believe_v infallible_o again_o a_o fallible_a belief_n can_v be_v ultimate_o resolve_v into_o a_o infallible_a revelation_n none_o therefore_o that_o hold_v himself_o oblige_v to_o believe_v a_o infinite_a verity_n own_v as_o infallible_a can_v proceed_v doubtful_o upon_o that_o motive_n for_o he_o know_v a_o infinite_a verity_n speak_v not_o doubtful_o or_o opinative_o i_o say_v second_o infallible_a faith_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n be_v miscall_v if_o you_o style_v it_o probable_a evidence_n it_o be_v not_o probable_a but_o certain_a because_o it_o rely_v on_o a_o infinite_a verity_n it_o be_v not_o evident_a but_o obscure_a because_o argumentum_fw-la non_fw-la apparentium_fw-la thus_o much_o be_v undoubted_o true_a if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o assent_n of_o divine_a faith_n now_o if_o when_o you_o talk_v of_o particular_a papist_n have_v a_o pope_n in_o their_o belly_n you_o gross_o imagine_v that_o every_o one_o can_v define_v or_o declare_v infallible_o christian_a doctrine_n in_o order_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n do_v you_o fight_v with_o shadow_n no_o papist_n hold_v such_o foolery_n and_o by_o this_o you_o see_v the_o last_o strength_n of_o your_o weak_a dilemma_n bring_v to_o nothing_o 12._o you_o be_v also_o as_o unlucky_a in_o your_o next_o assault_n where_o you_o challenge_n the_o whole_a club_n of_o jesuit_n to_o answer_n solid_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n you_o shall_v have_v a_o answer_n that_o will_v make_v you_o silent_a hereafter_o thus_o you_o go_v on_o be_v the_o popish_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n true_a in_o itself_o certitudine_fw-la objecti_fw-la so_o also_o be_v the_o protestant_n opinion_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n of_o scripture_n true_a in_o itself_o and_o certitudine_fw-la objecti_fw-la as_o the_o must_v desperate_a papist_n grant_n for_o they_o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v divine_a true_a and_o certain_a in_o itself_o but_o not_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la therefore_o hitherto_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n it_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o while_n to_o insist_v here_o upon_o a_o catacresis_n or_o abuse_v of_o word_n or_o to_o say_v how_o incompossible_a these_o two_o term_n combine_v together_o be_v in_o the_o papist_n opinion_n and_o certainty_n of_o the_o object_n for_o catholic_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n content_v not_o themselves_o with_o a_o bare_a opinion_n where_o there_o be_v certitudo_fw-la objecti_fw-la or_o god_n certain_a revelation_n due_o propose_v that_o exact_v from_o they_o no_o opinion_n but_o a_o sure_a assent_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o we_o say_v that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o matter_n believe_v by_o we_o because_o god_n have_v reveal_v it_o consequent_o it_o be_v no_o opinion_n but_o sir_n this_o be_v not_o what_o i_o aim_v at_o we_o will_v hear_v you_o say_v all_o and_o come_v to_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o difficulty_n if_o say_v you_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a foundation_n for_o a_o romanist_n that_o he_o have_v such_o probable_a evidence_n of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n why_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v as_o sufficient_a a_o fundation_n for_o a_o protestant_n that_o he_o have_v such_o nay_o infinite_o more_o probable_a evidence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n infallibility_n since_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o late_a be_v grant_v by_o the_o papist_n
your_o eye_n and_o inable_v you_o to_o see_v the_o rule_n 4._o the_o church_n be_v the_o interpreter_n but_o not_o infallible_a and_o authentic_a the_o witness_n or_o guardian_n of_o this_o rule_n observe_v well_o we_o have_v here_o a_o number_n of_o word_n but_o nothing_o prove_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o clear_v say_v therefore_o plain_o what_o tradition_n be_v it_o that_o convey_v to_o you_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n most_o sure_o it_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n for_o you_o have_v no_o other_o if_o therefore_o you_o dare_v trust_v this_o church_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o weigh_o importance_n as_o to_o hand_n to_o you_o god_n sacred_a word_n you_o may_v as_o well_o and_o with_o as_o good_a conscience_n believe_v what_o ever_o other_o doctrine_n it_o teach_v by_o tradition_n see_v disc_n 2._o c._n 2._o n._n 4._o 5._o you_o talk_v second_o of_o reason_n that_o see_v we_o this_o rule_n of_o scripture_n and_o you_o certain_o mean_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o or_o you_o say_v nothing_o now_o i_o will_v willing_o learn_v how_o your_o reason_n come_v to_o have_v the_o privilege_n or_o pre-eminence_n of_o know_v such_o secret_n before_o your_o elder_a brethren_n the_o papist_n or_o your_o more_o near_a ally_n the_o quaquer_n or_o the_o old_a arian_n the_o like_a doubt_n i_o move_v about_o the_o eyesalve_n that_o anoint_v your_o eye_n you_o call_v it_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o i_o be_o sure_a there_o be_v no_o donatist_n or_o pelagian_a but_o will_v say_v as_o much_o of_o his_o contrary_a spirit_n but_o above_o all_o satisfy_v i_o in_o one_o doubt_n and_o plain_o point_v i_o out_o the_o church_n that_o interpret_n scripture_n as_o you_o do_v in_o all_o those_o matter_n of_o controversy_n now_o between_o we_o i_o tell_v you_o sir_n there_o be_v never_o any_o such_o church_n in_o the_o world_n fallible_a or_o infallible_a that_o favour_v your_o gloss_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n 32._o page_n 46._o you_o have_v a_o fling_v at_o the_o captain_n argument_n against_o the_o judgement_n of_o reason_n who_o if_o you_o relate_v true_o for_o i_o have_v not_o now_o his_o epistle_n by_o i_o say_v first_o reason_n must_v submit_v to_o the_o judge_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o judge_n you_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o the_o supreme_a judge_n but_o subordinate_a and_o tie_v to_o rule_n contra._n every_o judgement_n with_o you_o be_v fallible_a and_o may_v easy_o swerve_v from_o the_o rule_n or_o mistake_v the_o supreme_a judge_n sentence_n if_o it_o do_v so_o it_o be_v erroneous_a and_o not_o to_o be_v follow_v say_v therefore_o who_o tie_v your_o judgement_n that_o be_v fallible_a and_o may_v be_v fall_v to_o any_o certain_a rule_n this_o shall_v be_v answer_v 33._o he_o object_n again_o the_o judge_n must_v be_v infallible_a but_o reason_n be_v fallible_a ergo._n you_o answer_v the_o mayor_n be_v a_o pitiful_a petitio_fw-la principij_fw-la contra._n your_o reply_n be_v more_o pitiful_a observe_v well_o all_o judgement_n you_o say_v be_v fallible_a and_o many_o be_v not_o only_o fallible_a but_o fall_v also_o most_o sure_o you_o will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o follow_v any_o fall_v judgement_n and_o yet_o we_o must_v follow_v a_o fallible_a judgement_n vouchsafe_v to_o tell_v we_o who_o fallible_a judgement_n we_o be_v to_o trust_v to_o in_o these_o weighty_a matter_n of_o controversy_n and_o i_o have_v all_o reason_n to_o be_v satisfy_v in_o the_o doubt_n because_o it_o avail_n i_o nothing_o to_o know_v that_o i_o must_v rely_v on_o a_o fallible_a judgement_n which_o may_v be_v fall_v unless_o you_o teach_v i_o who_o fallible_a judgement_n it_o be_v i_o be_o to_o rely_v on_o for_o example_n when_o you_o interpret_v a_o passage_n of_o scripture_n contrary_n to_o the_o church_n sense_n your_o explication_n be_v fallible_a answer_v therefore_o why_o will_v you_o rather_o have_v i_o to_o rest_v on_o your_o judgement_n that_o be_v fallible_a then_o on_o the_o church_n contrary_a sense_n though_o it_o be_v false_o suppose_v fallible_a if_o you_o say_v all_o thing_n consider_v your_o explication_n be_v more_o probable_a you_o be_v the_o very_a man_n that_o pitiful_o begg'_v the_o question_n and_o speak_v without_o any_o probable_a principle_n 34._o now_o if_o weary_v with_o those_o interrogatory_n you_o say_v roundly_o and_o this_o must_v be_v answer_v in_o your_o principle_n that_o every_o man_n be_v to_o follow_v his_o own_o judgement_n in_o these_o debate_v matter_n the_o arian_n be_v to_o follow_v his_o private_a judgement_n the_o socinian_n his_o the_o quaquer_fw-mi he_o the_o donatist_n his_o etc._n etc._n you_o do_v not_o only_o license_v all_o the_o heretic_n in_o the_o world_n to_o remain_v still_o in_o their_o heresy_n but_o moreover_o counsel_v they_o to_o believe_v falsity_n for_o you_o know_v or_o shall_v know_v that_o these_o private_a judgement_n be_v all_o fall_v if_o final_o you_o answer_v we_o must_v rest_v on_o a_o judgement_n that_o be_v true_a although_o it_o be_v fallible_a i_o know_v not_o what_o you_o mean_v for_o no_o man_n among_o you_o can_v assure_v i_o in_o these_o high_a point_n of_o controversy_n when_o a_o judgement_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v of_o as_o true_a that_o be_v fallible_a because_o truth_n be_v most_o easy_o separate_v from_o a_o act_n that_o be_v real_o falli●●_n 35._o in_o a_o word_n sir_n your_o whole_a mistake_n lie_v in_o this_o you_o sound_v not_o to_o the_o bottom_n the_o signification_n of_o these_o word_n the_o judgement_n of_o reason_n for_o reason_n in_o this_o place_n can_v be_v take_v for_o a_o weak_a discourse_n or_o the_o private_a sentiment_n of_o every_o err_a man_n after_o he_o have_v hum_v over_o or_o pause_v on_o scripture_n the_o arian_n or_o socinian_n will_v make_v his_o religion_n good_a this_o way_n but_o the_o judgement_n of_o reason_n go_v further_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v deep_o rational_a indeed_o that_o be_v it_o must_v rest_v at_o last_o upon_o a_o solid_a and_o satisfactory_a principle_n which_o thorough_o ponder_v work_n be_v powerful_o upon_o every_o prudent_a disinterest_v understanding_n and_o gentle_o force_v the_o man_n that_o lay_v prejudice_n aside_o to_o acquiesce_v and_o yield_v without_o fear_n or_o trouble_v the_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n only_o most_o evident_o propose_v these_o undoubted_a satisfactory_a principle_n whereon_o a_o rational_a judgement_n do_v rest_n secure_o when_o the_o faith_n she_o hold_v be_v resolve_v no_o sectary_n ever_o yet_o show_v nor_o shall_v hereafter_o show_v any_o think_v like_o a_o satisfactory_a principle_n to_o ground_v a_o rational_a judgement_n on_o when_o he_o believe_v contrary_a to_o this_o church_n all_o he_o can_v do_v be_v to_o tell_v we_o what_o he_o think_v but_o you_o shall_v never_o learn_v from_o he_o upon_o any_o solid_a principle_n extrinsical_a to_o his_o own_o bosom_n thought_n that_o god_n speak_v as_o he_o think_v but_o i_o have_v say_v so_o much_o of_o this_o subject_n disc_n 1._o c._n 7._o n._n 4._o 5._o and_o disc_n 2._o c._n 5._o n._n 8._o 9_o 10._o that_o it_o be_v needle_n to_o add_v more_o 36._o to_o the_o 3._o argument_n if_o reason_n be_v judge_v a_o man_n may_v pleasant_a god_n without_o faith_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o you_o propose_v it_o full_o enough_o you_o answer_v this_o will_v overthrow_v the_o church_n you_o be_v much_o deceive_v for_o the_o church_n teach_v that_o none_o ●an_v please_v god_n without_o faith_n in_o your_o four_o answer_n your_o be_v ●●ing_n up_o again_o your_o reason_n to_o a_o law_n and_o rule_n in_o thing_n you_o understand_v not_o sir_n if_o you_o understand_v not_o you_o want_v cord_n to_o tie_v fast_o withal_o and_o therefore_o may_v easy_o not_o close_a with_o the_o supreme_a judge_n sentence_n but_o of_o this_o we_o have_v say_v enough_o already_o you_o will_v find_v the_o substance_n of_o what_o follow_v in_o your_o appendix_n refute_v upon_o several_a occasion_n in_o the_o treatise_n have_v i_o more_o time_n i_o will_v say_v a_o word_n to_o your_o gloss_n upon_o these_o two_o place_n of_o scripture_n quote_v by_o you_o in_o the_o first_o though_o s._n peter_n say_v contrary_a 2._o pet._n 3._o 16._o that_o scripture_n be_v difficile_a to_o be_v understand_v you_o will_v have_v it_o easy_a unless_o it_o be_v to_o the_o ignorant_a and_o ungodly_a and_o it_o be_v likely_a you_o suppose_v there_o be_v none_o of_o these_o ignorant_a or_o ungodly_a people_n among_o you_o upon_o the_o other_o text_n 2._o tim._n 3._o 15._o 16._o you_o seem_v to_o infer_v from_o the_o utility_n of_o scripture_n a_o sufficiency_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n which_o be_v as_o good_a a_o inference_n as_o if_o you_o say_v your_o head_n be_v profitable_a to_o make_v you_o to_o live_v therefore_o it_o be_v sufficient_a or_o the_o principle_n of_o philosophy_n can_v instruct_v you_o